which_o thing_n he_o 3._o must_v do_v not_o only_o by_o prefer_v the_o holy_a scripture_n before_o the_o writing_n of_o whatsoever_o man_n but_o also_o by_o expoââ¦ding_v the_o same_o according_a to_o the_o great_a authority_n that_o may_v be_v find_v in_o that_o kind_n the_o great_a authority_n among_o man_n must_v needs_o be_v in_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o pillar_n and_o establishment_n of_o truth_n who_o consent_n in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o god_n word_n because_o we_o can_v not_o know_v by_o the_o handwryte_n of_o every_o particular_a 8._o member_n for_o knowledge_n be_v not_o in_o all_o person_n we_o therefore_o must_v not_o so_o much_o seek_v after_o the_o book_n as_o after_o the_o work_n and_o practice_v of_o all_o faithful_a nation_n to_o know_v by_o what_o mean_v they_o expound_v christ_n gospel_n for_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n instruct_v 10._o always_o their_o heart_n write_v his_o law_n in_o they_o so_o by_o their_o conformable_a deed_n we_o learn_v what_o he_o inspire_v to_o their_o heart_n as_o therefore_o it_o be_v most_o necessary_a to_o confer_v one_o part_n of_o holy_a scripture_n with_o a_o other_o for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o both_o place_n even_o so_o it_o behove_v to_o join_v with_o that_o conference_n the_o 28._o use_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o make_v this_o matter_n the_o plain_a by_o a_o example_n the_o apostle_n be_v willeââ¦_n to_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o shall_v anabaptiste_n this_o precept_n be_v understand_v for_o some_o think_v that_o teach_n before_o baptism_n be_v so_o necessary_a that_o no_o creature_n ought_v to_o be_v baptize_v which_o be_v not_o first_o teach_v other_o think_v both_o necessary_a catholic_n but_o yet_o teach_v to_o belong_v first_o to_o such_o as_o be_v able_a to_o be_v teach_v and_o baptise_v first_o to_o such_o as_o be_v able_a to_o be_v baptize_v and_o not_o yet_o ready_a to_o be_v teach_v and_o because_o infaute_n may_v be_v baptize_v before_o they_o can_v be_v teach_v they_o think_v that_o christ_n mean_v to_o have_v teach_v go_v before_o baptism_n in_o man_n of_o discretion_n and_o baptism_n before_o teach_v in_o child_n who_o parent_n scripture_n ask_v baptism_n for_o they_o which_o late_a understanding_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n not_o by_o the_o order_n of_o his_o word_n but_o by_o the_o use_n and_o consent_n of_o all_o nation_n which_o be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o every_o age_n and_o country_n of_o christendom_n child_n be_v bring_v to_o be_v baptize_v by_o their_o friend_n and_o the_o bishop_n or_o priest_n of_o those_o country_n have_v always_o baptize_v they_o so_o that_o we_o have_v two_o great_a and_o necessary_a point_n expound_v in_o the_o precept_n of_o baptism_n by_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n the_o one_o be_v that_o child_n may_v be_v christen_v before_o they_o be_v teach_v their_o belief_n the_o other_o that_o such_o child_n oulie_o may_v be_v christen_v who_o parent_n or_o friend_n ask_v baptism_n for_o they_o but_o if_o any_o jew_n or_o gentil_n do_v live_v among_o we_o who_o will_v not_o have_v his_o child_n christen_v the_o apostle_n by_o that_o fame_n ãâã_d of_o christ_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o baptize_v such_o a_o child_n which_o thing_n be_v prove_v because_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v no_o such_o custom_n 11_o the_o same_o strength_n which_o the_o practice_n of_o christian_a man_n be_v now_o see_v to_o have_v in_o baptism_n be_v also_o find_v to_o be_v no_o less_o in_o other_o sacrament_n for_o likewise_o all_o faithful_a country_n have_v ask_v the_o sacrament_n of_o consirmation_n for_o their_o baptize_v child_n and_o all_o bishop_n have_v give_v it_o oynt_v and_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o ãâã_d with_o ãâã_d ãâã_d thereby_o declare_v how_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v give_v to_o the_o late_o baptize_v by_o the_o imposition_n 8._o of_o hand_n of_o the_o apostle_n ãâã_d all_o faithful_a ãâã_d ãâã_d adore_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n after_o consecration_n they_o have_v desire_v that_o holy_a sacrifice_n to_o be_v make_v and_o offer_v for_o they_o &_o all_o priest_n bishop_n and_o primate_fw-la have_v say_v mass_n and_o allow_v that_o devotion_n of_o the_o layeman_n whereby_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v mie_a body_n and_z this_o be_v my_o blood_n be_v to_o be_v take_v proper_o 26._o and_o not_o figurative_o in_o so_o much_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o use_n of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n have_v expound_v the_o whole_a meanyââ¦ge_n of_o christ_n therefore_o whosoever_o teach_v a_o figurative_a understanding_n of_o those_o word_n he_o go_v syrst_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n where_o it_o be_v ãâã_d say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n next_o he_o ãâã_d from_o the_o ãâã_d of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o so_o earnest_o beleve_v these_o word_n and_o thââ¦effecte_v of_o they_o that_o she_o adore_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n unbloode_o for_o the_o obteyvinge_n of_o the_o sruite_n of_o christ_n death_n thirdlie_o he_o must_v needs_o ãâã_d conclude_v singular_a and_o proud_a who_o have_v rather_o lean_v to_o his_o own_o trust_v judgement_n or_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o few_o like_o himself_o then_o to_o trust_v either_o god_n or_o his_o whole_a church_n and_o whereas_o certain_a man_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o faithful_a people_n of_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n do_v understande_v the_o word_n of_o his_o supper_n otherwise_o it_o be_v good_a reader_n to_o to_o palpable_a and_o to_o much_o assect_v a_o blindness_n not_o to_o ponder_v and_o wââ¦igh_v how_o unsensible_o that_o be_v speak_v all_o man_n of_o never_o so_o mean_a wit_n judge_v thing_n uncertain_a by_o ãâã_d those_o that_o be_v most_o certain_a not_o contrariwise_o leave_v that_o which_o they_o evident_o know_v and_o measuringe_v it_o by_o a_o rule_n clean_o obscure_a or_o throwgh_o withowt_n the_o compass_n of_o their_o reach_n christ_n in_o that_o dreadful_a night_n wherein_o he_o be_v betray_v ãâã_d now_o 11_o ãâã_d the_o mystery_n of_o owr_a redemption_n after_o bread_n take_v and_o blessing_n ãâã_d and_o give_v and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n hereof_o 11._o s._n matthew_n s._n mark_v s._n luke_n and_o s._n ãâã_d bear_n wytnesse_n neither_o may_v avie_v man_n doubt_n thereof_o who_o look_v for_o salvation_n by_o ãâã_d again_o whosoever_o be_v of_o lawful_a age_n and_o have_v but_o the_o use_n oââ¦_n his_o eye_n and_o ear_n can_v tell_v that_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n all_o man_n god_n ãâã_d the_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o ãâã_d of_o that_o bread_n which_o be_v bless_v by_o the_o priest_n these_o two_o principal_n not_o man_n alive_a may_v deny_v ãâã_d no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o deny_v that_o ãâã_d three_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o ãâã_d paste_v it_o be_v decree_v by_o 4._o 70._o bishop_n in_o the_o great_a council_n of_o ãâã_d keep_v at_o ãâã_d that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o contain_v under_o the_o counsel_n ãâã_d of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n the_o same_o thing_n be_v in_o effect_n tawght_fw-mi in_o the_o counsel_n keep_v afterward_o at_o ãâã_d at_o constance_n at_o ãâã_d at_o trent_n fowrthly_a before_o those_o counsel_n ãâã_d be_v condemn_v by_o three_o reââ¦_n other_o counsel_n and_o by_o the_o preacher_n and_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o age_n wherein_o he_o ãâã_d and_o therefore_o he_o ãâã_d the_o same_o ãâã_d which_o now_o ãâã_d maintain_v in_o england_n no_o point_n of_o these_o ãâã_d ãâã_d nor_o may_v be_v ãâã_d deny_v we_o have_v then_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n plain_a the_o worship_v and_o adoration_n of_o the_o christian_n plain_a the_o authority_n of_o diverse_a general_a counsel_n exceed_v plain_a these_o all_o be_v thing_n so_o know_v and_o certain_a that_o our_o adversary_n can_v say_v they_o be_v not_o so_o albeyt_v they_o say_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o well_o they_o yet_o grant_v we_o have_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n these_o nine_o hundred_o year_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o general_a counsel_n of_o who_o i_o ãâã_d on_o the_o other_o side_n what_o gospel_n what_o church_n what_o counsel_n they_o have_v ãâã_d first_o they_o can_v bring_v no_o gospel_n where_o it_o be_v
by_o man_n true_o in_o baptim_n there_o be_v forgevenesse_n of_o all_o sin_n what_o skill_v it_o whether_o priest_n challenge_v this_o right_n of_o forgeve_a sin_n to_o be_v give_v they_o by_o penance_n or_o by_o baptim_o the_o mystery_n or_o sacrament_n be_v one_o in_o both_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o in_o baptim_o the_o grace_n oââ¦_n yâ_z mystery_n work_v what_o in_o penance_n do_v not_o the_o name_n of_o god_n work_n here_o be_v the_o same_o virtue_n and_o name_n of_o a_o mystery_n or_o sacra_fw-la mean_v give_v to_o penance_n which_o be_v give_fw-ge to_o baptim_n whereby_o s._n ambrose_n teach_v as_o well_o that_o there_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n as_o the_o apology_n grant_v one_o of_o baptim_n but_o to_o stand_v about_o the_o proof_n of_o all_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n it_o fââ¦oremce_n need_v not_o since_o in_o that_o most_o notable_a general_a council_n gather_v both_o of_o greek_n and_o latin_n at_o florence_n all_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n be_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n confess_v prove_v declare_v and_o expound_v as_o in_o the_o end_n thereof_o it_o may_v appear_v but_o neither_o s._n ambrose_n nor_o s._n augustine_n have_v the_o charge_n commit_v to_o they_o to_o reckon_v up_o how_o many_o sacrament_n there_o be_v i_o bring_v these_o few_o place_n out_o of_o s._n augustine_n and_o s._n ambrose_n to_o show_v as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o they_o that_o will_v not_o wilful_o blind_v themselves_o how_o these_o defender_n cry_v out_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n until_o they_o have_v with_o sweet_a word_n win_v ââ¦anour_n fatheââ¦s_n among_o the_o miserable_a number_n ââ¦f_o those_o unstable_a meââ¦_n that_o always_o harken_v for_o news_n but_o when_o they_o have_v they_o fast_o then_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n clean_o forget_v and_o in_o siede_n of_o it_o ambrose_n and_o augustiââ¦e_n be_v captious_o and_o false_o allege_v for_o the_o truth_n be_v they_o that_o set_v nought_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v not_o long_a esââ¦me_n ambrose_n and_o augustine_n who_o with_o all_o their_o heart_n embrace_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o expound_v the_o same_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o holy_a church_n to_o what_o end_n then_o do_v this_o apology_n run_v true_o to_o set_v own_o up_o a_o idol_n of_o their_o own_o make_n in_o place_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o set_v up_o i_o say_v a_o fantastical_a religion_n of_o their_o own_o devise_v but_o if_o they_o shall_v cry_v to_o the_o people_n come_v come_v bow_v down_o to_o the_o idol_n that_o we_o have_v devise_v for_o you_o the_o people_n will_v not_o come_v as_o be_v fear_v with_o yâ_z infamouse_a name_n of_o a_o idol_n therefore_o they_o say_v come_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n come_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n come_v to_o the_o true_a gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ._n well_o sir_n you_o say_v herein_o exceed_v well_o we_o be_v come_v teach_v we_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o scripture_n the_o gospel_n say_v on_o a_o god_n name_n ¶_o that_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o chief_a sacrament_n chapter_n of_o all_o but_o not_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o apology_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o say_v that_o eucharistia_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o logie_fw-la sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n a_o evident_a token_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v a_o sacrament_n graecis_fw-la yea_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a sacrament_n of_o all_o sacrament_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d est_fw-la enim_fw-la secundum_fw-la clarissimi_fw-la praeceptoris_fw-la nostri_fw-la sententiam_fw-la sacramentorun_n sacramentum_fw-la the_o most_o holy_a eucharist_n which_o dyonisius_n name_v so_o a_o little_a before_o according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o our_o renown_a master_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o sacrament_n although_o dionysius_n have_v s._n paul_n to_o his_o master_n yet_o he_o mean_v at_o this_o time_n as_o upon_o he_o maximus_n have_v note_v &_o by_o other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n it_o may_v well_o appear_v to_o be_v true_a hierotheus_n a_o holy_a father_n and_o disciple_n of_o christ_n who_o in_o his_o talk_n which_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o have_v with_o dyonisius_n do_v use_v to_o call_v the_o holy_a eââ¦charist_n of_o all_o the_o sacrament_n the_o chief_a sacrament_n sure_o iââ¦_n there_o have_v be_v but_o two_o sacrament_n both_o hierotheus_n &_o dyonisius_n twain_o have_v abuse_v their_o word_n for_o where_o two_o thing_n only_o be_v of_o one_o degree_n there_o one_o may_v be_v worthy_a than_o the_o other_o but_o neither_o of_o the_o twaive_n may_v just_o be_v call_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o other_o if_o in_o all_o there_o be_v only_o two_o sacrament_n baptism_n &_o the_o eucharist_n how_o be_v the_o eucharist_n the_o sacrament_n of_o sacrament_n since_o when_o one_o be_v take_v away_o there_o do_v remain_v but_o one_o more_o to_o which_o relation_n may_v be_v make_v the_o opinion_n therefore_o of_o this_o apology_n stand_v the_o eucharist_n may_v be_v yâ_z more_o chief_a sacrament_n of_o tââ¦e_n twain_o but_o not_o the_o sacrament_n of_o more_o sacrament_n but_o what_o need_n we_o stand_v hereupon_o see_v dionysius_n have_v at_o hierarââ¦hia_n large_a prosecute_v more_o sacrament_n than_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n as_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o see_v in_o his_o work_n see_v then_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o not_o find_v so_o to_o be_v name_v in_o holy_a scripture_n the_o apology_n be_v constrain_v to_o believe_v itself_o and_o to_o teach_v other_o somewhat_o which_o be_v unwriten_a not_o read_v in_o holy_a scripture_n again_o that_o every_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sign_n and_o token_n it_o be_v also_o true_a but_o not_o read_v in_o holy_a scripture_n three_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v a_o evident_a token_n of_o yâ_z body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n but_o so_o much_o be_v not_o express_v in_o holy_a scripture_n last_o of_o all_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o real_a body_n &_o blood_n of_o 11._o christ_n himself_o and_o that_o truth_n be_v very_o plain_o very_o oft_o very_o earnest_o say_v teach_v repete_v in_o holy_a scripture_n four_o thing_n be_v now_o verify_v of_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n it_o be_v consequent_o a_o holy_a sign_n it_o be_v a_o evident_a token_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n it_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n of_o the_o four_o truth_n the_o last_o only_o be_v express_v in_o holy_a scripture_n because_o it_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o the_o other_o the_o three_o first_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o church_n not_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o over_o and_o beside_o it_o now_o mark_v well_o whether_o these_o defender_n lead_v we_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o no._n in_o describe_v the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n they_o put_v the_o three_o first_o verity_n of_o which_o never_o a_o one_o be_v name_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o last_o verity_n which_o be_v express_o name_v in_o all_o the_o four_o evangelist_n and_o in_o s._n paul_n as_o before_o i_o have_v declare_v that_o they_o utter_o veââ¦_n ãâã_d aââ¦d_v leave_v out_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v we_o make_v much_o aââ¦_n to_o pretend_v yâ_z holy_a scripture_n but_o we_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o bring_v any_o thiââ¦g_n soon_o than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n mark_v this_o apology_n who_o shall_v he_o never_o light_o see_v any_o book_n write_v in_o so_o many_o matter_n of_o divinity_n wherein_o so_o little_a scripture_n scripture_n have_v be_v allege_v it_o be_v full_a of_o gloss_n but_o the_o text_n it_o have_v very_o seldom_o and_o why_o they_o love_v not_o in_o deed_n the_o scripture_n they_o know_v not_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o only_o make_v a_o show_n of_o they_o to_o entangle_v the_o sunple_n in_o their_o snare_n the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v a_o sacrament_n a_o holy_a sign_n a_o evident_a token_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n hitherto_o they_o teach_v without_o gospel_n scripture_n it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n itself_o of_o jesus_n christ._n hereof_o speak_v they_o at_o this_o time_n never_o a_o word_n because_o it_o be_v in_o the_o gospel_n which_o they_o love_v not_o if_o this_o last_o truth_n can_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o first_o what_o doubt_n be_v there_o but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n must_v overcome_v and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o man_n gââ¦ue_v place_n if_o therefore_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n maââ¦e_o both_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o body_n itself_o it_o be_v well_o we_o be_v thorough_o
âª_o because_o so_o much_o be_v signify_v to_o be_v give_v and_o see_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o may_v have_v be_v secret_a be_v now_o so_o make_v that_o the_o sign_n and_o token_n of_o it_o go_v together_o with_o the_o truth_n thereof_o it_o can_v geve_v from_o itself_o not_o other_o token_n than_o it_o have_v nature_n of_o his_o own_o the_o token_n of_o christ_n show_v power_n of_o forgeve_a and_o retain_v sin_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o that_o power_n be_v in_o deed_n give_v i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o apology_n as_o it_o deni_v this_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n so_o it_o falsefi_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n say_v christ._n that_o the_o word_n who_o sin_n you_o forgeve_v they_o be_v forgeven_v be_v mean_v who_o sin_n you_o declare_v to_o be_v forgeven_v but_o thereof_o we_o may_v by_o god_n grace_n dispute_v a_o other_o tyme._n now_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o show_v that_o the_o word_n forgeve_a do_v not_o import_v evident_o and_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n a_o declaration_n of_o forgevenesse_n but_o a_o actual_a forgevenesse_n in_o deed_n and_o a_o sign_n thereof_o even_o as_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n do_v import_v both_o a_o sign_n and_o work_v a_o true_a be_v of_o the_o body_n and_o not_o a_o sign_n without_o a_o truth_n brief_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o consider_v what_o word_n any_o other_o where_o may_v signify_v and_o a_o other_o thing_n to_o consider_v what_o they_o may_v signify_v in_o a_o sacrament_n for_o many_o word_n may_v signify_v unproper_o unproper_a in_o other_o place_n but_o the_o principal_a word_n of_o a_o sacrament_n can_v not_o be_v unproper_a for_o the_o nature_n of_o yâ_z thing_n do_v lyââ¦itte_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n when_o christ_n make_v a_o sacrament_n he_o make_v a_o thing_n of_o a_o double_a nature_n to_o wit_n a_o holy_a thing_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n but_o the_o whole_a be_v to_o we_o know_v by_o the_o sign_n for_o the_o thing_n we_o see_v not_o neither_o in_o baptisine_n nor_o in_o confirmation_n nor_o in_o the_o eucharist_n nor_o in_o penance_n nor_o in_o extreme_a unction_n nor_o in_o priesthood_n nor_o in_o matrimony_n the_o thing_n the_o truth_n the_o grace_n the_o inward_a operation_n be_v hide_v from_o our_o eye_n from_o our_o ear_n &_o feeling_n the_o sign_n thereof_o be_v sensible_a and_o appertain_v to_o the_o eye_n and_o ear_n now_o to_o say_v that_o a_o plain_a sign_n be_v not_o make_v outward_o it_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o a_o plain_a grace_n or_o truth_n be_v not_o make_v inward_o again_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o plain_a sign_n it_o be_v dark_a and_o obscure_a it_o be_v doubtful_a and_o in_o controversy_n wherefore_o it_o will_v be_v infer_v that_o sign_n it_o rather_o confound_v our_o understanding_n then_o teach_v it_o which_o be_v so_o it_o be_v no_o visible_a sign_n of_o invisible_a grace_n for_o sure_o be_v the_o inward_a grace_n what_o so_o ever_o it_o please_v god_n it_o shall_v be_v yet_o one_o certain_a be_v nature_n substance_n condition_n and_o state_n it_o have_v whereof_o no_o man_n be_v certain_o warn_v if_o yâ_z word_n yâ_z warn_v we_o of_o it_o be_v not_o plain_a and_o therefore_o we_o have_v find_v a_o sacrament_n according_a to_o yâ_z ââ¦y_n sacramentary_n opinion_n without_o a_o holy_a sign_n a_o truth_n without_o a_o figure_n a_o certain_a grace_n without_o a_o certain_a foorme_n a_o great_a mystery_n without_o belefe_v or_o knowledge_n thereof_o a_o notable_a institution_n of_o a_o supper_n iââ¦_n man_n know_v or_o may_v know_v what_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v make_v daily_o to_o be_v frequent_v oft_o to_o be_v eat_v and_o drunken_a but_o what_o it_o be_v no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o prove_v it_o plain_o to_o this_o point_n our_o new_a ââ¦es_n will_v bring_v us._n that_o they_o covet_v to_o bring_v you_o into_o this_o blindness_n clean_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o wonder_v not_o they_o do_v their_o ministry_n they_o work_v their_o master_n inspiration_n they_o practise_v the_o deââ¦ils_n devise_n antichrist_n must_v deny_v all_o the_o mystery_n &_o veryty_n of_o christ_n beââ¦ore_o how_o can_v that_o come_v to_o pass_v if_o no_o man_n go_v before_o to_o bring_v they_o in_o doubt_n sudden_o to_o prevaââ¦le_v that_o belong_v only_o to_o god_n by_o piece_n meal_n and_o by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o creep_v in_o that_o be_v the_o work_n of_o satan_n they_o be_v faithful_a servant_n to_o their_o lord_n and_o as_o long_o as_o they_o serve_v he_o i_o blame_v they_o not_o but_o i_o exhort_v they_o to_o leave_v his_o service_n for_o he_o be_v but_o a_o evil_a paimaster_n in_o the_o âª_o end_n marry_o that_o other_o so_o diligent_o follow_v they_o that_o they_o so_o careful_o strive_v to_o maintain_v the_o same_o doctrine_n that_o they_o by_o so_o long_a experience_n do_v not_o understand_v whence_o it_o come_v and_o whereto_o it_o hasten_v that_o be_v the_o great_a grief_n ¶_o which_o argument_n be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o token_n of_o the_o body_n make_v by_o christ_n and_o chapter_n therefore_o not_o the_o body_n or_o else_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ._n the_o common_a argument_n of_o all_o the_o sacramentary_n against_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v thus_o form_v the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o sacrament_n the_o sign_n the_o figure_n ââ¦es_v the_o pledge_n the_o token_n the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n body_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o his_o body_n in_o deed_n this_o argument_n be_v so_o good_a or_o rather_o so_o bad_a that_o if_o i_o shall_v dispute_v for_o my_o life_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n i_o will_v bring_v the_o same_o to_o prove_v the_o contrary_a truth_n i_o will_v say_v the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v himself_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o sign_n the_o figure_n yâ_z pledge_v the_o token_n the_o remembrance_n thereof_o institute_v by_o christ_n therefore_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o body_n of_o christ._n now_o let_v we_o go_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o try_v which_o argument_n be_v better_a first_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o although_o before_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n sign_n be_v in_o part_n empty_a and_o void_a of_o the_o truth_n which_o they_o siââ¦nified_v yet_o now_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o 73._o christ_n himself_o have_v institute_v conteyn_v the_o truth_n which_o they_o signi_fw-la fie_o because_o truth_n be_v make_v by_o jesus_n christ._n and_o s._n augustive_a say_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n gene_z salvation_n again_o not_o with_o stand_v yâ_z christ_n leave_v to_o his_o church_n only_o seven_o sacrament_n which_o it_o shall_v use_v according_a as_o the_o nature_n of_o everyone_n or_o the_o profit_n of_o man_n do_v require_v yet_o christ_n himself_o make_v a_o great_a number_n more_o not_o leave_v ordinary_a aââ¦toritie_n to_o we_o to_o do_v the_o same_o but_o those_o which_o himself_o make_v in_o his_o own_o dispensa_fw-la tion_n of_o ââ¦esh_n &_o which_o he_o leave_v to_o his_o church_n to_o be_v make_v be_v all_o of_o one_o nature_n his_o incarnation_n fast_v baptisââ¦_n miracle_n transfiguration_n passion_n resurrection_n ascension_n be_v marue_v louse_n great_a 3._o sacrament_n for_o beside_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v wrought_v in_o they_o they_o also_o be_v token_a a_o other_o thing_n either_o fulfil_v in_o the_o old_a ââ¦igures_n and_o prophecy_n or_o to_o be_v follow_v of_o his_o member_n which_o 2._o shall_v conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o dede_n of_o christ_n their_o head_n but_o because_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o such_o sacrament_n as_o be_v make_v chieââ¦ly_o by_o word_n of_o which_o kind_n those_o be_v which_z yâ_z church_n practise_v i_o will_v show_v only_o a_o few_o such_o place_n which_o do_v witness_v a_o ââ¦hing_n to_o have_v be_v do_v while_o a_o word_n signify_v so_o much_o be_v speak_v and_o all_o my_o example_n shall_v prove_v that_o look_v what_o be_v out_o ward_o say_v the_o same_o be_v invisible_o wrought_v at_o the_o same_o ãâã_d so_o that_o the_o word_n be_v a_o undoubted_a token_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v and_o make_v thereby_o 1._o for_o my_o part_n i_o say_v the_o angel_n gabriel_n make_v the_o sigââ¦e_n &_o token_n that_o christ_n shall_v be_v conceive_v of_o the_o virgin_n marye_n say_v concipy_n in_o utero_fw-la thou_o shall_v conceive_v in_o thy_o womb_n and_o the_o holy_a virgin_n signify_v her_o consent_n thereunto_o say_v fiat_n mihi_fw-la secundum_fw-la verbum_fw-la tuum_fw-la be_v it_o do_v to_o i_o according_a to_o thy_o word_n therefore_o christ_n in_o deed_n be_v conceive_v and_o take_v flesh_n of_o the_o ãâã_d virgin_n marie_n at_o the_o very_a same_o tyme
epiphanius_n who_o so_o beleve_v not_o the_o saying_n to_o be_v true_a as_o sermon_n himself_o speak_v it_o be_v fall_v from_o grace_n and_o salvation_n cyrillus_n hierosolymitatus_fw-la see_v christ_n himself_o affirm_v so_o and_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n who_o hereafter_o may_v be_v so_o catech._n bold_a as_o to_o doubt_n 4_o s._n ambrose_n our_o lord_n jesus_n himself_o geve_v witness_v unto_o 5_o we_o that_o we_o take_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n ought_v we_o any_o thing_n to_o doubt_n of_o his_o fidelity_n and_o witnesbearing_n s._n chrysostome_n because_o our_o lord_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n let_v math._n 83_o we_o be_v entangle_v with_o no_o doubtfulness_n but_o let_v we_o believe_v and_o see_v it_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o understanding_n eusebins_n emissenns_n let_v all_o doubtfulness_n of_o infidelity_n depart_v pasch._n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o gift_n himself_o also_o be_v witness_n of_o the_o truth_n s._n cyrillus_n of_o alexandria_n doubt_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v true_a since_o syrium_fw-la christ_n say_v manifest_o this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o rather_o take_v yâ_z word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o faith_n for_o see_v he_o be_v yâ_z truth_n he_o lie_v not_o and_o 13._o again_o let_v we_o take_v great_a advantage_n by_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o man_n geve_v steadfast_a faith_n unto_o the_o mystery_n let_v we_o never_o in_o so_o high_a how_n matter_n either_o think_v or_o speak_v that_o word_n quomodo_n how_o s._n gregorius_n nazianzenus_n eat_v the_o body_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n pascha_fw-la without_o confusion_n or_o doubt_n if_o at_o the_o least_o thou_o be_v desirouse_v of_o life_n neither_o do_v thou_o withdraw_v faith_n from_o the_o say_n which_o concern_v the_o flesh_n the_o same_o thing_n s._n hilary_n leo_n isychius_n theophylact_n paschasius_fw-la and_o diverse_a other_o have_v speak_v require_v we_o not_o to_o doubt_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o mystery_n and_o that_o special_o because_o christ_n word_n make_v full_a persuasion_n and_o take_v away_o all_o occasion_n of_o doubt_v but_o if_o they_o be_v figurative_a it_o be_v not_o so_o for_o then_o one_o figurative_a may_v understand_v this_o kind_n of_o figure_n a_o other_o that_o kind_n one_o may_v think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o metaphor_n a_o other_o that_o it_o be_v synecdoche_n the_o three_o that_o it_o be_v metonymy_fw-la the_o four_o that_o it_o be_v altogether_o a_o allegory_n or_o parable_n and_o without_o all_o ground_n of_o history_n other_o doubt_v not_o to_o expound_v this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o if_o it_o be_v say_v in_o this_o with_o this_o or_o under_o this_o or_o about_o this_o my_o body_n be_v yea_o from_o that_o day_n wherein_o the_o proper_a and_o natural_a sense_n of_o those_o word_n be_v deny_v i_o think_v never_o any_o word_n have_v be_v more_o uncertain_a and_o more_o doubt_v of_o then_o this_o be_v my_o body_n yet_o the_o father_n be_v so_o far_o from_o this_o uncertainty_n that_o they_o count_v he_o a_o infidel_n and_o ââ¦allen_v from_o grace_n and_o salvation_n who_o so_o do_v not_o believe_v they_o even_o as_o christ_n speak_v they_o to_o wit_n even_o so_o as_o they_o sound_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n if_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v the_o real_a substance_n thereof_o they_o that_o entreat_v of_o the_o eucharist_n affirm_v yâ_z truth_n of_o his_o flesh_n must_v needs_o mean_v that_o his_o substance_n be_v real_o present_a in_o that_o sacrament_n whereof_o they_o speak_v s._n hilarius_n speak_v of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n say_v there_o be_v leave_v trinit_fw-la no_o place_n of_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n yet_o sure_o if_o the_o substance_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o present_a not_o only_o some_o place_n but_o the_o chief_a place_n of_o doubt_v be_v leave_v s._n ambrose_n it_o be_v the_o true_a flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o take_v doubt_v you_o nothing_o at_o all_o say_v leo_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o 1._o christ_n body_n by_o like_o he_o speak_v to_o catholic_n for_o doubtless_o the_o 6_o sacramentary_n doubt_v so_o vehement_o thereof_o that_o they_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n to_o be_v only_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n isychius_n he_o receave_v by_o ignorance_n who_o know_v not_o this_o 22._o to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n according_a to_o the_o truth_n damascenus_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o the_o figure_n of_o christ_n 4._o body_n and_o blood_n god_n forbid_v but_o it_o be_v the_o self_n deify_v body_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o like_a assertion_n theophylact_n euthymius_n and_o diverse_a other_o 26._o father_n have_v they_o that_o name_v the_o supper_n of_o christ_n a_o figure_n a_o sacrament_n or_o matth._n a_o remembrance_n do_v not_o thereby_o exclude_v the_o true_a substance_n of_o christ_n flesh_n but_o they_o mean_v to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v present_a under_o the_o sign_n of_o a_o other_o thing_n after_o a_o mystical_a and_o secret_a manner_n s._n cyprian_n the_o divine_a substance_n have_v unspeakable_o infuse_v it_o domini_fw-la self_n in_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n s._n hilarius_n we_o take_v in_o deed_n the_o flesh_n of_o his_o body_n under_o a_o trinitat_fw-la mystery_n lo_o the_o flesh_n the_o substance_n of_o god_n be_v present_a in_o truth_n but_o under_o a_o sign_n tyââ¦illus_n hierosolymitanus_n under_o the_o figure_n of_o bread_n the_o body_n mystago_fw-la be_v give_v to_o thou_o who_o now_o know_v the_o sacrament_n to_o consist_v of_o two_o part_n will_v wonder_v that_o sometime_o it_o be_v name_v of_o the_o one_o and_o sometime_o of_o the_o other_o s._n augustine_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n shall_v then_o be_v life_n 2._o to_o every_o man_n if_o that_o thing_n which_o be_v visible_o receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v in_o the_o truth_n itself_o eat_v spiritual_o bââ¦holde_v there_o be_v a_o eââ¦ten_v thing_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o real_o it_o be_v there_o that_o it_o be_v visible_o receive_v therefore_o it_o be_v not_o a_o spiritual_a thing_n only_o for_o no_o such_o matter_n be_v visible_o receive_v but_o it_o be_v there_o and_o thence_o it_o must_v be_v eat_v spiritual_o and_o in_o yâ_z truth_n itself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o must_v not_o only_o be_v take_v into_o the_o mouth_n but_o into_o the_o hart_n also_o &_o then_o it_o shall_v be_v life_n unto_o the_o receiver_n this_o thing_n so_o receive_v in_o the_o sa_o crament_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n under_o yâ_z form_n of_o bread_n for_o nothing_o else_o be_v to_o be_v eat_v spiritual_o it_o be_v to_o rediouse_a to_o allege_v all_o that_o s._n augustine_n have_v write_v in_o this_o behalf_n but_o his_o other_o word_n be_v confer_v with_o these_o will_v make_v it_o plain_a that_o whensoever_o he_o name_v it_o a_o figure_n he_o mean_v the_o truth_n hide_v under_o a_o figure_n which_o be_v more_o short_o name_v a_o mystical_a figure_n he_o that_o allege_v cause_n why_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o seen_v in_o the_o mystery_n presuppose_v albeit_o a_o unuisible_a yet_o a_o most_o real_a presence_n thereof_o s._n ambrose_n say_v it_o be_v not_o seen_v in_o his_o own_o form_n ut_fw-la nullus_fw-la 4._o horror_n cruoris_fw-la sit_fw-la &_o precium_fw-la tamen_fw-la operetur_fw-la redemptionis_fw-la to_o the_o end_n there_o may_v be_v no_o loathsome_a abhor_v of_o raw_a blood_n and_o yet_o that_o the_o price_n of_o our_o redemption_n may_v work_v so_o that_o by_o his_o judgement_n the_o truth_n of_o blood_n be_v present_a to_o work_v in_o we_o the_o effect_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o yet_o the_o foorm_n of_o blood_n be_v not_o seen_v because_o we_o shall_v not_o abhor_v to_o drink_v it_o theophylact_n although_o it_o seem_v bread_n to_o we_o it_o be_v change_v by_o matth._n unspeakable_a operation_n because_o we_o be_v weak_a and_o abhor_v to_o eat_v raw_a flesh_n special_o the_o flesh_n of_o a_o man_n and_o therefore_o it_o seem_v bread_n but_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v flesh_n if_o these_o word_n can_v be_v gloss_a with_o a_o figure_n than_o i_o know_v not_o what_o shall_v escape_v the_o hand_n of_o these_o figure_n maker_n maker_n they_o that_o acknowledge_v a_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o christ_n body_n must_v needs_o mean_v a_o real_a presence_n of_o that_o body_n whereinto_o the_o change_n be_v make_v when_o justinus_n martyr_n deny_v we_o to_o take_v the_o thing_n consecrate_v as_o common_a bread_n and_o drink_n show_v also_o that_o we_o have_v ââ¦_n learn_v they_o to_o be_v not_o only_o sanctify_v in_o quality_n but_o to_o be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o other_o substance_n he_o do_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o mean_v they_o not_o to_o be_v after_o consecration_n the_o substance_n of_o common_a
consecrantur_fw-la the_o word_n be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o priest_n mouth_n and_o the_o thing_n set_v forth_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o virtue_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n this_o say_v he_o be_v my_o body_n with_o this_o word_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o be_v consecrate_v who_o see_v not_o here_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n and_o the_o thing_n or_o inââ¦isible_a grace_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o due_a pronounce_v of_o the_o word_n over_o bread_n oââ¦_n wine_n as_o for_o example_n take_v bread_n i_o say_v in_o christ_n person_n this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o word_n natural_o have_v their_o know_a signification_n as_o other_o word_n of_o other_o thing_n have_v which_o who_o so_o heaââ¦eth_v speak_v or_o perceave_v to_o be_v speak_v can_v tell_v what_o they_o mean_v and_o signify_v neither_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v but_o they_o betoken_v the_o be_v or_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n that_o natural_a betoken_v of_o they_o alone_o without_o the_o matter_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n present_a shall_v not_o be_v a_o sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o evident_a sign_n and_o token_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n but_o when_o those_o word_n be_v speak_v over_o bread_n by_o a_o priest_n as_o christ_n appoint_v they_o to_o be_v speak_v then_o by_o his_o institution_n they_o be_v a_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n a_o evident_a token_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n now_o as_o god_n and_o christ_n can_v not_o lie_v so_o they_o do_v not_o institute_v sign_n a_o false_a sign_n and_o token_n if_o the_o token_n be_v true_a and_o it_o be_v the_o token_n of_o christ_n body_n present_a that_o thing_n which_o it_o betoken_v by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n must_v needs_o be_v not_o only_o true_a but_o also_o present_a if_o it_o be_v so_o betoken_v ¶_o what_o sign_n must_v chief_o be_v respect_v in_o the_o sacrament_n chapter_n of_o christ_n supper_n and_o what_o a_o sacrament_n be_v iam_fw-la not_o ignorant_a that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n diverse_a euââ¦_n kind_n of_o sign_n &_o token_n be_v find_v 1._o some_o be_v token_n of_o the_o make_n and_o consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n 2._o others_z of_o it_o be_v now_o consecrate_v and_o make_v until_o the_o outward_a sign_n be_v consume_v 3._o a_o signification_n also_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v gather_v out_o ãâã_d it_o now_o make_v and_o consecrate_v 4._o yea_o the_o very_a eat_n be_v again_o a_o sign_n of_o a_o marvellous_a banquet_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 1._o the_o first_o sign_n of_o all_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o consecrate_v our_o lord_n sup_v per_fw-mi and_o it_o be_v the_o word_n due_o speak_v by_o a_o priest_n over_o bread_n and_o sign_n ãâã_d which_o both_o betoken_v the_o make_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n and_o make_v it_o in_o deed_n 2._o the_o sign_n of_o the_o eucharist_n now_o make_v be_v the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o this_o late_a sign_n presuppose_v the_o first_o sign_n and_o token_n for_o except_v it_o have_v be_v say_v over_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n can_v not_o betoken_v the_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n under_o they_o for_o not_o wheresoever_o we_o see_v such_o form_n we_o do_v there_o believe_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v except_o we_o think_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n to_o have_v be_v speak_v over_o they_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o that_o first_o sign_n and_o token_n which_o both_o signify_v and_o make_v the_o sacrament_n wherein_o christ_n will_v that_o to_o be_v wrought_v invisible_o which_o the_o word_n do_v signify_v to_o our_o care_n and_o whicââ¦_n the_o do_v show_v to_o our_o eye_n a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o institute_v a_o token_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o not_o always_o able_a to_o make_v present_a the_o truth_n of_o the_o token_n as_o when_o he_o leave_v a_o ring_n in_o token_n of_o he_o himselââ¦e_n not_o be_v able_a to_o leave_v his_o own_o substance_n in_o the_o same_o ring_n or_o under_o the_o form_n of_o it_o but_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n so_o he_o lean_v both_o a_o ãâã_d outward_a token_n according_a to_o his_o huââ¦ane_a nature_n and_o work_v a_o inward_a truth_n of_o the_o same_o token_n according_a to_o his_o divine_a allnughtynes_n the_o outward_a token_n be_v call_v the_o sacrament_n the_o truth_n thereof_o be_v call_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n christ_n intend_v to_o show_v to_o the_o people_n that_o his_o father_n always_o hear_v he_o say_v father_n i_o thank_v the_o because_o thou_o have_v 11._o hear_v i_o these_o word_n betoken_v a_o thanksull_n hart_n wheresore_n if_o in_o ââ¦ede_o the_o hart_n be_v thankful_a they_o be_v a_o sacrament_n or_o holy_a sign_n because_o they_o betoken_v a_o most_o holy_a sacrifice_n of_o thankigeve_a but_o if_o in_o deed_n the_o hart_n geve_v no_o thanks_n they_o be_v a_o false_a token_n &_o therefore_o 5._o please_v not_o god_n who_o be_v truth_n and_o love_v nothing_o but_o truth_n upon_o this_o ground_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o learned_a father_n be_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v agreââ¦d_v ââ¦pon_n by_o all_o divinââ¦s_n take_v special_o on_o it_o of_o s._n augustine_n as_o ãâã_d do_v ãâã_d in_o these_o word_n sacramentum_fw-la est_fw-la ãâã_d gratiae_fw-la visiââ¦ilis_fw-la forma_fw-la saââ¦_n a_o sacrament_n be_v the_o visible_a form_n of_o ãâã_d grace_n whereby_o ãâã_d may_v perceive_v a_o sacrament_n to_o ãâã_d oââ¦_n two_o part_n the_o one_o be_v ap_fw-mi prehend_v by_o faith_n while_o the_o other_o be_v outward_o show_v to_o the_o sense_n if_o we_o see_v one_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o trinity_n we_o say_v a_o christian_a man_n be_v make_v to_o day_n how_o prove_v we_o that_o because_o yâ_z sacrament_n which_o we_o see_v tell_v we_o what_o be_v wrought_v inward_o therefore_o see_v christ_n have_v willââ¦d_v we_o to_o say_v at_o his_o holy_a table_n 22._o over_o bread_n and_o ãâã_d this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o very_a name_n of_o body_n and_o blood_n solemn_o command_v be_v the_o commaââ¦udement_n to_o make_v a_o holy_a sign_n which_o be_v asmuch_o to_o say_v as_o to_o make_v a_o sacrament_n whereof_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v invisible_o wrought_v which_o be_v outward_o signify_v otherwise_o a_o sacrament_n may_v be_v false_a it_o may_v be_v of_o one_o part_n alone_o it_o may_v lack_v the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o be_v short_a it_o may_v be_v make_v void_a and_o of_o none_o ãâã_d the_o token_n and_o sign_n say_v when_o bread_n be_v present_a hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o proââ¦ne_n hoc_fw-la this_o and_o the_o verb_n est_fw-la be_v betoken_v a_o thing_n present_a the_o thing_n speak_v of_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n 58._o if_o this_o whereof_o i_o speak_v it_o be_v not_o make_v my_o body_n here_o present_o i_o signify_v and_o betoken_v a_o false_a thing_n no_o false_a signification_n can_v be_v a_o sacrament_n because_o rather_o it_o be_v a_o execration_n or_o curse_v wherein_z au_o untruth_n be_v betokened_a from_o which_o god_n abhor_v the_o apology_n confeââ¦eth_v the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o whereas_o every_o sacrament_n ãâã_d of_o word_n and_o thing_n of_o which_o twain_o the_o word_n be_v the_o more_o plain_a token_n of_o the_o holy_a thing_n which_o be_v make_v see_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n be_v this_o be_v my_o body_n &_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o necessity_n there_o must_v be_v a_o truth_n of_o that_o thing_n which_o these_o word_n do_v signify_v and_o for_o asmuch_o as_o they_o signify_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n his_o body_n must_v needs_o be_v present_a where_o they_o do_v signify_v it_o to_o be_v present_a i_o will_v exemplify_v it_o in_o a_o other_o sacrament_n also_o christ_n at_o his_o make_v last_o supper_n have_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o say_v to_o his_o apostle_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la in_o meam_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la do_v and_o make_v this_o thing_n for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o i_o in_o these_o word_n christ_n betoken_v somewhat_o sure_o that_o they_o shoââ¦ld_v make_v and_o do_v the_o thing_n he_o speak_v of_o i_o ask_v now_o whether_o he_o give_v in_o deed_n power_n to_o the_o apostle_n to_o make_v and_o do_v that_o thing_n for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o he_o or_o no_o if_o in_o deed_n he_o give_v they_o no_o power_n the_o signification_n of_o his_o word_n be_v false_a and_o the_o token_n which_o they_o make_v to_o our_o ear_n untrue_a on_o the_o otherside_n if_o in_o deed_n by_o that_o precept_n priest_n
have_v power_n to_o make_v that_o thing_n whereof_o christ_n speak_v than_o the_o token_n be_v true_a and_o the_o outward_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n agree_v with_o the_o inward_a effect_n and_o work_n of_o they_o for_o which_o cause_n we_o say_v that_o apostle_n christ_n in_o those_o word_n institute_v a_o sacrament_n of_o holy_a order_n for_o he_o give_v unto_o his_o apostle_n at_o that_o time_n by_o those_o word_n the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n the_o holy_a sign_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v the_o pronounce_v of_o these_o word_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la in_o meam_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la make_v and_o do_v this_o thing_n for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o i_o the_o invisible_a grace_n wrought_v therein_o be_v the_o power_n which_o the_o apostle_n take_v to_o make_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n even_o so_o as_o soon_o as_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n be_v due_o speak_v straight_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v make_v present_a if_o indeed_o it_o be_v not_o present_a here_o be_v no_o sacrament_n at_o all_o note_v well_o what_o i_o say_v here_o be_v no_o true_a sign_n at_o all_o but_o a_o hypocritical_a and_o fond_a imagination_n of_o a_o thing_n the_o truth_n whereof_o be_v not_o so_o as_o the_o word_n sound_v and_o therefore_o the_o sigââ¦e_n be_v false_a neither_o will_v it_o help_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o if_o one_o say_v that_o christ_n speak_v figurative_o for_o a_o figurative_a speech_n can_v not_o be_v a_o evident_a token_n of_o any_o thing_n except_o it_o be_v such_o a_o figure_n as_o through_o the_o custom_n of_o speech_n have_v now_o obtain_v some_o easy_a and_o know_v ãâã_d among_o all_o man_n that_o use_v the_o same_o language_n as_o when_o by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o cup_n we_o mean_v the_o drink_n in_o it_o or_o by_o the_o key_n of_o 16._o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o mean_v authority_n to_o bring_v man_n to_o christ_n and_o god_n or_o by_o open_v the_o mouth_n we_o mean_v speak_v which_o kind_n of_o speech_n though_o it_o be_v call_v figurative_a for_o some_o respect_n yet_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v all_o one_o with_o proper_a speech_n because_o use_v and_o custom_n make_v every_o speech_n proper_a otherwise_o a_o very_a figurative_a understand_v speech_n signify_v no_o certain_a thing_n until_o it_o be_v plain_o understand_v and_o consequent_o no_o figurative_a speech_n can_v be_v a_o sacrament_n or_o a_o holy_a sign_n of_o a_o other_o thing_n for_o a_o sign_n be_v ever_o plain_a evident_a and_o able_a to_o instruct_v as_o be_v according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o s._n augustine_n the_o thing_n which_o beside_o the_o show_v it_o make_v to_o 1._o our_o sense_n cause_v a_o other_o thing_n to_o come_v to_o our_o knowledge_n but_o a_o figure_n not_o make_v common_a by_o use_n be_v obscure_a dark_a uncertain_a as_o all_o riddle_n be_v until_o they_o be_v open_v so_o that_o if_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n have_v mean_v this_o do_v signify_v my_o body_n and_o in_o deed_n be_v not_o so_o true_o no_o sacrament_n have_v be_v make_v as_o i_o will_v show_v hereafter_o because_o no_o evident_a token_n have_v be_v give_v of_o any_o thing_n it_o can_v not_o be_v call_v a_o evident_a token_n when_o i_o may_v more_o true_o veryfie_v the_o contradictory_n then_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v for_o if_o the_o sacramentary_n teach_v well_o it_o be_v a_o true_a token_n to_o say_v this_o be_v not_o my_o body_n then_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v never_o signify_v to_o i_o by_o any_o figure_n of_o ââ¦hetorike_n this_o be_v not_o my_o body_n for_o doubtless_o as_o long_o as_o i_o be_o not_o drive_v to_o think_v this_o be_v not_o my_o body_n or_o to_o think_v of_o a_o other_o thing_n as_o of_o tree_n stone_n water_n bread_n wine_n or_o any_o like_a thing_n which_o be_v clean_o diverse_a in_o nature_n from_o christ_n body_n which_o to_o do_v after_o the_o name_n of_o body_n once_o hear_v out_o of_o christ_n christ._n mouth_n be_v almost_o impossible_a so_o long_o it_o may_v still_o be_v a_o sign_n to_o i_o that_o it_o be_v christ_n body_n and_o see_v it_o can_v never_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o i_o hear_v christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v exclude_v the_o thought_n of_o his_o body_n from_o my_o understanding_n will_v i_o or_o will_v i_o this_o will_v be_v to_o i_o either_o a_o falsehood_n or_o it_o will_v be_v the_o sacrament_n or_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o see_v the_o sacrament_n and_o holy_a sign_n must_v needs_o be_v true_a the_o body_n must_v likewise_o be_v true_o present_a for_o so_o the_o token_n do_v report_n if_o when_o i_o hear_v christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n i_o must_v stand_v muse_v and_o divise_v how_o be_v may_v be_v take_v unproper_o and_o signify_v a_o certain_a betoken_v without_o a_o true_a be_v sure_o because_o all_o ignorant_a man_n study_n they_o never_o so_o long_o be_v able_a to_o conclude_v no_o thinââ¦_n such_o thing_n for_o that_o no_o such_o example_n come_v to_o their_o mind_n and_o they_o be_v not_o exercise_v in_o scripture_n as_o divine_v be_v thereby_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o christ_n word_n shall_v signify_v one_o thing_n to_o one_o man_n and_o a_o other_o to_o a_o other_o to_o some_o learned_a man_n after_o some_o conference_n they_o may_v signify_v by_o the_o way_n of_o conjecture_n the_o betoken_v of_o his_o body_n to_o other_o who_o conjecture_n that_o christ_n point_v to_o his_o own_o person_n when_o he_o say_v so_o they_o will_v sound_v otherwise_o but_o to_o the_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a who_o can_v not_o so_o put_v matter_n together_o they_o will_v signify_v always_o man_n the_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o body_n uery_o the_o twelve_o apââ¦tles_n be_v very_o simple_a ignorant_a and_z as_o the_o scripture_n call_v they_o ãâã_d without_o learning_n neither_o be_v their_o mind_n open_v to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n at_o yâ_z tyme._n and_o yet_o i_o dare_v say_v they_o know_v 4._o what_o they_o do_v receive_v wherefore_o they_o take_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n literal_o as_o they_o sound_v to_o they_o now_o see_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n signify_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n it_o will_v ensue_v that_o see_v christ_n make_v always_o a_o true_a sign_n to_o they_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n marry_o to_o john_n caluine_n who_o be_v more_o deep_o learn_v and_o who_o study_v full_o sore_a to_o diverse_o make_v and_o prove_v christ_n a_o liar_n it_o may_v well_o be_v they_o will_v sound_v otherwise_o o_o lord_n to_o what_o case_n be_v these_o sign_n and_o sacrament_n bring_v if_o according_a to_o some_o man_n they_o shall_v sound_v one_o way_n and_o to_o other_o a_o other_o way_n and_o yet_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o stand_v chief_o &_o whole_o depend_v upon_o the_o sign_n which_o they_o make_v as_o though_o all_o other_o man_n be_v able_a to_o make_v their_o last_o will_n with_o word_n plain_a enough_o thou_o lord_n alone_o have_v neither_o utterance_n nor_o wit_n nor_o mind_n nor_o remembrance_n to_o make_v a_o token_n of_o thy_o invisible_a work_n and_o yet_o the_o apology_n say_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o evident_a token_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n if_o the_o token_n be_v evident_a all_o man_n do_v sayingââ¦_n quick_o understand_v it_o why_o then_o strive_v we_o upon_o a_o evident_a matter_n call_v woman_n &_o child_n to_o ask_v of_o they_o what_o token_n yâ_z word_n of_o christ_n make_v i_o warrant_v you_o they_o will_v not_o say_v that_o be_v do_v stand_v to_o betoken_v nor_o body_n for_o figure_n of_o body_n that_o kind_n of_o token_n be_v not_o very_o evident_a to_o they_o but_o in_o deed_n the_o token_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v evident_a by_o his_o own_o word_n and_o therefore_o the_o truth_n which_o he_o do_v betoken_v to_o be_v present_a be_v real_o present_a for_o as_o his_o token_n be_v most_o evident_a so_o be_v it_o most_o true_a christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n give_v power_n to_o his_o apostle_n to_o forgeve_v and_o retain_v sin_n this_o thing_n be_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o pevance_n let_v we_o there_o see_v the_o sacrament_n or_o holy_a sign_n of_o this_o giââ¦t_n who_o sin_n you_o forgeve_v say_v he_o they_o 20._o be_v foregeven_v they_o and_o who_o you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v ãâã_d in_o those_o word_n a_o sign_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v institute_v suââ¦ely_o when_o that_o sign_n be_v make_v by_o a_o priest_n duââ¦ly_o absolve_a the_o penitent_a his_o sin_n be_v in_o deed_n remit_v for_o look_v how_o much_o the_o word_n sound_v do_v signify_v to_o man_n of_o common_a understanding_n so_o much_o be_v give_v by_o they_o how_o prove_v i_o that_o
substance_n and_o it_o be_v so_o true_o make_v and_o the_o lamb_n so_o true_o prosenââ¦_n that_o he_o mass_n be_v offer_v not_o in_o hart_n alone_o but_o even_o outward_o of_o the_o priest_n not_o by_o shed_v of_o blood_n as_o upon_o the_o cross_n but_o unblodely_a as_o it_o become_v the_o clean_a oblation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n whereof_o malachi_n do_v prophesy_v that_o sacrifice_n which_o priest_n offer_n can_v not_o be_v but_o present_a for_o cââ¦p_n they_o offer_v with_o their_o hand_n moââ¦thes_n and_o other_o external_a member_n of_o their_o body_n 7._o after_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v make_v the_o faithful_a people_n who_o stand_v by_o do_v partake_v with_o the_o altar_n which_o can_v not_o be_v except_z a_z perma_fw-la neââ¦t_fw-la substance_n be_v make_v by_o consecration_n the_o lamb_n be_v upon_o the_o table_n he_o be_v offer_v there_o by_o yâ_z priest_n it_o follow_v in_o the_o council_n 8._o we_o take_v true_o the_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n we_o take_v it_o and_o true_o take_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o deed_n real_o and_o bodily_a for_o the_o body_n truth_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o a_o imaginary_a or_o feign_a truth_n it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n conceive_v only_o as_o a_o man_n may_v conceive_v in_o his_o mind_n man_n fly_v in_o the_o air_n it_o be_v not_o only_o beleve_v or_o hope_v but_o he_o in_o natural_a existence_n and_o among_o external_a thing_n have_v as_o true_a a_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o any_o creature_n have_v a_o substance_n of_o his_o own_o the_o true_a take_n of_o the_o which_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n be_v the_o take_v take_n of_o it_o in_o such_o a_o truth_n of_o subsââ¦ce_n as_o itself_o have_v and_o because_o it_o be_v true_a in_o yâ_z thing_n itself_o the_o take_n of_o it_o be_v in_o the_o thing_n itself_o 9_o the_o take_n of_o that_o which_o sââ¦andeth_v before_o we_o on_o the_o table_n be_v by_o instrument_n of_o our_o body_n therefore_o it_o be_v deliver_v according_a to_o the_o same_o external_a truth_n by_o the_o corporal_a ministry_n of_o yâ_z priest_n so_o that_o all_o be_v true_o and_o external_o do_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o ancient_a council_n 10._o well_o we_o true_o take_v they_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v the_o token_n of_o our_o redemption_n redemption_n or_o as_o some_o book_n read_v of_o our_o resurrection_n for_o as_o our_o redemption_n be_v by_o the_o ââ¦ame_n body_n and_o the_o same_o blood_n real_o wrought_v upon_o the_o cross_n so_o have_v themselves_o present_a upon_o yâ_z holy_a table_n and_o true_o take_v they_o we_o take_v the_o sure_a witness_n and_o evident_a token_n of_o our_o redemption_n redemption_n but_o if_o the_o thing_n which_o stand_v upon_o the_o holy_a table_n be_v in_o substance_n bread_n and_o wine_n how_o can_v they_o be_v the_o token_n of_o our_o redemption_n do_v bread_n and_o wine_n redeem_v we_o or_o do_v they_o rise_v from_o death_n for_o we_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o redeem_v we_o and_o which_o arise_v from_o death_n and_o the_o self_n same_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v now_o make_v present_a to_o we_o &_o offer_v unbloode_o for_o we_o to_o show_v in_o fact_n and_o deed_n our_o redemption_n already_o wrought_v by_o they_o and_o to_o distribute_v the_o fruit_n of_o yâ_z cross_n by_o none_o other_o thing_n so_o much_o as_o by_o the_o same_o body_n and_o blood_n that_o redeem_v us._n for_o lest_o we_o shall_v assign_v any_o part_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o any_o redemption_n other_o creature_n besides_o to_o the_o only_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n he_o make_v the_o selfsame_a body_n both_o the_o price_n wherewith_o he_o redeem_v we_o and_o the_o token_n and_o dispensour_n of_o the_o redemption_n it_o be_v prove_v before_o that_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v the_o token_n of_o our_o redemption_n institute_v by_o the_o express_a word_n of_o christ_n than_o they_o be_v the_o thing_n themselves_o which_o they_o betoken_v because_o they_o be_v mystical_a token_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o they_o be_v here_o not_o as_o redeem_v we_o new_a and_o therefore_o as_o token_n of_o yâ_z old_a redemption_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v think_v christ_n to_o die_v again_o or_o shall_v doubt_v as_o s._n chrysostom_n have_v note_v of_o his_o death_n already_o past_a or_o of_o math._n any_o manner_n price_n of_o our_o redemption_n to_o be_v pay_v then_o one_o or_o that_o it_o have_v any_o other_o token_n leave_v thereof_o in_o the_o holy_a mystery_n besides_o itself_o for_o it_o be_v so_o worthy_a a_o truth_n and_o raââ¦som_n pay_v for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v able_a to_o be_v paint_v worthy_o or_o set_v forth_o to_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o none_o other_o image_n than_o such_o wherein_z yâ_z truth_n may_v be_v set_v forth_o after_o a_o other_o sort_n more_o mystical_a concern_v the_o manner_n but_o no_o less_o true_a than_o the_o thing_n which_o die_v be_v concern_v the_o substance_n who_o so_o be_v faithful_a and_o humble_a be_v now_o able_a to_o understand_v how_o say_v the_o show_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n stand_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o body_n and_o blood_n present_a on_o the_o holy_a table_n how_o the_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n be_v make_v of_o the_o priest_n while_o by_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o turn_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n how_o we_o both_o true_o take_v the_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n concern_v the_o substance_n of_o they_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o yet_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v token_n institute_v of_o christ_n of_o our_o redemption_n betoken_v the_o price_n pay_v by_o make_v present_a the_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o pay_v it_o be_v not_o this_o a_o worthy_a place_n for_o the_o apology_n to_o allege_v but_o out_o i_o warrant_v you_o it_o allege_v the_o weak_a part_n thereof_o leave_v out_o the_o situation_n of_o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n on_o the_o holy_a table_n the_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n make_v of_o priest_n the_o true_a take_n and_o receive_v of_o the_o pray_v cious_a body_n and_o blood_n only_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o be_v name_v to_o show_v the_o form_n within_o the_o which_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v they_o they_o name_v as_o a_o great_a matter_n to_o further_o this_o new_a broach_v heresy_n but_o he_o be_v a_o faithful_a trier_n and_o examiner_n of_o ancient_a father_n who_o faithful_o cit_v the_o whole_a place_n neither_o add_v nor_o diminish_v which_o honest_a deal_n we_o may_v not_o look_v for_o at_o these_o defender_n hand_n ¶_o that_o the_o catholics_n have_v the_o table_n of_o eagle_n and_o chapter_n the_o sacramentary_n have_v the_o table_n of_o jay_n and_o as_o chrisostome_n write_v well_o we_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o logie_fw-la christ_n be_v the_o carcase_n and_o we_o must_v be_v the_o eagle_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o fly_v high_a if_o we_o will_v come_v to_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n for_o this_o be_v the_o table_n of_o eagle_n not_o of_o jay_n it_o be_v a_o weak_a stake_n that_o these_o man_n will_v not_o take_v hold_n of_o be_v answer_n now_o plunge_v for_o life_n under_o the_o water_n s._n chrysostome_n so_o plain_o expound_v his_o own_o meaning_n immediate_o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o carcase_n and_o of_o the_o eagle_n that_o i_o can_v not_o sufficient_o wonder_v at_o the_o impudency_n of_o he_o who_o allege_v this_o place_n for_o the_o alleger_n will_v have_v the_o word_n take_v as_o though_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o upon_o the_o altar_n but_o we_o only_o shall_v by_o faith_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n whereas_o s._n chrysostome_n speak_v of_o go_v in_o to_o heaven_n by_o good_a life_n also_o and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o his_o word_n be_v these_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v through_o death_n become_v the_o 24_o carcase_n for_o unless_o he_o have_v fall_v we_o have_v not_o rise_v christ_n use_v the_o name_n of_o eagle_n to_o declare_v that_o it_o behove_v he_o who_o shall_v approcheunto_o his_o body_n to_o seek_v for_o high_a thing_n and_o not_o to_o meddle_v with_o the_o earth_n nor_o to_o be_v draw_v down_o or_o creep_v unto_o earthly_a matter_n which_o be_v a_o low_a but_o to_o flee_v always_o up_o to_o high_a matter_n and_o to_o behold_v the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n and_o to_o have_v the_o eye_n and_o the_o mind_n quick_a of_o sight_n for_o this_o be_v the_o table_n of_o eagle_n and_o not_o of_o jay_n hitherto_o s._n chrysostome_n carcase_n who_o first_o show_v why_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o carcase_n not_o because_o it_o be_v without_o life_n but_o because_o it_o once_o have_v die_v for_o
give_v before_o under_o moses_n for_o who_o can_v doubt_v but_o manna_n do_v in_o his_o own_o substance_n far_o pass_v baker_n bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o grape_n be_v this_o the_o end_n of_o this_o long_a disputation_n of_o so_o many_o difference_n put_v between_o moses_n god_n the_o father_n and_o christ_n between_o manna_n christ_n incarnation_n &_o his_o supper_n between_o eat_n by_o body_n alone_o by_o faith_n alone_o by_o body_n &_o faith_n together_o be_v this_o all_o to_o have_v by_o yâ_z gift_n of_o christ_n only_o a_o token_n of_o himself_o in_o bread_n and_o wine_n how_o be_v then_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v eat_v able_a to_o make_v we_o live_v for_o ever_o if_o the_o eat_v it_o by_o faith_n only_o at_o christ_n supper_n make_v we_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o yet_o we_o have_v it_o by_o faith_n before_o of_o the_o father_n geve_v then_o christ_n gen_v himself_o by_o none_o other_o mean_a save_v bread_n and_o wine_n than_o his_o father_n have_v do_v and_o do_v he_o in_o vain_a trow_v you_o distinct_a his_o own_o gift_n from_o his_o father_n so_o many_o way_n be_v it_o then_o all_o one_o to_o eat_v of_o christ_n alone_o and_o to_o eat_v christ_n and_o of_o christ_n uery_o if_o concern_v our_o take_n of_o it_o the_o thing_n be_v thorough_o one_o save_v bread_n and_o wine_n he_o will_v not_o make_v so_o many_o difference_n but_o if_o christ_n gift_n concern_v our_o partake_n differ_v front_v his_o father_n gift_n in_o time_n in_o manner_n in_o degree_n why_o shall_v it_o be_v so_o but_o that_o christ_n geve_v for_o a_o great_a join_n of_o we_o to_o he_o âª_o yâ_z same_o in_o truth_n of_o nature_n which_o his_o father_n in_o faith_n and_o spirit_n give_v before_o as_o the_o necessary_a preparation_n to_o the_o son_n gift_n his_o father_n be_v only_a spirit_n and_o truth_n and_o therefore_o geve_v christ_n real_o to_o the_o world_n to_o be_v feed_v of_o spiritual_o by_o us._n but_o the_o son_n be_v flesh_n 1._o for_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o so_o geve_v real_o to_o we_o the_o gift_n of_o that_o flesh_n which_o he_o take_v not_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n but_o for_o we_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v real_o eat_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o it_o neither_o let_v it_o be_v strange_a to_o you_o yâ_z christ_n seem_v to_o geve_v more_o to_o we_o then_o his_o father_n for_o he_o geve_v more_o both_o for_o we_o upon_o the_o crosââ¦_n and_o to_o we_o in_o his_o supper_n than_o his_o father_n do_v outward_o geââ¦_n but_o yet_o all_o his_o gift_n come_v srom_o his_o father_n because_o his_o father_n give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n to_o we_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o flesh_n to_o the_o end_n he_o shall_v geve_v the_o same_o flââ¦she_fw-mi in_o his_o own_o person_n both_o for_o we_o &_o to_o we_o that_o by_o such_o a_o excellenââ¦_n mean_v we_o may_v ãâã_d the_o near_o join_v to_o god_n himself_o although_o the_o conference_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v prove_v sufficient_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v yet_o i_o will_v show_v also_o that_o s._n chrisostom_n take_v this_o chapter_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o i_o have_v do_v first_o he_o note_v the_o diversity_n of_o person_n in_o that_o christ_n say_v se_fw-la 45._o non_fw-la patââ¦em_fw-la dare_v himself_o to_o geve_v and_o not_o his_o father_n second_o the_o distinct_a place_n of_o the_o chapter_n where_o christ_n speak_v in_o the_o one_o of_o eat_v his_o godhead_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o other_o of_o 44._o eat_v his_o body_n primum_fw-la de_fw-la divinitate_fw-la etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr corpore_fw-la circa_fw-la finen_n inquit_fw-la panis_n quem_fw-la ego_fw-la dabo_fw-la etc._n etc._n christ_n speak_v firââ¦t_a oââ¦_n his_o godhead_n &_o of_o his_o body_n he_o say_v towards_o the_o end_n the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n three_o s._n chrysostom_n note_v that_o the_o word_n panis_fw-la bread_n signify_v either_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o salvation_n and_o faith_n in_o he_o 45._o or_o else_o his_o body_n by_o which_o word_n who_o see_v not_o yâ_z he_o distinct_v eat_v by_o faith_n alone_o from_o eat_v yâ_z body_n itself_o the_o body_n therefore_o be_v itself_o eat_v otherwise_o then_o by_o fa_o the_o four_o he_o say_v upon_o these_o word_n my_o flesh_n be_v very_o meat_n that_o christ_n say_v so_o to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v not_o think_v he_o to_o speak_v 45._o in_o parable_n and_o yet_o by_o flesh_n to_o meave_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o flesh_n or_o by_o eat_v to_o mean_v beââ¦uing_v be_v to_o speak_v in_o parable_n last_o of_o all_o he_o say_v it_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o meat_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o only_o by_o love_n but_o also_o in_o deed_n 83._o itself_o be_v turn_v into_o yâ_z flesh_n of_o he_o and_o again_o christ_n mingle_v he_o selââ¦e_v with_o we_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o but_o he_o make_v we_o his_o booy_n in_o itself_o but_o if_o we_o ãâã_d christ_n by_o faith_n only_o &_o love_n sure_o we_o shall_v be_v reform_v to_o he_o by_o none_o other_o mean_v they_o by_o faith_n &_o love_n but_o now_o we_o be_v turn_v from_o our_o corruptible_a nature_n and_o be_v make_v able_a to_o live_v for_o ever_o not_o only_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n and_o charity_n but_o even_o by_o that_o we_o receive_v christ_n flesh_n in_o deed_n it_o selââ¦e_v in_o his_o own_o substance_n truth_n and_o nature_n all_o these_o thing_n do_v s._n chrysostom_n gather_v out_o of_o christ_n word_n i_o need_n not_o to_o show_v in_o many_o line_n that_o theophilact_n and_o euthymius_n follow_v that_o same_o order_n in_o expound_v s._n john_n which_o s._n chrysostom_n before_o have_v use_v for_o i_o think_v no_o man_n who_o know_v their_o trade_n of_o write_v doubt_v of_o it_o the_o former_a say_v upon_o these_o joan._n word_n the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n that_o christ_n manifest_o in_o that_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o sacramental_a communion_n of_o his_o body_n and_o that_o yâ_z bread_n which_o be_v eat_v of_o we_o in_o yâ_z mystery_n be_v not_o only_o a_o certain_a resemble_v of_o our_o lord_n flesh_n sed_fw-la ipsa_fw-la caro_fw-la domini_fw-la but_o the_o flesh_n of_o our_o lod_n itself_o euthymius_n likewise_o agree_v that_o christ_n be_v bread_n two_o way_n ââ¦oan_n according_a to_o his_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n non_fw-la autem_fw-la dixit_fw-la quem_fw-la do_v sed_fw-la quem_fw-la dabo_fw-la he_o say_v not_o which_o i_o do_v geve_v but_o which_o i_o will_v geve_v for_o he_o mind_v to_o geve_v it_o in_o his_o last_o supper_n now_o as_o christ_n be_v bread_n two_o way_n so_o be_v he_o eat_v two_o way_n as_o god_n he_o be_v eat_v by_o faith_n alone_o as_o man_n geve_v his_o flesh_n to_o we_o at_o hiââ¦_n last_o supper_n he_o be_v eat_v not_o only_o by_o faith_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o late_a way_n of_o eat_v the_o sacramentary_n take_v away_o ¶_o the_o like_a precept_n make_v to_o man_n oââ¦lawful_a age_n for_o ãâã_d care_v chrisââ¦es_n flesh_n as_o be_v make_v general_o for_o ãâã_d show_v his_o ãâã_d to_o be_v as_o real_o present_a iââ¦_n his_o ãâã_d as_o ãâã_d be_v in_o ãâã_d when_o christ_n have_v promise_v to_o geve_v his_o flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v and_o the_o jew_n have_v ask_v how_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o christ_n answer_v except_o yââ¦_n eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n 6._o of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o i_o will_v reise_v he_o in_o the_o last_o day_n these_o word_n first_o be_v speak_v to_o man_n of_o lawful_a age_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o circumstance_n who_o be_v bind_v to_o receive_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n if_o no_o lawful_a impediment_n stop_v they_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v nourish_v and_o maitein_v the_o life_n which_o they_o take_v in_o baptism_n and_o increase_v it_o to_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o unity_n with_o christ_n himself_o but_o baptism_n by_o our_o adversary_n confession_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v give_v to_o infant_n and_o yet_o it_o can_v not_o do_v they_o any_o good_a if_o it_o contain_v not_o in_o itself_o the_o strength_n to_o regenerate_a they_o in_o christ_n see_v they_o be_v not_o able_a for_o their_o part_n to_o believe_v actual_o marry_o if_o baptism_n real_o make_v they_o a_o new_a creature_n &_o save_v they_o as_o s._n paul_n speak_v the_o nourishment_n which_o we_o receive_v in_o yâ_z sacrament_n 21._o of_o ââ¦_n altar_n be_v now_o of_o perfect_a understanding_n must_v needs_o be_v also_o real_a for_o as_o ââ¦regorius_a of_o
be_v heal_v her_o body_n also_o touch_v his_o manhood_n and_o her_o body_n be_v likewise_o cure_v see_v then_o it_o be_v write_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o all_o man_n beleve_v it_o once_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n see_v that_o beââ¦eif_n be_v so_o honourable_a unto_o god_n so_o meet_v for_o christ_n come_v and_o love_n towards_o we_o and_o so_o profitable_a unto_o we_o that_o the_o contrary_a assertion_n shall_v lack_v the_o like_a holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o like_v belefe_v of_o the_o church_n the_o like_a honour_n of_o god_n the_o like_a love_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o like_a profit_n of_o our_o soul_n there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n allege_v hereafter_o why_o we_o shall_v oââ¦ce_o geve_v audience_n to_o he_o that_o pretend_v to_o prove_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o be_v real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o what_o thing_n possible_o can_v exceed_v these_o cause_n before_o allege_v moreover_o all_o ââ¦igures_n be_v invent_v partly_o for_o lack_n of_o proper_a figuratiââ¦ly_o word_n partly_o for_o the_o pleasantness_n of_o speak_v christ_n sure_o lack_v not_o word_n to_o show_v that_o he_o give_v bread_n for_o a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n if_o in_o deed_n he_o have_v do_v so_o for_o since_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o caluin_n have_v word_n to_o signify_v their_o opinion_n in_o this_o matter_n it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o that_o christ_n be_v able_a to_o have_v speak_v that_o which_o they_o speak_v if_o then_o he_o speak_v not_o figurative_o for_o necessity_n our_o new_a brother_n must_v prove_v that_o he_o speak_v figurative_o for_o his_o only_a pleasure_n but_o how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o 10._o s._n augustine_n bid_v we_o nolesse_o beware_v that_o we_o take_v not_o a_o proper_a speech_n for_o a_o figurative_a then_o that_o we_o take_v not_o a_o figurative_a speech_n for_o a_o proper_a the_o rule_n to_o know_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o be_v this_o ut_fw-la quicquid_fw-la in_o sermone_fw-la divino_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o what_o soever_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v be_v proper_o refer_v neither_o to_o the_o honesty_n of_o manner_n nor_o to_o yâ_z truth_n of_o faith_n thou_o may_v know_v to_o be_v figurative_a if_o now_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n may_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n in_o so_o much_o as_o all_o man_n have_v beleve_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v give_v manner_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n not_o diminish_v thereby_o their_o faith_n in_o any_o other_o article_n by_o s._n augustin_n iugdement_n these_o word_n be_v not_o sigurative_a for_o certeinlie_o they_o be_v not_o only_o nothing_o against_o the_o honesty_n of_o manner_n as_o good_a man_n understand_v christ_n presence_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n but_o rather_o the_o strong_a belefe_v of_o they_o make_v all_o man_n more_o honest_a in_o life_n while_o they_o come_v with_o great_a fear_n to_o so_o dreadful_a mystery_n therefore_o it_o follow_v yâ_z they_o be_v not_o of_o necessity_n figurative_a of_o necessity_n i_o say_v because_o there_o be_v no_o repugnance_n in_o say_v or_o good_a manner_n why_o they_o may_v not_o be_v proper_a which_o notwithstanding_o a_o man_n for_o his_o pleasure_n may_v use_v his_o word_n in_o a_o figurative_a sort_n when_o he_o need_v not_o âª_o but_o who_o so_o affirm_v so_o much_o beside_o that_o he_o break_v s._n augustin_n rule_n he_o cast_v himself_o in_o great_a danger_n of_o prove_v yâ_z which_o hang_v of_o a_o other_o man_n pleasure_n what_o argument_n have_v our_o new_a brother_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o please_v rative_o christ_n at_o this_o time_n to_o speak_v unproperlie_o what_o ground_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v their_o opinion_n have_v how_o can_v they_o be_v sure_a that_o they_o err_v not_o in_o their_o judgement_n when_o we_o read_v that_o god_n be_v angry_a or_o sorry_a or_o that_o john_n baptist_n be_v elias_n or_o that_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n we_o say_v they_o be_v sigurative_a speech_n because_o they_o can_v not_o be_v proper_a anger_n fall_v not_o in_o god_n nor_o sorrow_n the_o rock_n for_o that_o reason_n be_v not_o christ_n in_o person_n and_o nature_n because_o it_o be_v a_o rock_n for_o by_o nature_n they_o be_v several_a thing_n and_o such_o as_o do_v not_o stand_v together_o the_o like_a may_v have_v be_v think_v in_o this_o sacrament_n if_o christ_n have_v say_v this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o wine_n be_v my_o blood_n but_o he_o foresee_v great_a cause_n why_o he_o will_v not_o say_v so_o for_o he_o will_v by_o his_o word_n so_o make_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o when_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n shall_v be_v present_a the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n shall_v not_o remain_v of_o this_o we_o be_v sure_a because_o beside_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n enforce_v so_o much_o as_o now_o it_o shall_v be_v declare_v ¶_o that_o as_o all_o other_o so_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n chapter_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v proper_o vutill_o the_o contrary_n do_v evident_o appear_v what_o meaning_n word_n ought_v to_o have_v we_o judge_v most_o direct_o by_o the_o proper_a signification_n and_o common_a use_n of_o they_o for_o if_o the_o contrary_a do_v not_o appear_v all_o word_n signify_v must_v be_v take_v in_o that_o meaning_n aââ¦d_v sense_n which_o the_o usual_a custom_n of_o speak_v and_o write_v have_v give_v they_o otherwise_o all_o thing_n be_v confound_v and_o the_o profit_n which_o come_v of_o word_n be_v lose_v neither_o any_o man_n shall_v know_v what_o a_o other_o mean_v neither_o how_o to_o make_v his_o own_o bargain_n or_o last_o will_v and_o testament_n certè_fw-la perversissimum_fw-la est_fw-la say_v tertullian_n ut_fw-la carnem_fw-la nominantes_fw-la christi_fw-la animam_fw-la intelligamus_fw-la &_o animam_fw-la significantes_fw-la carnem_fw-la interpretemur_fw-la omnia_fw-la periclitabuntur_fw-la aliter_fw-la accipi_fw-la quà msunt_fw-la &_o amittere_fw-la quod_fw-la sunt_fw-la dum_fw-la aliter_fw-la accipiuntur_fw-la si_fw-la aliter_fw-la quà m_fw-la sunt_fw-la cognoninantur_fw-la fides_n nominum_fw-la salus_fw-la est_fw-la proprietatum_fw-la true_o it_o be_v a_o most_o overthwart_a thing_n that_o name_v the_o ââ¦esh_n we_o shall_v understand_v the_o soul_n and_o signify_v the_o soul_n we_o shall_v name_v expound_v it_o the_o flesh_n all_o thing_n shall_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v otherwise_o take_v than_o they_o be_v and_o while_o they_o be_v otherwise_o take_v to_o loose_v that_o they_o be_v if_o they_o be_v name_v otherwise_o then_o they_o be_v the_o faithful_a name_n of_o thing_n preserve_v their_o propriety_n by_o these_o word_n of_o this_o ancient_a doctor_n we_o may_v judge_v how_o foul_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v that_o hear_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n name_v we_o shall_v without_o any_o reasonable_a cause_n expound_v it_o the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o hear_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n name_v we_o shall_v expound_v it_o the_o sign_n of_o his_o blood_n as_o well_o when_o he_o be_v name_v the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o may_v expound_v it_o the_o image_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o so_o we_o open_v a_o gate_n to_o all_o heresy_n we_o take_v away_o all_o certainty_n of_o speech_n and_o make_v the_o holy_a scripture_n subject_a to_o every_o man_n filthy_a lust_n &_o pleasure_n we_o must_v therefore_o keep_v every_o word_n in_o his_o own_o nature_n and_o in_o his_o know_a signification_n except_o it_o be_v manifest_a unto_o we_o that_o the_o speaker_n mean_v otherwise_o do_v not_o natural_a reason_n teach_v we_o so_o much_o say_v not_o marcellus_n the_o same_o be_v teach_v only_o by_o common_a 3._o wisdom_n and_o judgement_n non_fw-la aliter_fw-la a_o significatione_n verborum_fw-la recedi_fw-la oportet_fw-la quà m_fw-la cum_fw-la manifestum_fw-la est_fw-la aliud_fw-la sensisse_fw-la testatorem_fw-la we_o must_v not_o otherwise_o depart_v from_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n but_o when_o it_o be_v manifest_a yâ_z the_o testatour_n think_v a_o other_o thing_n in_o which_o rule_n if_o we_o rest_v all_o the_o world_n well_o know_v that_o when_o keep_v christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n the_o word_n both_o by_o their_o proper_a signisication_n and_o by_o the_o present_a use_n of_o all_o speaker_n and_o writer_n do_v import_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n true_a body_n and_o blood_n for_o neither_o the_o pronoun_n this_o point_v to_o a_o thing_n absent_a body_n neither_o the_o verb_n be_v can_v be_v say_v of_o that_o which_o present_o have_v no_o true_a be_v neither_o the_o noun_n body_n use_v to_o be_v verisied_a of_o a_o shadow_n figure_n or_o token_n of_o a_o body_n neither_o when_o christ_n say_v
wherein_o the_o honour_n may_v rest_v for_o the_o honour_n that_o we_o geve_v to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v take_v of_o the_o virgin_n be_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n augustine_n give_v to_o his_o holy_a person_n 98_o who_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n and_o one_o substance_n with_o his_o father_n true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n thus_o we_o save_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o old_a propheââ¦ies_n the_o faith_n of_o our_o forefather_n the_o propriety_n of_o christ_n word_n in_o his_o supper_n the_o honour_n of_o his_o church_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n who_o give_v no_o occasion_n of_o idolatry_n neither_o in_o word_n nor_o in_o deed_n ¶_o the_o adoration_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n iiij_o chapter_n s._n paul_n speak_v of_o sacramtal_a eat_n say_v he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthe_o eat_v and_o drink_v damnation_n to_o himself_o not_o discern_v our_o lord_n body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 62_o not_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o it_o and_o other_o meat_n for_o s._n hierome_n s._n augustive_a sedulius_n and_o primasius_n expound_v 11_o those_o word_n in_o that_o meaning_n the_o difference_n which_o be_v to_o be_v make_v between_o the_o meat_n of_o difference_n christ_n supper_n and_o other_o meat_n consist_v in_o two_o point_n in_o one_o that_o the_o receiver_n of_o christ_n sacrament_n must_v prepare_v he_o first_o self_n before_o hand_n to_o be_v apt_a to_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o which_o point_n baptism_n penance_n holy_a order_n and_o other_o sacrament_n agree_v with_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n for_o we_o may_v not_o come_v be_v of_o lawful_a age_n to_o any_o of_o those_o or_o such_o like_a holy_a mystery_n without_o due_a dispose_n ourselves_o to_o repentance_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o amendment_n of_o our_o life_n the_o second_o point_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o christ_n supper_n &_o second_o other_o thing_n be_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o supper_n we_o must_v examine_v ourselves_o even_o for_o the_o respect_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o that_o meat_n which_o we_o receive_v in_o baptism_n we_o try_v ourselves_o not_o for_o any_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o water_n but_o for_o the_o obtain_v of_o the_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v in_o that_o sacrament_n but_o in_o the_o supper_n a_o far_a difference_n be_v to_o be_v make_v what_o be_v that_o the_o very_a substance_n which_o be_v take_v be_v to_o be_v honour_v and_o adore_v that_o be_v it_o which_o s._n chrysoââ¦ome_n say_v non_fw-la considerans_fw-la ut_fw-la 28_o oportet_fw-la magnitudinem_fw-la propositorum_fw-la non_fw-la reputans_fw-la muneris_fw-la magnitudinem_fw-la he_o eat_v unworthe_o say_v s._n chrysostome_n who_o consider_v not_o as_o it_o behove_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o thing_n set_v forth_o not_o weigh_v diligent_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o gift_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o effect_n which_o come_v by_o the_o sacrament_n but_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n set_v forth_o what_o be_v they_o but_o such_o as_o appear_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o yet_o in_o deed_n be_v christ_n himself_o there_o before_o it_o follow_v in_o s._n chrysostome_n if_o thou_o do_v lern_v diligent_o worth_n qui_fw-la sit_fw-la propositus_fw-la who_o be_v set_v before_o thou_o thou_o nede_a to_o account_v nothing_o else_o behold_v the_o person_n and_o substance_n set_v forth_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v only_o nullius_fw-la alterius_fw-la indigebis_fw-la ratione_fw-la thou_o shall_v need_v make_v no_o account_n of_o any_o thing_n else_o for_o out_o of_o that_o substance_n which_o stand_v before_o thou_o come_v the_o grace_n and_o all_o other_o effect_n of_o worthy_a eat_n as_o if_o he_o say_v provyde_v to_o receive_v worthy_o the_o person_n set_v forth_o to_o thou_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o thou_o may_v be_v secure_a so_o that_o the_o difference_n proper_o belong_v to_o christ_n supper_n be_v to_o make_v a_o difference_n of_o this_o substance_n from_o all_o other_o substance_n that_o be_v the_o difference_n whereof_o s._n ambrose_n say_v he_o that_o will_v receive_v worthy_o this_o meat_n must_v judge_v that_o he_o ambros._n be_v the_o lord_n who_o blood_n he_o drink_v in_o a_o mystery_n what_o other_o 11_o meaning_n can_v these_o word_n have_v but_o that_o he_o must_v judge_v himself_o to_o drink_v not_o wine_n but_o blood_n not_o the_o blood_n of_o a_o earthly_a man_n but_o his_o blood_n who_o be_v god_n also_o and_o that_o he_o drink_v his_o blood_n in_o a_o mystery_n to_o wit_n not_o in_o his_o own_o form_n but_o under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n for_o he_o speak_v of_o sacramental_a drink_n &_o of_o that_o which_o be_v take_v by_o mouth_n therefore_o the_o very_a substance_n which_o he_o drink_v must_v be_v dissever_v from_o all_o other_o creature_n now_o i_o say_v he_o that_o be_v will_v so_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o sacrament_n as_o the_o substance_n of_o he_o who_o be_v god_n aught_o to_o be_v judge_v of_o he_o be_v will_v to_o adore_v the_o substance_n of_o this_o sacrament_n ãâã_d since_o his_o substance_n ought_v to_o be_v adore_v who_o be_v god_n for_o as_o menââ¦a_fw-la s._n chrysostom_n say_v the_o very_a table_n to_o wit_n the_o very_a meat_n stand_v upon_o the_o table_n be_v the_o strength_n oââ¦_n our_o soulââ¦_n the_o sinew_n of_o the_o mind_n the_o bond_n of_o confidence_n our_o foundation_n hope_v health_n light_n life_n thus_o to_o judge_v oââ¦_n this_o sacrament_n &_o by_o adore_v it_o with_o true_a ââ¦ove_n in_o it_o to_o adore_v god_n that_o be_v to_o adore_v not_o only_o in_o spirit_n &_o figure_n as_o yâ_z jew_o do_v adore_v but_o also_o to_o ãâã_d in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n as_o christ_n 4._o say_v we_o shall_v do_v because_o our_o sacrament_n conteme_z yâ_z truth_n which_o they_o signiââ¦ied_v ââ¦ot_v only_o signify_v our_o saviour_n as_o yâ_z old_a sacrament_n do_v but_o also_o geve_v salvation_n as_o s._n augusti_n do_v witness_v and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o 7ââ¦_n christ_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a ââ¦aw_n will_v by_o he_o to_o be_v make_v 22._o for_o the_o remââ¦brance_n of_o his_o death_n we_o must_v both_o in_o our_o spirit_n and_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o natural_a conjunction_n be_v uââ¦ted_v and_o make_v one_o with_o the_o substance_n thereof_o and_o also_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n flesh_n external_o consââ¦crated_v adore_v god_n offer_v he_o that_o reasonable_a and_o divine_a sacrifice_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v render_v and_o pay_v the_o worship_n of_o thanksgeve_a due_n for_o our_o redemption_n in_o none_o other_o substance_n then_o in_o the_o same_o which_o redeem_v us._n for_o as_o it_o be_v nostrum_fw-la holocaustum_fw-la min._n our_o sacrifice_n whole_o burn_v by_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n so_o be_v it_o nostra_fw-la hostia_fw-la pacifica_fw-la our_o sacrifice_n wherewith_o we_o both_o geve_v thanks_n for_o peace_n make_v between_o god_n and_o we_o and_o also_o apply_v to_o ourselves_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o one_o burn_a offerinââ¦_n &_o truse_a make_v 10._o upon_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v &_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n 2._o and_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n this_o kind_n of_o adoration_n proper_a to_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v due_a to_o god_n of_o our_o behalf_n by_o the_o sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o herein_o stanââ¦eth_v all_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n 11_o speak_v of_o worthy_a or_o unworthy_a receive_n if_o the_o true_a substance_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v upright_o esteem_v and_o both_o outward_o and_o inward_o honour_v and_o so_o do_v s._n augustine_n expound_v yâ_z apostle_n mind_n as_o now_o it_o shall_v appear_v januarius_n have_v ask_v what_o s._n augustine_n think_v concern_v holy_a day_n fast_v day_n or_o such_o like_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v diverse_o keep_v in_o diverse_a country_n among_o other_o question_n it_o be_v also_o move_v what_o be_v to_o be_v more_o approve_a whethere_o to_o receive_v daily_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n or_o else_o to_o abstain_v honorare_fw-la sometime_o to_o this_o question_n s._n augustine_n make_v answer_v that_o neither_o of_o they_o both_o deprive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n of_o honour_n if_o each_o of_o they_o strive_v who_o may_v honour_v best_a the_o most_o healthful_a sacrament_n for_o as_o well_o the_o centurion_n as_o zacheus_n do_v honour_v our_o saviour_n in_o manner_n by_o contrary_a mean_n the_o one_o by_o receive_v 19_o he_o with_o joy_n into_o his_o house_n the_o other_o by_o say_v âª_o lord_n i_o 8._o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o shall_v enter_v under_o my_o roof_n and_o as_o among_o the_o jew_n
they_o make_v that_o thing_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o gospel_n i_o show_v at_o ãâã_d that_o i_o be_v sign_v of_o my_o father_n and_o equal_a with_o he_o in_o power_n they_o 6._o themselves_o believe_v that_o i_o make_v all_o creature_n place_n time_n of_o nothing_o and_o now_o be_v it_o doubt_v how_o i_o be_o able_a to_o make_v my_o body_n present_a under_o the_o ââ¦orm_n of_o bread_n in_o diverse_a place_n yea_o to_o maintain_v the_o better_a that_o argument_n against_o my_o almighty_a power_n they_o say_v i_o enter_v not_o into_o my_o disciple_n the_o door_n be_v 20._o shut_v but_o either_o prevent_v the_o shut_n of_o they_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o my_o gospel_n or_o come_v in_o by_o the_o window_n as_o thief_n do_v or_o by_o some_o hole_n as_o creper_n do_v yea_o any_o thing_n be_v soon_o beleve_v then_o my_o divine_a strength_n and_o work_n thou_o hypocrite_n see_v the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v it_o write_v four_o time_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n this_o be_v my_o body_n how_o come_v thou_o to_o talk_v with_o i_o of_o my_o ãâã_d in_o heaven_n as_o though_o one_o of_o my_o work_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o other_o if_o in_o deed_n thou_o have_v be_v humble_o persuade_v that_o i_o be_v god_n thou_o will_v not_o measure_v my_o allmightie_a power_n by_o thy_o simple_a wit_n thou_o be_v twice_o condemn_v first_o for_o denial_n of_o a_o truth_n and_o again_o for_o deny_v it_o against_o my_o express_a word_n which_o thou_o pretend_v to_o esââ¦e_v and_o yet_o pronounce_v it_o false_a if_o the_o poor_a mââ¦n_n say_v he_o know_v not_o so_o much_o nor_o see_v not_o the_o falsehood_n of_o that_o argument_n and_o begin_v to_o accuse_v the_o false_a preacher_n who_o deceiuââ¦d_v he_o christ_n may_v well_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o deceive_v for_o before_o those_o false_a preacher_n begin_v their_o false_a doctrine_n he_o have_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n and_o all_o the_o world_n beleve_v and_o teach_v the_o rââ¦all_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n fiften_v hundred_o year_n together_o what_o cause_n now_o have_v thou_o to_o believe_v a_o new_a gospel_n and_o new_a preacher_n thereof_o forsooth_o sir_n they_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v deceive_v we_o and_o we_o hear_v say_v he_o be_v a_o very_a evil_a man_n therefore_o we_o think_v he_o have_v deceive_v us._n if_o in_o this_o case_n christ_n tell_v he_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v yâ_z successor_n of_o s._n 22._o peter_n and_o so_o his_o vicar_n have_v promise_n by_o he_o not_o to_o err_v in_o faith_n and_o yet_o that_o he_o alone_o teach_v not_o that_o doctrine_n but_o that_o all_o the_o bishop_n doctors_z &_o pââ¦ers_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n teach_v the_o same_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o christ_n himself_o have_v sayââ¦_n the_o same_o that_o all_o the_o ãâã_d and_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n have_v write_v the_o same_o that_o all_o faithful_a ãâã_d beleve_v the_o same_o what_o excuse_n can_v he_o have_v who_o ãâã_d christ_n the_o apostle_n the_o bishop_n the_o father_n the_o preacher_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o follow_v a_o upââ¦_n ãâã_d ãâã_d who_o begin_v his_o doctrive_n so_o amhitious_o and_o proud_o who_o ââ¦ed_v so_o evil_a &_o die_v so_o terrible_o that_o his_o very_a ââ¦ominable_a deal_n with_o great_a prince_n his_o shameful_a ãâã_d and_o horrible_a death_n may_v make_v any_o good_a man_n weary_a to_o think_v upon_o he_o much_o less_o shall_v so_o many_o have_v follow_v he_o to_o ãâã_d shor_n ââ¦wer_v the_o poor_a man_n for_o himself_o âª_o what_o he_o may_v yet_o he_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o both_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n &_o the_o church_n teach_v the_o same_o and_o yet_o he_o beleve_v not_o this_o to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o be_v one_o of_o they_o who_o believe_v not_o &_o 11._o without_o faith_n which_o be_v but_o one_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n no_o please_a of_o god_n no_o part_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o thing_n if_o they_o that_o be_v alive_a will_v consider_v they_o may_v return_v again_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o so_o be_v make_v lively_a member_n of_o that_o body_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n hereunto_o be_v add_v the_o seven_o book_n contain_v a_o con_v âª_o ââ¦utation_n of_o the_o five_o article_n of_o m._n juel_n reply_v against_o d._n harding_n concern_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o preface_n of_o the_o seven_o book_n iââ¦d_n think_v to_o have_v end_v my_o treatise_n of_o our_o lord_n supper_n with_o such_o matter_n as_o have_v bââ¦ne_v set_v forth_o in_o my_o former_a six_o bok_n but_o when_o i_o have_v seen_v m._n juel_n ââ¦eply_v against_o d._n harding_n and_o have_v ãâã_d not_o only_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o that_o which_o the_o catholic_a church_n beleve_v utter_v therein_o but_o also_o the_o same_o utter_v with_o such_o enormouse_n misconstrue_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o with_o such_o abuse_n of_o ancient_a writer_n that_o it_o seem_v expedient_a to_o detect_v the_o falsehood_n thereof_o i_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o answer_v special_o to_o that_o article_n which_o do_v unpugne_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n âª_o whereof_o i_o have_v entreat_v and_o because_o i_o can_v neither_o well_o confute_v m._n juel_n ââ¦ply_v without_o some_o respect_n have_v to_o d._n hardings_n answer_n nor_o convenient_o put_v both_o d._n harding_n and_o m._n juel_n whole_a word_n in_o ââ¦ny_a book_n which_o already_o be_v great_a enough_o i_o be_v constrain_v to_o take_v such_o order_n that_o neither_o all_o their_o word_n may_v be_v at_o large_a lay_v forth_o nor_o the_o pith_n of_o they_o in_o any_o part_n dissemble_v wherein_o i_o have_v so_o behave_v myself_o that_o m._n jewel_n shall_v have_v no_o ãâã_d cause_n to_o complain_v of_o i_o for_o i_o have_v to_o my_o knowledge_n omit_v no_o scripture_n no_o authority_n no_o argument_n of_o any_o force_n whereunto_o i_o have_v not_o answer_v as_o for_o yâ_z book_n of_o d._n harding_n &_o of_o m._n jewel_n they_o be_v extant_a in_o most_o man_n hand_n need_n not_o to_o be_v print_v again_o by_o i_o how_o full_o m._n jewel_n be_v answer_v the_o discrete_a reader_n shall_v judge_v when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n this_o much_o i_o will_v say_v it_o be_v more_o pain_n to_o stay_v my_o pen_n in_o such_o abundance_n of_o stuff_n as_o the_o goodââ¦es_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o evil_a deal_n of_o m._n jewel_n give_v i_o then_o to_o ãâã_d at_o any_o time_n what_o may_v be_v ãâã_d answer_v one_o thing_n i_o beââ¦che_v the_o reader_n to_o note_v most_o diligent_o that_o in_o all_o this_o treatise_n m._n jewel_n use_v none_o other_o mean_a so_o coââ¦on_a to_o prove_v his_o intent_n as_o to_o set_v one_o truth_n against_o a_o other_o as_o though_o christ_n body_n can_v not_o both_o be_v in_o heaven_n visible_o and_o in_o the_o sacrament_n miraculous_o or_o as_o though_o because_o the_o saââ¦rament_n be_v a_o figure_n it_o can_v not_o also_o contain_v the_o truth_n which_o it_o sigure_v or_o because_o christ_n be_v eat_v by_o faith_n his_o body_n may_v not_o be_v eat_v also_o realy_a in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o this_o thing_n be_v common_a to_o m._n jewel_n with_o other_o of_o his_o faction_n marry_o to_o leave_v on_o it_o the_o true_a nominative_a caââ¦e_n and_o to_o put_v in_o a_o false_a to_o leave_v out_o the_o ãâã_d word_n which_o be_v the_o key_n of_o all_o disputation_n to_o conveye_v word_n of_o his_o own_o which_o the_o author_n never_o think_v of_o to_o mispoint_v &_o mis-english_a the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n to_o ãâã_d their_o meaning_n that_o i_o can_v not_o tell_v whether_o any_o man_n have_v use_v so_o much_o in_o so_o little_a a_o treatise_n as_o in_o this_o one_o article_n of_o the_o real_a ââ¦sence_n ââ¦e_o be_v ââ¦ound_v to_o have_v do_v neither_o be_v it_o unknowen_a to_o yâ_z learn_v who_o have_v seen_v his_o book_n yâ_z hââ¦_n have_v use_v the_o like_a falsehood_n in_o yâ_z other_o article_n also_o ãâã_d by_o god_n grace_n the_o world_n shall_v see_v or_o it_o be_v long_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n judge_n the_o rest_n by_o this_o which_o i_o shall_v set_v before_o thiââ¦e_a eye_n and_o pray_v un_o âª_o too_o god_n yâ_z either_o m._n jewel_n may_v see_v his_o unhonest_a deal_n &_o ãâã_d himself_o or_o else_o that_o his_o folly_n may_v be_v ãâã_d to_o all_o man_n to_o thintent_v none_o may_v perish_v beside_o those_o who_o will_v not_o ââ¦denour_n by_o all_o mean_n to_o learn_v ãâã_d follow_v and_o to_o embrace_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n gospel_n and_o of_o the_o ãâã_d âª_o tholike_a church_n the_o
the_o relative_a quod_fw-la in_o latin_a in_o english_a which_o do_v so_o restrain_v the_o noun_n corpus_fw-la body_n unto_o that_o only_a meaning_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v the_o true_a body_n be_v give_v for_o we_o that_o no_o escape_n may_v be_v have_v beside_o infidelity_n and_o heresy_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v at_o large_a in_o my_o four_o book_n the_o 6._o chapter_n the_o 18._o circumstance_n if_o now_o this_o which_o be_v point_v unto_o be_v the_o real_a natural_a and_o sââ¦bstantial_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o die_v for_o we_o see_v this_o that_o he_o point_v unto_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o sacrament_n christ_n mean_v that_o in_o this_o sacrament_n his_o body_n be_v real_o natural_o &_o substantial_o present_a and_o therefore_o m._n jewel_n must_v subscribe_v seven_o jewel_n christ_n be_v the_o rock_n but_o yet_o not_o real_o 10._o saunder_n first_o these_o word_n be_v not_o speak_v of_o s._n paul_n with_o 57_o the_o intent_n to_o make_v any_o sacrament_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n 2._o two_o christ._n diverse_a nature_n be_v name_v in_o they_o which_o can_v never_o be_v one_o iââ¦_n substance_n but_o only_o in_o quality_n or_o in_o similitude_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n name_v one_o substance_n only_o and_o signify_v it_o alone_o real_o present_a 3._o it_o be_v not_o any_o one_o certain_a rock_n in_o number_n whereof_o s._n paul_n speak_v for_o the_o water_n flow_v out_o of_o two_o rock_n in_o two_o diverse_a 17._o part_n of_o the_o wilderness_n either_o of_o which_o do_v signify_v christ_n 20_o and_o they_o both_o be_v only_o one_o rock_n in_o meaning_n and_o in_o the_o substance_n figure_v 4._o therefore_o s._n paââ¦le_n mean_v only_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o rock_n the_o spiritual_a rock_n which_o in_o substance_n be_v christ_n himself_o they_o drink_v say_v he_o of_o the_o spiritual_a rock_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n 10_o be_v speak_v of_o a_o real_a truth_n make_v present_a at_o christ_n supper_n and_o show_v outward_o apart_o from_o christ_n own_o visible_a body_n 5._o he_o say_v not_o this_o rock_n point_v to_o it_o but_o the_o rock_n 6._o not_o be_v christ_n but_o be_v christ._n 7._o such_o effectua_n word_n follow_v not_o to_o show_v that_o any_o real_a rock_n be_v mean_v as_o these_o word_n be_v which_o 22._o be_v give_v for_o you_o which_o follow_v and_o expound_v the_o other_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n jewel_n d._n harding_n must_v seek_v help_n of_o 16_o or_o more_o sundry_a figure_n untruth_n not_o know_v to_o the_o old_a father_n viââ¦_n saunder_n 1._o you_o seek_v one_o figure_n for_o all_o which_o take_v away_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n supper_n from_o his_o external_a table_n from_o his_o hand_n from_o his_o word_n and_o from_o the_o apostle_n body_n 2._o d._n hardings_n figure_n be_v to_o defend_v christ_n word_n you_o to_o destroy_v they_o 3._o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o he_o be_v constrain_v to_o seek_v either_o sixten_n or_o six_o figure_n as_o it_o shall_v appear_v in_o due_a place_n jx_fw-la jewel_n the_o old_a father_n think_v it_o no_o heresy_n to_o expound_v christ_n untruth_n word_n by_o a_o figure_n saunder_n they_o think_v it_o hereââ¦ie_v to_o expound_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n by_o a_o rhetorical_a or_o grammatical_a figure_n as_o by_o synecdoche_n or_o metonymy_fw-la or_o any_o other_o which_o may_v exclude_v the_o substantial_a presence_n of_o the_o thing_n figure_v jewel_n christ_n give_v his_o disciple_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v the_o figure_n ââ¦_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n saunder_n he_o do_v so_o 1._o but_o he_o give_v such_o a_o figure_n of_o his_o own_o body_n which_o be_v also_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n as_o himself_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o father_n substance_n be_v also_o the_o self_n same_o substance_n with_o his_o 10._o father_n 2._o he_o give_v a_o true_a and_o not_o a_o false_a sign_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v false_a if_o this_o which_o he_o point_v to_o and_o affirm_v to_o be_v his_o body_n before_o be_v not_o in_o deed_n his_o body_n see_v the_o word_n signify_v so_o much_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v in_o my_o second_o book_n xij_o chapter_n 3._o he_o give_v a_o miraculouse_a &_o not_o a_o common_a figure_n in_o the_o second_o book_n xiij_o chapter_n 4._o a_o divine_a &_o not_o a_o rethorical_a figure_n in_o the_o second_o book_n fourteen_o chapter_n 5._o a_o mystical_a &_o not_o a_o artificial_a or_o natural_a figure_n in_o yâ_z five_o book_n sixteen_o chapter_n 6._o he_o give_v at_o his_o supper_n a_o figure_n of_o the_o new_a and_o not_o of_o yâ_z old_a testament_n that_o be_v to_o yas_n a_o figure_n which_o have_v the_o truth_n in_o it_o and_o not_o of_o that_o kind_n which_o only_o both_o betoken_v the_o truth_n 39_o absent_a from_o it_o which_o thing_n s._n augustine_n declare_v most_o evident_o say_v the_o old_a father_n do_v celebrate_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o thing_n to_o come_v when_o as_o yet_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n which_o the_o faithful_a know_v be_v sacrifice_n foretell_v in_o figure_n these_o sacrifice_n be_v as_o word_n that_o promise_v a_o thing_n be_v take_v away_o quid_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la datum_fw-la est_fw-la completiwm_fw-la what_o be_v it_o which_o be_v give_v as_o accomplish_v or_o perform_v the_o old_a figurative_a sacrifice_n which_o promise_v a_o true_a sacrifice_n s._n augustine_n ment_fw-mi answer_v corpus_fw-la quod_fw-la nostis_fw-la quod_fw-la utinam_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la iuditium_fw-la noveritis_fw-la the_o body_n which_o you_o know_v be_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o old_a figure_n the_o which_o body_n i_o will_v you_o may_v not_o know_v to_o your_o damnation_n and_o again_o exhibita_fw-la est_fw-la veritas_fw-la promissa_fw-la the_o promise_a truth_n be_v present_o bring_v forth_o in_o this_o body_n we_o be_v of_o this_o body_n we_o be_v partaker_n we_o know_v what_o we_o receive_v here_o aug._n s._n augustine_n manifest_o call_v the_o body_n which_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o very_a truth_n promise_v which_o accomplish_v the_o the_o old_a figure_n 7._o he_o give_v a_o figure_n but_o he_o speak_v not_o a_o figure_n you_o bring_v this_o authority_n to_o prove_v that_o christ_n word_n be_v expound_v by_o a_o figure_n as_o though_o s._n augustine_n think_v the_o speech_n to_o be_v figurative_a for_o so_o your_o word_n expound_v by_o a_o sigure_n must_v import_v but_o this_o authority_n prove_v not_o your_o intent_n for_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o ââ¦_n christ_n deed_n and_o not_o of_o his_o word_n 8._o the_o name_n of_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o they_o be_v usual_o take_v of_o man_n do_v signify_v such_o a_o visible_a a_o corruptible_a and_o mortal_a nature_n as_o all_o we_o have_v which_o thing_n s._n augustine_n well_o know_v and_o of_o 10._o all_o man_n most_o deep_o poââ¦dering_v the_o same_o in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o be_v afeard_a least_o child_n will_v think_v that_o christ_n have_v walk_v none_o otherwise_o upon_o the_o earth_n then_o in_o the_o shape_n of_o bread_n for_o that_o respect_n he_o always_o teach_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o sign_n and_o figure_n of_o christ_n visible_a body_n after_o such_o sort_n s._n paul_n speak_v of_o christ_n flesh_n say_v although_o we_o have_v know_v christ_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n yet_o we_o ââ¦_n know_v he_o not_o in_o which_o word_n he_o mean_v not_o that_o christ_n now_o lack_v his_o flesh_n but_o that_o he_o now_o be_v no_o more_o visible_o seen_v in_o his_o former_a mortal_a shape_n treatise_n 9_o your_o abuse_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o this_o behalf_n if_o it_o come_v of_o ignorance_n you_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v a_o preacher_n as_o who_o understand_v not_o your_o book_n if_o it_o come_v of_o malice_n you_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v a_o man_n as_o who_o delight_v in_o lead_v soul_n to_o damnation_n jewel_n tertullian_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o figure_n of_o mie_a body_n marc._n saunder_n he_o mean_v so_o as_o i_o say_v before_o s._n augustine_n do_v mean_a which_o solution_n may_v serve_v all_o this_o whole_a article_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v so_o well_o arm_v that_o every_o word_n you_o bring_v may_v be_v turn_v upon_o your_o own_o head_n tertullian_n do_v contra_fw-la witness_v that_o the_o marcionite_n bring_v forth_o a_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n marc._n where_o it_o be_v write_v of_o christ_n manhood_n accepta_fw-la effigy_n serui_fw-la 2._o non_fw-la veritate_fw-la the_o shape_n of_o a_o servant_n be_v take_v not_o the_o truth_n say_v the_o marcionite_n &_o in_o similitudine_fw-la hominis_fw-la non_fw-la in_o homine_fw-la and_o in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o man_n not_o a_o man_n &_o figura_fw-la inventus_fw-la homo_fw-la non_fw-la substantia_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la carne_fw-la
the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n set_v forth_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o catholic_a faith_n by_o nicolas_n saunder_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n with_o a_o confutation_n of_o such_o false_a doctrine_n as_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n m._n nowel_n challenge_n or_o m._n juel_n reply_v have_v utter_v touch_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n manhv_n what_o be_v this_o the_o figure_n exod._n 16._o this_o be_v the_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v give_v you_o to_o eat_v the_o prophecy_n proverb_n 9_o come_v eat_v my_o bread_n &_o drink_v that_o wine_n which_o ihave_v mix_v for_o you_o the_o promise_n joan._n 6._o the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n the_o performance_n matt._n 26._o luc._n 22._o he_o give_v say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_fw-ge for_fw-mi you_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 10._o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v is_z the_o communicate_v of_o our_o lord_n body_n the_o belefe_v of_o the_o church_n hilar._n lib._n 8._o de_fw-la trinit_fw-la both_o our_o lord_n have_v profess_v &_o we_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v flesh_n in_o deed_n the_o custom_n of_o heretic_n tertul._n de_fw-fr resur_n car_fw-fr the_o contrary_a part_n reise_v up_o trouble_n by_o presence_n of_o figure_n lovanii_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1566._o cvm_fw-la regiae_n maiestatis_fw-la privilegio_fw-la sub_fw-la 20._o mââ¦sis_fw-la augusti_fw-la anni_fw-la 1565._o permissum_fw-la esset_fw-la nicolao_n saundero_n anglo_n sacrae_fw-la theologiae_n doctori_fw-la ut_fw-la ãâã_d in_fw-la scriptum_fw-la the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n set_v forth_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n imprimere_fw-la posset_n posteaquà m_fw-la prodiisset_fw-la libre_fw-la quidam_fw-la a_o duersus_fw-la catholican_n fidem_fw-la quââ¦m_fw-la d._n nicolaus_n defendisset_fw-la anglicè_fw-la conscriptus_fw-la quem_fw-la etiam_fw-la confutandum_fw-la sumpsit_fw-la renovato_fw-la privilegio_fw-la concessum_fw-la est_fw-la eidem_fw-la nicolao_n ut_fw-la ei_fw-la unâ_fw-la cum_fw-la confutatione_n contrariae_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la suum_fw-la librum_fw-la typis_fw-la mandare_fw-la ac_fw-la impunè_fw-la distrahere_fw-la liceat_fw-la datum_n bruxellis_n 22._o decembris_fw-la anno_fw-la christi_fw-la 1565._o s._n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr torre_n approbatio_fw-la sex_n priorum_fw-la librorum_fw-la author_n ipse_fw-la huius_fw-la voluminis_fw-la nicolaus_n saunder_n sacrae_fw-la theologiae_n professor_n eius_fw-la est_fw-la apud_fw-la nos_fw-la fidei_fw-la ut_fw-la sine_fw-la aliquo_fw-la metu_fw-la tutò_fw-la posset_n ewlgari_fw-la estque_fw-la praeterà _fw-la à _fw-la multis_fw-la anglici_fw-la idiomatis_fw-la &_o sacrae_fw-la theologiae_n peritissimis_fw-la perlectum_fw-la qui_fw-la illud_fw-la meritò_fw-la plurimum_fw-la commendarunt_fw-la cunerus_n petri_n pastor_n sancti_fw-la petri_n lovanââ¦_n 7._o august_n anno._n 1565._o to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o ouââ¦_n saviour_n jesus_n christ_n under_o the_o foorme_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n all_o honour_n praisc_fw-mi and_o thanks_n be_v give_v for_o ââ¦uer_v if_o he_o that_o mainten_v a_o right_a good_a cause_n yet_o partly_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o deceit_n and_o suttiltie_n of_o his_o adversary_n partly_o for_o mistrust_v of_o his_o own_o knowledge_n and_o memoric_n dare_v not_o appear_v in_o judgement_n without_o his_o advocate_n or_o proââ¦tour_n with_o ãâã_d see_v yâ_z send_v forth_o of_o a_o book_n into_o yâ_z light_a of_z yâ_z world_n be_v yâ_z danger_n to_o have_v it_o summon_v to_o so_o many_o court_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v bring_v into_o house_n &_o yâ_z appear_v before_o so_o many_o judge_n as_o be_v reader_n thereof_o what_o advocate_n and_o proctor_n yea_o rather_o what_o doctor_n and_o patron_n be_o i_o constrain_v to_o seek_v who_o do_v not_o only_o set_v forth_o mie_a book_n to_o be_v read_v of_o whatsoever_o english_n man_n but_o also_o write_v of_o such_o a_o matter_n as_o be_v of_o most_o weight_n be_v most_o diligent_o examine_v in_o these_o our_o day_n and_o wherein_o i_o be_o sure_a to_o find_v as_o well_o the_o lutheran_n as_o the_o zwinglians_n though_o utter_o dissagre_v between_o themselves_o yet_o against_o i_o not_o only_o agre_v to_o be_v severe_a judge_n in_o the_o read_n but_o also_o to_o be_v cruel_a adversary_n in_o their_o judgement_n which_o see_v it_o be_v so_o let_v noman_n wonder_v that_o i_o not_o mistrust_v any_o whit_n the_o universal_a cause_n of_o the_o catholics_n but_o misdoubt_v my_o own_o wit_n and_o the_o shameless_a shift_n of_o our_o adversary_n have_v choose_v to_o dedicate_v this_o work_n to_o yâ_z mysteri_fw-la of_o thy_o glorious_a body_n and_o blood_n lord_n jesu_n christ_n to_o ãâã_d those_o that_o now_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o misjudge_v yâ_z manifest_a &_o effectual_a word_n of_o thy_o blessing_n and_o thanksgeve_a pronounce_v by_o thââ¦o_o in_o thy_o last_o supper_n make_v a_o figurative_a speech_n of_o a_o proper_a and_o whereas_o thy_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n itself_o worthy_a of_o all_o honour_n be_v through_o thy_o godhead_n make_v real_o present_a teach_v not_o withstand_v for_o their_o part_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n still_o to_o remain_v and_o therefore_o a_o idol_n to_o be_v false_o ââ¦et_v up_o and_o worship_v by_o the_o catholics_n to_o th'inteââ¦t_n i_o say_v those_o false_a teacher_n may_v either_o through_o thy_o grace_n be_v convert_v from_o thââ¦r_n misbelefe_v whereof_o i_o most_o humble_o beseech_v the_o or_o else_o if_o they_o will_v stubbââ¦nly_o persist_v in_o their_o detestable_a opinion_n may_v even_o present_o be_v confound_v with_o the_o majesty_n of_o thy_o name_n who_o glory_n they_o oppââ¦gne_v for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o dishonourable_a to_o thy_o goodness_n then_o if_o it_o may_v be_v true_o report_v that_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n do_v institute_v his_o chief_a sacrament_n in_o such_o word_n the_o which_o either_o be_v true_a and_o not_o beleve_v shall_v bââ¦rden_v our_o conscience_n with_o infidelity_n or_o be_v earnest_o beleve_v and_o yet_o not_o conceaââ¦ed_v in_o proper_a speech_n shall_v bring_v we_o into_o manifest_a daââ¦nger_n of_o idolatry_n since_o no_o faithful_a man_n beleve_v this_o to_o be_v thy_o body_n as_o thou_o have_v say_v it_o be_v can_v abââ¦teine_v 98._o from_o the_o singular_a worship_v of_o that_o singular_a fotestole_n of_o god_n now_o soever_o it_o be_v with_o other_o man_n i_o adore_v thou_o my_o god_n and_o lord_n real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n after_o cousecration_n du_o make_v beseech_v thou_o of_o pardon_n for_o my_o sin_n by_o the_o same_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o thy_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v make_v once_o with_o bloodshede_v upon_o the_o cross_n cause_v the_o 1_o fruit_n thereof_o to_o be_v daily_o apply_v in_o that_o clean_a and_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o this_o great_a mystery_n of_o thy_o real_a presence_n i_o dedicate_v these_o my_o pain_n as_o to_o the_o most_o undoubted_a fountain_n cause_n and_o supporter_n of_o they_o in_o this_o faith_n i_o be_v baptize_v and_o make_v a_o member_n of_o thy_o mystical_a body_n in_o the_o hope_n to_o maintain_v this_o ãâã_d miââ¦_n parent_n and_o friend_n do_v set_v i_o to_o school_n in_o the_o vehement_a love_n and_o affection_n thereof_o i_o have_v write_v this_o rude_a and_o simple_a work_n and_o to_o who_o shall_v i_o refer_v the_o praise_n and_o thanks_n for_o it_o but_o unto_o the_o alone_a or_o of_o who_o shall_v i_o crave_v the_o protection_n thereof_o but_o of_o thou_o see_v thou_o only_o be_v a_o meet_a patron_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o any_o book_n which_o only_a art_n always_o present_a wheresoever_o and_o whensoever_o it_o shall_v be_v examine_v to_o the_o honour_n therefore_o of_o thy_o body_n and_o blood_n i_o offer_v this_o poor_a mite_n of_o my_o simple_a understanding_n thy_o merciful_a gift_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v trust_v thou_o will_v not_o suffer_v neither_o the_o truth_n of_o thy_o gospel_n to_o be_v long_o unrestored_a in_o the_o desolate_a i_o will_v of_o pitiful_a england_n nor_o i_o thy_o poor_a servant_n through_o ãâã_d or_o naughty_a live_n to_o perish_v everlastinglie_o amen_o the_o content_n of_o the_o first_o book_n 1._o the_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n 2._o note_n concern_v the_o translation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n in_o this_o argument_n 3._o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n 4._o what_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v according_a to_o the_o belefe_v of_o the_o catholics_n 5._o what_o it_o be_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n 6._o a_o special_a error_n of_o caluin_n concern_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n be_v confute_v the_o preface_n to_o the_o christian_a reader_n who_o so_o will_v avoid_v the_o danger_n of_o pride_n of_o schism_n and_o of_o hearesie_n he_o have_v no_o great_a help_n thereunto_o in_o this_o 3._o world_n then_o to_o mistrust_v his_o own_o judgement_n and_o to_o follow_v the_o authority_n of_o great_a wisdom_n
small_a confidence_n in_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o therefore_o find_v fault_n with_o m._n juell_n because_o he_o give_v we_o that_o most_o large_a scope_n of_o all_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o have_v write_v for_o the_o space_n of_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v here_o in_o earth_n and_o of_o aââ¦l_a counsel_n keep_v in_o the_o say_a continuance_n of_o time_n whereas_o m._n nowell_n will_v have_v have_v he_o tie_v we_o straight_o to_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o certain_a and_o only_a judge_n say_v m._n nowell_n in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n wherein_o he_o affirm_v we_o can_v say_v nothing_o at_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n m._n nowell_n be_v so_o certain_a and_o upryght_o ââ¦udges_n that_o if_o they_o cold_n speak_v they_o will_v remove_v out_o of_o their_o body_n coââ¦rtes_n all_o such_o ãâã_d tongue_n as_o say_v this_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n this_o i_o say_v which_o be_v make_v at_o yâ_z holy_a table_n of_o christ_n supper_n this_n âª_o which_o after_o blessing_n and_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n speak_v be_v break_v and_o deliver_v this_o which_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v take_v and_o eat_v if_o scripture_n may_v be_v hear_v shall_v he_o leave_v one_o hour_n that_o see_v a_o thing_n so_o exaââ¦ly_o take_v and_o point_v unto_o and_o hear_v the_o same_o with_o so_o many_o circumstance_n all_o tendinge_v to_o the_o make_v a_o new_a mystery_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n affirm_v to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v give_v 22._o for_o we_o yet_o will_v neither_o care_n sore_o the_o word_n nor_o the_o deed_n but_o stout_o ãâã_d that_o this_o which_o be_v see_v and_o take_v be_v not_o by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n make_v his_o own_o real_a body_n and_o yet_o have_v we_o nothing_o at_o all_o to_o say_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n some_o other_o grant_v we_o have_v somewhat_o to_o say_v in_o this_o question_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n but_o not_o in_o any_o other_o who_o i_o beseech_v to_o suspend_v their_o judgement_n until_o they_o know_v what_o they_o say_v for_o not_o if_o they_o understand_v not_o how_o scripture_n belong_v to_o we_o in_o other_o question_n we_o do_v therefore_o lack_v scripture_n from_o the_o high_a scripture_n question_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o the_o most_o abject_a in_o our_o adversary_n reputation_n of_o indulgence_n and_o pardon_n the_o catholic_a church_n never_o lack_v nor_o shall_v at_o any_o time_n lack_v plenty_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o it_o shall_v appear_v when_o particular_a occasion_n serve_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n because_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o bring_v forth_o at_o once_o what_o may_v be_v say_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o all_o the_o conââ¦_n of_o our_o age_n i_o have_v begââ¦ne_v first_o with_o the_o chief_n of_o all_o which_o be_v concern_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o ãâã_d of_o bread_n and_o wine_n beseech_v god_n i_o may_v have_v grace_n and_o time_n to_o bring_v in_o other_o question_n other_o like_a 1._o scripture_n i_o have_v examine_v yâ_z word_n of_o christ_n supper_n i_o have_v 2._o note_v the_o ciââ¦cumstances_n of_o thing_n do_v and_o say_v there_o i_o haââ¦_n ãâã_d confer_v the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o one_o place_n with_o they_o that_o in_o the_o same_o matter_n be_v write_v in_o other_o place_n as_o well_o of_o the_o old_a as_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n i_o have_v join_v the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o 4._o year_n to_o show_v they_o think_v as_o the_o catholic_n now_o do_v who_o they_o call_v papist_n but_o what_o circumstance_n what_o confereââ¦ce_n of_o holy_a scripture_n can_v help_v hour_n adversary_n matter_n before_o they_o can_v join_v one_o place_n of_o scripture_n with_o a_o other_o they_o must_v have_v some_o one_o clear_a and_o plain_a by_o which_o the_o other_o that_o be_v more_o dark_a and_o obsââ¦re_a may_v be_v interpret_v and_o expound_v but_o what_o plain_a place_n can_v that_o be_v in_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n for_o if_o the_o word_n and_o dede_n that_o make_v the_o supper_n be_v obscure_a if_o thââ¦y_v that_o sulfill_v the_o prophecy_n and_o promise_n goinge_v before_o be_v dark_a and_o figurative_a where_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o find_v a_o prophecy_n a_o plain_a figure_n a_o psalm_n a_o promise_n more_o eââ¦ident_a than_o the_o perfoââ¦mance_n thereof_o be_v do_v not_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n as_o fulfil_v so_o make_v plain_a and_o open_v all_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n even_o so_o whatsoever_o be_v browght_fw-mi apperteininge_n to_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n supper_n must_v needs_o be_v more_o uncertain_a and_o less_o evident_a than_o the_o supper_n itself_o which_o be_v the_o end_n and_o performance_n and_o therefore_o the_o open_v and_o interpretation_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n who_o so_o therefore_o make_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n figurative_a or_o uncertain_a much_o more_o he_o make_v all_o other_o place_n that_o belong_v to_o that_o argument_n obscure_a and_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v what_o certainty_n then_o can_v their_o belefe_v have_v who_o neither_o have_v a_o evident_a faith_n come_n from_o their_o ancestoure_n to_o they_o nor_o any_o manifest_a place_n of_o scripture_n by_o which_o they_o may_v judge_v and_o try_v other_o such_o scripture_n as_o they_o bring_v for_o their_o figurative_a doctrine_n as_o they_o imagine_v withowt_n any_o prouf_n at_o all_o that_o they_o have_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n so_o i_o think_v they_o imagine_v a_o gospel_n where_o it_o be_v wââ¦tten_v this_o be_v not_o my_o body_n or_o this_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n but_o as_o with_o thy_o eye_n thou_o may_v read_v it_o distinct_o write_v in_o four_o place_n of_o the_o thââ¦_n ãâã_d this_o be_v my_o body_n so_o if_o thou_o be_v of_o any_o good_a year_n thou_o ãâã_d ââ¦ember_v the_o time_n when_o noman_n profess_v the_o belese_n that_o they_o now_o do_v profess_v and_o far_o if_o god_n grant_v the_o to_o leave_v but_o twenty_o year_n more_o thou_o shall_v see_v many_o a_o thousand_o of_o their_o own_o fellowship_n believe_v the_o coââ¦trarie_a of_o that_o which_o in_o many_o article_n be_v now_o profess_a by_o the_o ãâã_d themselves_o for_o heresy_n can_v not_o stay_v until_o 3._o it_o come_v at_o the_o length_n to_o infidelity_n but_o as_o i_o say_v thou_o be_v sure_a of_o the_o gospel_n where_o it_o be_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o sure_a of_o the_o church_n where_o ââ¦t_a both_o be_v and_o be_v beleve_v to_o be_v christ_n body_n after_o consecration_n so_o can_v they_o never_o be_v sure_a where_o it_o be_v write_v this_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n nor_o yet_o can_v they_o be_v sure_a that_o ever_o it_o be_v beleve_v in_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o yerââ¦s_n to_o have_v ââ¦ene_v a_o figure_n without_o the_o real_a truth_n of_o christ_n sââ¦bstance_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n tell_v i_o master_n i_o beseech_v you_o since_o before_o your_o ââ¦ies_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n lie_v sound_v against_o your_o opinion_n and_o in_o your_o knowledge_n and_o experience_n you_o have_v see_v all_o christian_a people_n profââ¦sse_v a_o ãâã_d faith_n unto_o you_o by_o what_o evidence_n by_o what_o invincible_a authority_n can_v you_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n agree_v with_o you_o be_v it_o write_v in_o the_o gospel_n it_o sayââ¦th_v 1._o the_o contrary_a in_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v it_o come_v to_o 2._o your_o hand_n by_o tradition_n all_o tradition_n make_v against_o you_o whereby_o we_o be_v tawght_fw-mi the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v make_v by_o christ_n word_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n do_v all_o nation_n and_o faithsull_n 3._o pââ¦ople_n bear_v wytnes_n to_o your_o opinion_n it_o be_v clean_a contrary_n for_o you_o can_v name_v no_o people_n where_o your_o opinion_n be_v profess_v before_o these_o fifty_o year_n albeit_o a_o few_o have_v in_o corner_n now_o and_o then_o ãâã_d it_o as_o now_o some_o or_o other_o always_o ãâã_d the_o bless_a trinity_n do_v general_a couââ¦cels_n teach_v you_o to_o think_v as_o yoââ¦_n 4._o dor_n they_o be_v clean_o on_o the_o other_o ãâã_d as_o which_o profess_v a_o unbloody_a lat._n sacrisice_n and_o a_o ãâã_d of_o christ_n upon_o the_o altar_n and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v the_o awcieut_n father_n tell_v you_o that_o they_o 5._o ãâã_d beleve_v so_o they_o tell_v you_o clean_o contrary_a as_o who_o forbid_v you_o to_o ãâã_d of_o christ_n word_n and_o bid_v we_o adore_v his_o flesh_n in_o the_o mystery_n where_o be_v then_o this_o faith_n of_o six_o hundred_o year_n prove_v admit_v you_o have_v a_o word_n or_o two_o that_o seem_v to_o favour_n your_o
a_o strong_a stout_a effectual_a figure_n join_v with_o word_n of_o promise_n stir_v up_o the_o hart_n of_o he_o that_o hear_v the_o promise_n and_o worthy_o rââ¦aveth_v the_o pledge_n thereof_o to_o mount_n into_o heaven_n and_o there_o by_o faith_n to_o feed_v in_o spirit_n upon_o christ_n own_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o he_o in_o earth_n corporal_o feed_v upon_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o caluin_n teach_v bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v the_o figure_n and_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o be_v word_n of_o preach_v or_o of_o promise_a christ_n body_n to_o they_o that_o do_v believe_v o_o pitiful_a toss_n and_o tear_v of_o god_n holy_a mystery_n be_v those_o word_n which_o make_v and_o show_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n present_a word_n of_o promise_n but_o hereof_o i_o will_v speak_v more_o hereafter_o now_o concern_v that_o he_o will_v we_o to_o go_v into_o heaven_n by_o faith_n know_v you_o not_o that_o because_o our_o nature_n be_v not_o able_a to_o ãâã_d ââ¦y_n to_o the_o seat_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n therefore_o yâ_z ãâã_d oââ¦_n god_n come_v ãâã_d from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n to_o lead_v and_o listen_v we_o up_o to_o the_o ââ¦ition_n oââ¦_n his_o father_n know_v you_o not_o that_o because_o our_o body_n more_o quick_o ââ¦weth_v 9_o our_o soul_n dounward_a than_o our_o spirit_n be_v able_a to_o draw_v our_o body_n upward_o therefore_o christ_n ãâã_d not_o only_o yâ_z soul_n but_o also_o the_o body_n of_o man_n geve_v we_o in_o his_o last_o supper_n that_o body_n of_o he_o to_o th'inthent_v our_o body_n take_v hold_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n of_o his_o body_n may_v be_v carry_v into_o heaven_n to_o have_v the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o because_o faith_n without_o th'incarnation_n of_o christ_n can_v lift_v up_o our_o body_n therefore_o christ_n fulfil_v ââ¦aith_n with_o truth_n and_o have_v take_v of_o the_o virgin_n our_o nature_n give_v his_o body_n in_o deed_n to_o our_o body_n up_o and_o soul_n yâ_z we_o again_o may_v in_o body_n &_o soul_n be_v lift_v up_o with_o it_o as_o a_o man_n that_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o deep_a pit_n call_v by_o the_o mean_a of_o his_o tongue_n for_o help_v but_o when_o a_o cord_n be_v let_v down_o to_o he_o for_o the_o aid_n and_o ãâã_d of_o he_o it_o be_v not_o then_o sufficient_a to_o use_v his_o tongue_n still_o and_o to_o let_v his_o hand_n alone_o even_o so_o our_o faith_n call_v for_o christ_n to_o come_v from_o heaven_n to_o help_v we_o to_o let_v down_o the_o cord_n of_o his_o humanity_n &_o of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o shall_v we_o now_o when_o it_o be_v let_v down_o to_o be_v fasten_v in_o our_o body_n and_o in_o the_o bottom_n of_o our_o heart_n by_o eat_v it_o real_o shall_v we_o now_o refuse_v it_o and_o say_v we_o will_v go_v into_o heaven_n by_o faith_n ourselves_o and_o there_o take_v hold_v of_o christ_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v save_v and_o deliver_v out_o of_o the_o deep_a vale_n of_o misery_n as_o though_o the_o cord_n shall_v have_v need_v to_o have_v ben_fw-mi let_v down_o if_o we_o can_v have_v fasten_v our_o body_n to_o any_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o yet_o our_o body_n be_v they_o which_o weigh_v down_o our_o soul_n 9_o chââ¦ely_o but_o what_o mean_v i_o to_o reason_n in_o this_o place_n of_o that_o point_n whereof_o in_o all_o the_o book_n follow_v by_o god_n grace_n i_o will_v full_o entreat_v for_o as_o it_o happen_v they_o be_v the_o scholar_n of_o calnin_n with_o who_o special_o we_o must_v have_v to_o do_v at_o this_o time_n of_o who_o learning_n and_o prââ¦ncie_n âª_o i_o most_o crueââ¦y_o crave_v this_o favour_n that_o none_o of_o they_o all_o mentary_n thinââ¦_n i_o to_o speak_v against_o their_o person_n but_o only_o against_o their_o opinion_n and_o so_o to_o speak_v against_o they_o as_o i_o be_o instruct_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n not_o grant_v that_o either_o they_o love_v more_o entire_o or_o study_v more_o careful_o or_o reverence_v more_o hearty_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o my_o father_n brethren_n and_o i_o myself_o do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o jesus_n christ._n only_o about_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o i_o rather_o will_v trust_v the_o common_a iudgeââ¦ent_n of_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n theu_o my_o own_o private_a election_n and_o fantasy_n or_o the_o devise_n of_o a_o new_o plant_v congregation_n a_o catholic_a man_n must_v keep_v the_o most_o ancient_a path_n and_o most_o 24._o common_o tread_v high_a way_n privy_a bypathe_n carry_v mââ¦n_v a_o side_n to_o the_o ãâã_d den_n of_o ãâã_d my_o purpose_n be_v to_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o ter_z word_n of_o god_n special_o against_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o caluin_n that_o christ_n geve_v in_o his_o last_o supper_n the_o true_a substance_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n not_o only_o to_o our_o soul_n by_o word_n of_o promise_n but_o also_o to_o our_o body_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o apology_n thereof_o have_v set_v forth_o to_o the_o world_n a_o other_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o that_o wce_n reââ¦ued_v of_o our_o fore_a father_n i_o will_v first_o disprove_v and_o confute_v the_o word_n and_o reason_n oââ¦_n the_o apology_n and_o afterward_o will_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n prove_v the_o catholic_a faith_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o ancient_a father_n but_o first_o of_o all_o i_o must_v declare_v what_o we_o catholics_n and_o what_o the_o protestant_n and_o sacramentary_n believe_v the_o supper_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v that_o see_v i_o make_v the_o title_n of_o my_o book_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n it_o may_v straight_o appear_v who_o ãâã_d be_v more_o worthy_a to_o be_v institute_v of_o christ_n that_o which_o we_o through_o his_o word_n believe_v or_o that_o which_o they_o assign_v he_o against_o yâ_z ãâã_d truth_n of_o his_o own_o word_n ¶_o what_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n be_v according_a to_o the_o belââ¦e_n of_o the_o catholic_n because_o my_o purpose_n be_v to_o entreat_v of_o the_o bless_a supper_n of_o our_o lord_n i_o think_v it_o best_a to_o declare_v before_o hand_n what_o we_o take_v that_o supper_n to_o be_v show_v withal_o how_o the_o sacramentary_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o refoorm_v the_o abuse_n thereof_o have_v take_v away_o the_o whole_a supper_n of_o christ_n and_o give_v we_o a_o bare_a drink_n of_o their_o own_o ãâã_d and_o whence_o may_v that_o be_v more_o true_o and_o sound_o prove_v then_o chiââ¦fly_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o next_o out_o of_o the_o monument_n of_o the_o a_o aââ¦cient_a father_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v a_o most_o faithful_a witness_n oââ¦_n the_o institution_n of_o christ_n the_o monument_n and_o writing_n of_o ancient_a father_n do_v show_v the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o thing_n i_o speak_v not_o as_o though_o the_o catholic_a doctor_n of_o this_o late_a tyire_n have_v not_o the_o self_n same_o holy_a ghost_n which_o the_o first_o have_v but_o see_v our_o adversary_n refuse_v albereus_fw-la magnus_fw-la thomas_n of_o aquine_n bonaventure_n alexander_n of_o ââ¦ales_n dionyââ¦ns_v the_o carthusian_n nicolaus_n de_fw-fr lyra_n gabriel_n biel_n and_o such_o other_o man_n of_o excellent_a virtue_n wit_n and_o learning_n who_o not_o withstand_v by_o a_o rule_n that_o s._n auguââ¦stine_n pelagianun_n geve_v aught_o to_o be_v of_o credit_n in_o so_o much_o as_o all_o they_o live_v before_o this_o question_n rise_v beââ¦wene_v the_o sacramentary_n and_o we_o and_o therefore_o can_v not_o bear_v nor_o show_v more_o affection_n to_o the_o one_o side_n then_o to_o the_o other_o but_o see_v our_o adversary_n refuse_v they_o for_o ãâã_d and_o yet_o follow_v man_n of_o late_a ãâã_d as_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la ãâã_d we_o be_v content_a to_o put_v all_o the_o matter_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o old_a doctor_n and_o to_o begin_v as_o we_o promise_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n thus_o write_v s._n paul_n in_o his_o first_o ãâã_d to_o the_o corinthian_n conuenientibus_fw-la vobis_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la iam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la dominicam_fw-la coenam_fw-la manducare_fw-la 11._o unusquisque_fw-la enim_fw-la svam_fw-la coenam_fw-la praesumit_fw-la ad_fw-la manducandum_fw-la when_o you_o come_v together_o now_o there_o be_v no_o eat_n of_o our_o lord_n supper_n for_o every_o man_n take_v ãâã_d his_o own_o supper_n to_o eat_v by_o the_o name_n of_o supper_n in_o the_o old_a time_n that_o one_o meal_n be_v mean_v 11_o which_o ordinary_o be_v make_v after_o noon_n and_o it_o serve_v for_o dinner_n and_o supper_n the_o corinthian_n come_v together_o to_o yâ_z holy_a communion_n tarry_v not_o one_o for_o the_o other_o but_o
that_o none_o other_o thing_n can_v ãâã_d infer_v upon_o those_o word_n than_o what_o thing_n this_o be_v as_o we_o say_v or_o what_o thing_n this_o bread_n do_v signify_v as_o the_o sacramentary_n teach_v admit_v now_o it_o be_v express_o say_v this_o bread_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o sense_n be_v salse_o ascribe_v to_o those_o word_n by_o the_o zwinglians_n yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v thereupon_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v promise_v to_o our_o soul_n but_o only_o that_o by_o this_o bread_n we_o be_v bring_v to_o remember_v christ._n now_o as_o for_o eat_v it_o be_v command_v and_o not_o promise_v caluin_n have_v the_o chief_n property_n of_o a_o heretic_n which_o be_v to_o be_v singular_a and_o therein_o he_o delight_v so_o much_o that_o albeit_o he_o be_v determine_v not_o to_o tarry_v in_o the_o faith_n wherein_o he_o be_v christen_v religion_n yet_o he_o will_v neither_o go_v to_o luther_n who_o first_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o we_o nor_o to_o zuinglius_fw-la who_o sect_n he_o favour_v rather_o but_o he_o will_v make_v a_o religion_n of_o his_o own_o and_o therefore_o he_o devise_v a_o new_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n affirm_v this_o be_v my_o body_n not_o to_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o bread_n as_o both_o catholics_n lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n after_o diverse_a meaning_n do_v confess_v but_o to_o be_v word_n of_o preach_v make_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o stand_v about_o the_o priest_n and_o that_o these_o word_n promise_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n as_o very_o as_o that_o bread_n be_v real_o eat_v into_o their_o body_n and_o yet_o neither_o be_v the_o word_n conceiââ¦ed_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o promise_v neither_o do_v they_o speak_v of_o faith_n or_o death_n or_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o eat_v bread_n be_v not_o this_o a_o strange_a sense_n to_o pick_v out_o of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o if_o it_o be_v say_v master_n believe_v that_o christ_n be_v dead_a and_o rise_v again_o and_o then_o as_o this_o bread_n be_v eat_v of_o your_o body_n so_o certain_o shall_v you_o feed_v of_o his_o body_n in_o faith_n &_o spirit_n do_v ââ¦uer_o any_o man_n hear_v of_o such_o a_o ãâã_d hoc_fw-la this_o do_v signify_v and_o show_v to_o caluin_n the_o bread_n which_o must_v be_v eat_v at_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n and_o point_v also_o to_o a_o spiritual_a food_n which_o be_v promise_v est_fw-la be_v do_v stand_v both_o proper_o for_o the_o present_a time_n in_o yâ_z it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n at_o the_o time_n of_o speak_v and_o also_o unproper_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v in_o that_o it_o be_v a_o promise_n of_o his_o body_n to_o be_v eat_v spiritual_o corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la my_o body_n do_v signify_v to_o he_o the_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n take_v by_o mouth_n and_o the_o strength_n or_o virtue_n therââ¦of_o that_o shall_v be_v take_v by_o faith_n and_o spirit_n put_v together_o this_o bread_n which_o you_o bodily_a eat_v be_v the_o sign_n &_o this_o thing_n which_o i_o promise_v that_o your_o soul_n shall_v eat_v shall_v be_v the_o strength_n or_o efficacy_n of_o my_o body_n and_o yet_o he_o add_v far_a of_o his_o own_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v christ_n death_n and_o resurrection_n this_o be_v the_o sermon_n which_o caluin_n say_v be_v make_v at_o christ_n supper_n wherein_o every_o word_n must_v signify_v at_o once_o two_o or_o three_o thing_n and_o one_o verb_n in_o one_o tense_n must_v signify_v two_o time_n and_o the_o same_o word_n body_n must_v signify_v two_o propriety_n and_o yet_o neither_o of_o they_o both_o proper_o for_o whether_o body_n stand_v for_o sign_n of_o body_n as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o take_v in_o respect_n of_o bread_n it_o stand_v unproper_o or_o whether_o iââ¦_n stand_v for_o efficacy_n of_o body_n as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o take_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o communicant_n it_o stand_v unproper_o whereas_o the_o proper_a signification_n thereof_o be_v to_o signify_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n if_o we_o press_v he_o out_o of_o s._n paul_n and_o 11_o out_o of_o the_o father_n that_o evil_a man_n eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n than_o he_o will_v answer_v they_o eat_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n without_o promise_n or_o efficacy_n if_o we_o say_v that_o good_a man_n eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n he_o expound_v it_o in_o such_o sense_n that_o they_o first_o have_v it_o promise_v they_o &_o ââ¦ate_v both_o a_o certain_a pledge_n bodily_a and_o in_o their_o soul_n a_o spiritual_a efficacy_n thereof_o o_o crafty_a deviser_n if_o thou_o can_v thus_o deceive_v a_o sort_n of_o miserable_a and_o either_o unlern_v or_o ungraciouse_a man_n think_v thou_o to_o deceive_v god_n or_o to_o escape_v his_o terrible_a judgement_n agree_v at_o the_o last_o how_o every_o word_n shall_v be_v so_o take_v that_o thy_o interpretation_n may_v be_v like_o itself_o let_v not_o the_o same_o word_n be_v now_o a_o sign_n now_o a_o pledge_n now_o a_o promise_n now_o a_o efficacy_n &_o now_o again_o no_o efficacy_n no_o promise_n no_o pledge_n but_o only_o a_o sign_n we_o believe_v that_o every_o word_n stand_v proper_o and_o that_o both_o evil_a and_o good_a receive_v one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n word_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o as_o one_o medicine_n receive_v of_o two_o diverse_a complexion_n work_v not_o one_o effect_n so_o the_o good_a man_n have_v a_o good_a effect_n by_o eat_v worthy_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o evil_a have_v condemnation_n by_o eat_v it_o unworthe_o thus_o we_o take_v the_o word_n body_n for_o the_o real_a substance_n of_o the_o body_n the_o verb_n est_fw-la be_v we_o take_v proper_o because_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n christ_n body_n when_o the_o word_n be_v speak_v this_o we_o say_v do_v final_o point_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n as_o then_o prââ¦ently_o make_v under_o the_o foorm_n of_o bread_n in_o our_o interpretation_n there_o be_v no_o inconstancy_n no_o impropriety_n no_o change_n of_o signification_n in_o the_o same_o word_n no_o bare_a promise_v of_o a_o thing_n to_o come_v bââ¦t_v a_o present_a perfoormance_n if_o any_o man_n ask_v by_o what_o scripture_n i_o convince_v caluin_n i_o will_v first_o ââ¦now_v by_o what_o scripture_n he_o prove_v his_o lewed_a interpretation_n shall_v he_o speak_v a_o thing_n without_o scripture_n beside_o all_o truth_n and_o reason_n and_o shall_v not_o we_o be_v credit_v unless_o we_o convince_v he_o by_o scripture_n howbeit_o let_v we_o forgeve_v that_o injury_n and_o confute_v his_o fond_a ââ¦pinion_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n caluin_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v word_n of_o promise_n against_o which_o sa_v thus_o i_o reason_n s._n paul_n intend_v to_o show_v that_o god_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o the_o carnal_a jew_n because_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n by_o flesh_n but_o that_o rather_o he_o will_v reward_v they_o who_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n by_o faith_n and_o spirit_n declare_v isaac_n to_o have_v be_v the_o child_n of_o promise_n because_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o abraham_n secundum_fw-la hoc_fw-la tempus_fw-la veniam_fw-la &_o erit_fw-la sarae_n filius_fw-la i_o will_v come_v according_a to_o this_o time_n and_o a_o son_n shall_v be_v unto_o sara_n out_o of_o which_o word_n s._n paul_n prove_v a_o promise_n how_o so_o promissionis_fw-la 9_o enim_fw-la hoc_fw-la verbum_fw-la est_fw-la for_o this_o word_n or_o sa_v be_v a_o word_n of_o promise_n which_o word_n be_v that_o veniam_fw-la i_o will_v come_v &_o filius_fw-la ââ¦rit_fw-la a_o son_n shall_v be_v as_o if_o s._n paul_n say_v will_n &_o shall_v be_v word_n of_o promise_n for_o when_o a_o speech_n be_v conceive_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v with_o ãâã_d circumstance_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v the_o speaker_n mean_v to_o warrant_v the_o thing_n speak_v it_o make_v a_o promise_n if_o i_o will_v come_v and_o ãâã_d son_n shall_v be_v be_v word_n of_o promise_n i_o be_o come_v and_o a_o son_n be_v be_v word_n of_o perfoormance_n and_o that_o be_v also_o conââ¦irmed_v out_o os_fw-la the_o word_n of_o god_n where_o it_o be_v writââ¦n_v the_o lord_n visit_v sara_n as_o he_o have_v 21._o promise_v and_o fulfil_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o speak_v and_o she_o conceive_v and_o bring_v forth_o a_o son_n at_o yâ_z time_n wherein_o god_n have_v foreââ¦old_a ãâã_d that_o which_o be_v before_o in_o s._n paul_n name_v a_o promise_n be_v ââ¦ow_o call_v also_o a_o foretell_v or_o prediction_n for_o albeit_o every_o prediction_n prediction_n be_v not_o a_o promise_n yet_o every_o promise_n be_v a_o prediction_n and_o a_o tell_n before_o hand_n so_o that_o we_o have_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o a_o promise_n tell_v a_o
service_n and_o order_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o if_o caluin_n have_v that_o spirit_n he_o be_v far_o from_o hearesy_n but_o now_o see_v what_o spirit_n caluin_n have_v thus_o he_o write_v in_o this_o matter_n immediate_o after_o the_o word_n which_o i_o rehearse_v in_o the_o ãâã_d of_o this_o chapter_n thus_o he_o write_v his_o rationibus_fw-la constat_fw-la repositionem_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v domini_fw-la evident_a say_v caluin_n by_o those_o reason_n the_o reservation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o some_o man_n press_v to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v distribute_v extraordinary_o to_o the_o sick_a to_o be_v unprofitable_a for_o either_o the_o sick_a shall_v receive_v it_o without_o rehearsal_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o minister_n together_o with_o the_o sign_n will_v join_v the_o true_a explication_n of_o the_o mystery_n if_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o speak_v of_o it_o be_v a_o abuse_n and_o a_o fault_n if_o the_o promise_n be_v rehearse_v and_o the_o mystery_n be_v declare_v so_o that_o they_o who_o shall_v receive_v may_v receive_v with_o fruit_n we_o nââ¦de_v not_o doubt_n this_o to_o be_v the_o true_a consecration_n to_o what_o purpose_n then_o be_v the_o other_o who_o strength_n reach_v not_o so_o far_o as_o to_o come_v to_o the_o sick_a but_o you_o will_v say_v they_o that_o do_v so_o to_o wit_n that_o reserve_v the_o sacrament_n have_v the_o example_n of_o the_o old_a church_n fateor_fw-la i_o grant_v but_o in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n &_o wherein_o error_n be_v not_o commit_v without_o great_a danger_n nothing_o be_v more_o safe_a then_o to_o follow_v the_o truth_n itself_o hitherto_o caluin_n have_v reason_v who_o put_v the_o whole_a strength_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n in_o promise_v and_o preach_v therefore_o if_o any_o where_o preach_v and_o promise_v be_v not_o use_v in_o the_o geve_v of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o call_v it_o a_o abuse_n and_o fault_n and_o see_v the_o primative_a church_n even_o while_o the_o apostles_n be_v ââ¦live_a do_v by_o the_o witness_n of_o ãâã_d reserve_v the_o sacrament_n so_o long_o after_o consecration_n as_o to_o send_v it_o to_o such_o bishop_n which_o may_v come_v to_o strange_a diocese_n out_o of_o a_o other_o province_n and_o see_v the_o deacous_a use_v to_o carry_v it_o in_o the_o time_n of_o justinus_n martyr_n who_o live_v within_o a_o hundred_o year_n of_o christ_n death_n to_o those_o which_o be_v absent_a caluin_n i_o say_v perceave_v the_o use_n of_o all_o apostolical_a church_n church_n to_o stand_v against_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o conââ¦ute_v they_o all_o with_o this_o fond_a reason_n either_o the_o sick_a and_o absent_a person_n for_o all_o be_v one_o concern_v this_o matter_n shall_v receive_v that_o which_o be_v consecrate_v in_o the_o church_n without_o a_o new_a rehearsal_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o then_o it_o be_v a_o abuse_n say_v caluin_n &_o a_o fault_n &_o he_o call_v it_o a_o abuse_n which_o the_o scholar_n of_o the_o apostle_n use_v or_o ââ¦ls_n say_v he_o the_o word_n shall_v be_v join_v with_o the_o sign_n and_o it_o be_v a_o true_a consecration_n and_o then_o say_v he_o the_o first_o consecration_n make_v at_o the_o church_n be_v in_o vain_a concern_v the_o sick_a and_o absent_a man_n but_o the_o second_o be_v good_a which_o be_v make_v by_o preach_v and_o rehearse_v the_o word_n of_o promise_n to_o the_o sick_a person_n i_o have_v most_o faithful_o beherse_v the_o opinion_n of_o caluin_n but_o let_v we_o now_o examine_v why_o it_o be_v a_o abuse_n and_o fault_n to_o deliver_v to_o the_o sick_a or_o to_o the_o absent_a person_n the_o holy_a host_n which_o be_v consecrate_v in_o the_o church_n without_o a_o new_a rehearsal_n of_o christ_n word_n why_o be_v that_o a_o abuse_n who_o tell_v caluin_n it_o be_v a_o abuse_n or_o a_o fault_n apoââ¦ââ¦lers_n for_o south_n his_o own_o mind_n give_v he_o so_o his_o wisdom_n think_v so_o his_o gravity_n say_v so_o his_o blasphemonse_n penue_n write_v so_o but_o other_o cause_n reason_n or_o scripture_n he_o bring_v none_o for_o it_o ââ¦e_n first_o ãâã_d that_o the_o consecration_n of_o christ_n supper_n consist_v in_o say_v to_o the_o people_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o and_o pron_v it_o not_o at_o all_o but_o grant_v he_o once_o his_o dream_n &_o consequent_o he_o infer_v that_o if_o such_o a_o host_n whereupon_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v once_o du_o pronounce_v be_v afterward_o give_fw-ge to_o he_o that_o heaââ¦d_v not_o those_o word_n of_o promise_n because_o he_o be_v sick_a or_o absent_a if_o the_o ââ¦ost_o i_o say_v he_o give_v without_o a_o new_a rehearsal_n of_o the_o word_n it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v a_o abuse_n yea_o but_o some_o papist_n will_v say_v the_o old_a church_n do_v so_o for_o now_o he_o call_v the_o primatiââ¦e_a church_n the_o old_a church_n i_o grant_v say_v caluin_n but_o it_o be_v better_a yet_o to_o follow_v the_o truth_n itself_o why_o ãâã_d do_v thou_o only_o know_v what_o the_o truth_n itself_o be_v we_o allege_v the_o old_a church_n to_o proââ¦e_v that_o the_o truth_n ãâã_d christ_n gospel_n do_v stand_v for_o we_o and_o to_o prove_v that_o consecration_n be_v not_o make_v by_o preach_v and_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o people_n but_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o god_n word_n which_o speak_v over_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n say_v by_o the_o one_o this_o be_v my_o body_n make_v it_o so_o and_o by_o the_o other_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n make_v it_o so_o we_o say_v these_o word_n make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o his_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n for_o our_o say_n we_o bring_v the_o gospel_n where_o ââ¦t_n be_v write_v this_o be_v and_z this_o be_v when_o other_o ãâã_d the_o gospel_n we_o show_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o 26._o their_o successor_n practise_v this_o which_o we_o believe_v for_o they_o all_o understode_v by_o these_o word_n direct_v to_o brcad_n and_o wine_n that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o make_v under_o the_o form_n of_o they_o how_o prove_v we_o that_o because_o if_o once_o the_o word_n have_v be_v speak_v by_o a_o priest_n upon_o those_o element_n the_o thing_n consecrate_v be_v afterward_o keep_v and_o carry_v as_o a_o most_o holy_a sacrifice_n to_o man_n abââ¦ent_a as_o the_o which_o thing_n contain_v real_o within_o they_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ._n why_o else_o shall_v they_o be_v carry_v to_o other_o that_o be_v absent_a a_o ãâã_d may_v say_v that_o when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o absent_a person_n the_o word_n be_v again_o rehearse_v first_o that_o appear_v not_o in_o justinus_n or_o in_o ireneus_fw-la of_o who_o the_o one_o say_v the_o ãâã_d be_v send_v to_o straââ¦gers_n the_o other_o say_v that_o the_o thing_n consecrate_v which_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o present_a christian_n the_o same_o be_v carry_v to_o the_o absent_a how_o be_v the_o eucharist_n send_v if_o it_o be_v again_o no_o eucharist_n until_o it_o come_v to_o the_o stranger_n and_o then_o be_v make_v a_o new_a or_o be_v it_o ãâã_d to_o iterate_v the_o consecration_n of_o any_o sacrament_n have_v caluin_n learn_v so_o far_o do_v the_o first_o consecration_n lack_v ââ¦ertue_n so_o that_o a_o other_o must_v be_v make_v or_o the_o first_o be_v repete_v last_o of_o all_o the_o deacon_n carry_v the_o eucharist_n who_o possible_o can_v not_o rehearse_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n and_o yet_o if_o they_o be_v word_n of_o promise_n &_o preach_v the_o deacon_n who_o may_v ãâã_d and_o in_o preach_v may_v ãâã_d yâ_z spiritual_a seed_v of_o our_o soul_n may_v also_o rehearse_v those_o word_n but_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o this_o day_n it_o be_v never_o hear_v that_o ââ¦_n deacon_n may_v consecrate_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n for_o noman_n myââ¦_n be_v able_a to_o do_v any_o more_o than_o whereunto_o he_o be_v lawful_o call_v but_o no_o deacon_n have_v the_o power_n to_o consecrate_v give_v he_o and_o that_o his_o name_n show_v which_o be_v to_o say_v a_o ãâã_d or_o a_o waiter_n on_o for_o he_o wait_v upon_o the_o priest_n at_o mass_n and_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o promote_v to_o the_o office_n of_o ãâã_d see_v then_o the_o deacon_n carry_v the_o eucharist_n and_o they_o can_v not_o say_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n doubââ¦lesse_v they_o that_o receive_v it_o of_o their_o hand_n receive_v neither_o word_n of_o promise_n nor_o of_o preach_v but_o they_o receive_v that_o bless_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v consecrate_v before_o under_o the_o foorme_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n this_o faith_n
answer_n the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a father_n you_o have_v appeal_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o father_n your_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v try_v âª_o the_o catholic_n never_o fear_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o they_o always_o fear_v to_o abuse_v they_o for_o we_o yâ_z know_v in_o deed_n what_o holy_a scripture_n be_v be_v so_o careful_a how_o to_o behave_v ourselves_o reverent_o and_o seem_o about_o the_o same_o that_o we_o light_o use_v not_o to_o allege_v any_o part_n thereof_o to_o prove_v any_o rare_a and_o hard_a matter_n unless_o we_o show_v some_o ancient_a father_n or_o council_n to_o have_v expound_v that_o piece_n of_o scripture_n before_o we_o in_o such_o sort_n &_o sense_n as_o we_o by_o the_o witness_n thereof_o desire_n to_o persuade_v and_o confirm_v but_o otherwise_o the_o catholic_n never_o refuse_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o ââ¦oly_a scripture_n as_o yâ_z which_o they_o always_o both_o study_v &_o love_v do_v not_o the_o writing_n of_o s._n beruard_n in_o manner_n whole_o consist_v of_o caietanus_n continual_a testimony_n take_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o petââ¦ââ¦ombardus_n lerned_o comment_v the_o psalm_n the_o episââ¦s_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o other_o parcel_n of_o god_n word_n âª_o do_v not_o s._n thomas_n of_o aquin_n write_v so_o upon_o job_n esaias_n jeremias_n s._n matthew_n s._n john_n s._n paul_n the_o canonical_a epistle_n and_o the_o apocalips_n that_o he_o use_v to_o expound_v one_o hard_a place_n by_o a_o other_o as_o nigh_o as_o thââ¦_n thing_n will_v suffer_v do_v not_o nicolaus_n de_fw-fr lyra_n dionysius_n the_o carthusian_n paulus_n burgensis_n caietanus_n the_o cardinal_n with_o diverse_a other_o expound_v the_o whole_a bible_n or_o make_v note_n upon_o it_o will_v they_o have_v do_v so_o except_o they_o have_v be_v special_o delight_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o over_o when_o heresy_n arise_v in_o our_o day_n do_v not_o contarenus_n sadoletus_n polus_n ââ¦osius_fw-la ãâã_d gropper_n tapper_n eckius_fw-la pighius_fw-la petrus_n and_o dominicus_n of_o soto_n miranda_n uillegagnon_n joannes_n a_o lovanio_n with_o diverse_a other_o coââ¦ince_n those_o heresy_n by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o father_n and_o yet_o as_o though_o we_o bring_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o defence_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o primitive_a church_n so_o do_v the_o penner_n of_o this_o apology_n more_o to_o his_o discredit_n then_o to_o we_o false_o and_o unhonest_o report_n but_o now_o to_o show_v the_o better_a his_o falsehood_n and_o dishonesty_n i_o think_v good_a for_o my_o part_n to_o set_v soorth_o such_o holy_a scripture_n and_o such_o witness_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o plain_o confirm_v the_o catholic_a belefe_v concern_v the_o chief_a matter_n which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v in_o controverââ¦e_n betwixt_o we_o and_o they_o the_o chief_a question_n be_v about_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n age_n our_o belefe_v be_v that_o after_o consecration_n due_o make_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o apology_n teach_v other_o wise_a as_o now_o it_o shall_v appear_v but_o whereas_o there_o be_v many_o question_n in_o this_o behalf_n as_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n of_o receive_v alone_o of_o rââ¦tion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o of_o such_o other_o i_o will_v begin_v ãâã_d with_o the_o matter_n of_o real_a presence_n which_o iââ¦_n the_o ground_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n not_o despair_a to_o have_n at_o other_o time_n more_o leisure_n to_o handle_v also_o the_o other_o question_n so_o much_o therefore_o as_o in_o the_o apology_n belong_v to_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n i_o will_v faithful_o set_v forth_o and_o try_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o doctrine_n by_o god_n word_n and_o by_o the_o holy_a father_n neither_o let_v any_o man_n be_v offend_v if_o i_o seem_v to_o keep_v no_o good_a order_n in_o so_o much_o as_o i_o make_v no_o new_a method_n of_o my_o own_o but_o follow_v the_o order_n of_o the_o apology_n which_o sudden_o and_o abrupt_o thus_o inter_v in_o to_o yâ_z question_n ¶_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o evil_a man_n receive_v chapter_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o supper_n we_o do_v express_o pronounce_v that_o in_o the_o supper_n unto_o answer_n such_o as_o believe_v there_o be_v true_o give_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o doctrine_n be_v call_v to_o yâ_z word_n of_o god_n &_o to_o yâ_z judgement_n of_o holy_a father_n for_o his_o trial_n will_v appear_v false_a &_o forge_a because_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o judas_n christ_n to_o be_v true_o delyver_v not_o only_o to_o such_o as_o do_v believe_v but_o even_o to_o wicked_a man_n who_o in_o their_o work_n have_v devy_v their_o faith_n howsoever_o they_o keep_v it_o or_o geve_v it_o over_o in_o hart_n judas_n one_o whole_a year_n before_o the_o last_o supper_n be_v call_v a_o deââ¦ll_n for_o so_o much_o as_o christ_n know_v that_o he_o will_v betray_v and_o sell_v he_o unto_o yâ_z jew_o which_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v thought_n that_o judas_n will_v have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v be_v of_o the_o true_a belefe_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o god_n himself_o and_o yet_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o deliver_v unto_o he_o who_o although_o he_o have_v beleve_v the_o divine_a power_n of_o christ_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o beleve_v as_o we_o now_o take_v beleve_v for_o the_o fulfil_n and_o perfoorm_v of_o all_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o 5._o state_n and_o law_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n according_a as_o it_o be_v write_v ut_fw-la omnis_fw-la qui_fw-la credit_n in_fw-la eum_fw-la non_fw-la pereat_fw-la sed_fw-la habeat_fw-la vitam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la that_o every_o man_n which_o beleve_v in_o he_o may_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n such_o a_o belefe_v workiââ¦g_v by_o charity_n judas_n have_v not_o and_o yet_o he_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n for_o albeit_o some_o ancient_a father_n thought_n that_o judas_n go_v out_o before_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n yet_o far_o the_o great_a part_n teach_v otherwise_o and_o matt._n it_o be_v much_o more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n how_o prove_v i_o that_o s._n mark_n write_v that_o christ_n come_v with_o the_o twelve_o s._n matthew_n 14_o say_v christ_n sit_v down_o with_o the_o twelve_o and_o while_o they_o be_v eat_v he_o give_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n s._n luke_n agree_v upon_o the_o very_a same_o number_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o gift_n among_o the_o twelve_o 26._o judas_n be_v reckon_v in_o s._n matthew_n s._n mark_n s._n luke_n and_o s._n john_n and_o while_o they_o be_v at_o supper_n which_o they_o beside_o the_o twelve_o jesus_n take_v bread_n and_o bless_v and_o give_v thanks_n and_o break_v and_o give_v to_o they_o to_o which_o them_z i_o pray_v you_o but_o unto_o the_o twelve_o that_o come_v with_o he_o and_o sit_v with_o he_o to_o yâ_z twelve_o therefore_o he_o give_v and_o say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o take_v the_o chalice_n he_o give_v thanks_n and_o give_v they_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v shed_v ââ¦or_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n et_fw-la biberunt_fw-la ex_fw-la illo_fw-la omnes_fw-la 14_o and_o all_o drink_v of_o it_o which_o all_o if_o not_o the_o twelve_o judas_n therefore_o be_v one_o of_o the_o twelve_o have_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n 26._o of_o christ_n deliver_v to_o he_o for_o christ_n say_v take_v eat_v and_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o as_o they_o drink_v all_o so_o be_v there_o no_o doubt_n but_o they_o all_o do_v take_v and_o eat_v therefore_o judas_n take_v that_o which_o christ_n deliver_v but_o christ_n witness_v himself_o to_o deliver_v his_o own_o body_n say_v take_v and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n therefore_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v deliver_v unto_o judas_n and_o since_o judas_n do_v not_o believe_v well_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o delyver_v to_o some_o such_o as_o do_v not_o believe_v we_o now_o call_v these_o defender_n to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o make_v it_o appear_v yâ_z they_o have_v sever_v themselves_o from_o christ_n from_o the_o prophet_n from_o the_o apostle_n we_o stagger_v not_o we_o flee_v not_o it_o be_v god_n
cause_n we_o doubt_v not_o to_o commit_v it_o to_o god_n word_n and_o that_o no_o man_n may_v suspect_v we_o take_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apology_n to_o short_a that_o we_o expound_v they_o to_o hardly_o that_o we_o seek_v advantage_n upon_o small_a occasion_n i_o will_v bring_v forth_o their_o own_o word_n which_o they_o have_v more_o full_o write_v in_o a_o other_o place_n of_o the_o same_o apology_n concern_v this_o matter_n we_o do_v affirm_v with_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n that_o the_o body_n 2._o of_o christ_n be_v eat_v of_o none_o other_o but_o of_o godly_a and_o of_o faithful_a man_n and_o such_o as_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ._n these_o fellow_n do_v teach_v that_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n may_v in_o very_a deed_n and_o as_o they_o term_v it_o real_o and_o substantial_o be_v eat_v not_o only_o of_o wicked_a and_o unfaithful_a man_n but_o also_o it_o be_v horrible_a to_o speak_v it_o of_o mouse_n and_o dog_n whether_o mouse_n and_o dog_n may_v in_o some_o sense_n eat_v the_o body_n of_o donat._n christ_n or_o no_o it_o be_v not_o worth_a while_n to_o discuss_v for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o catholic_n keep_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n so_o wary_o that_o neither_o mouse_n nor_o dog_n may_v come_v nigh_o to_o it_o but_o as_o yâ_z arrian_n throw_v down_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o tread_v thereon_o with_o their_o filthy_a foot_n and_o as_o the_o donatists_n brake_n the_o chalice_n which_o as_o optatus_n say_v carry_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o the_o sacramentary_n of_o england_n have_v take_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a pix_n and_o tread_v under_o their_o profane_a foot_z the_o bless_a body_n of_o christ_n they_o have_v sell_v break_v and_o abuse_v to_o filthy_a ministery_n the_o chalice_n which_o have_v hold_v christ_n blood_n if_o the_o wicked_a man_n be_v able_a to_o pollute_v to_o tread_v on_o and_o to_o defile_v as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o they_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n matt._n a_o think_v that_o to_o be_v worse_o then_o if_o mouse_n and_o dog_n do_v eat_v it_o not_o that_o the_o immortal_a body_n of_o christ_n can_v take_v any_o harm_n at_o all_o but_o yet_o a_o terrible_a damnation_n be_v reserve_v to_o they_o who_o be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o no_o hurt_n show_v not_o withstand_v their_o unsatiable_a malice_n against_o the_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n tread_v under_o foot_n the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o count_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n profane_a and_o unholy_a leave_v therefore_o this_o question_n we_o return_v to_o the_o principal_a matter_n confess_v ourselves_o to_o teach_v that_o the_o wââ¦ked_a man_n ââ¦ate_v in_o deed_n &_o real_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o our_o lord_n supper_n thus_o we_o teach_v not_o only_o because_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o father_n have_v deliver_v so_o unto_o we_o but_o also_o because_o thus_o we_o learn_v of_o christ._n who_o after_o bread_n take_v have_v bless_v give_v to_o judas_n one_o of_o the_o twelve_o bid_v he_o take_v &_o eat_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n a_o worse_a man_n than_o judas_n i_o think_v be_v not_o light_o hear_v of_o which_o among_o other_o thing_n cause_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o be_v the_o man_n never_o so_o evil_a yet_o if_o he_o take_v and_o eat_v after_o consecration_n and_o benediction_n he_o take_v and_o eat_v real_o and_o in_o deed_n the_o body_n of_o christ._n which_o unworthy_a receive_n of_o so_o precious_a a_o thing_n although_o it_o mislike_v christ_n as_o all_o sin_n do_v yet_o as_o he_o permit_v sin_n for_o the_o goodness_n which_o he_o work_v by_o the_o occasion_n thereof_o so_o he_o think_v it_o less_o evil_a that_o evil_a man_n shall_v eat_v his_o body_n then_o that_o his_o sacrament_n by_o any_o our_o infidelity_n shall_v be_v make_v void_a or_o that_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o grace_n shall_v be_v uncertain_a for_o christ_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o his_o sacrament_n depend_v not_o upon_o our_o faith_n or_o virtue_n but_o upon_o his_o own_o mercy_n and_o truth_n wherefore_o when_o so_o ever_o by_o a_o lawful_a priest_n intend_v to_o execute_v the_o ministry_n command_v by_o christ_n it_o be_v dââ¦ely_o say_v over_o bread_n and_o wine_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n christ_n will_v it_o so_o to_o be_v as_o the_o word_n declare_v and_o who_o so_o ever_o receave_v that_o kind_n of_o food_n receave_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n whether_o well_o or_o ââ¦uill_n that_o depend_v upon_o his_o worthy_a or_o unworthy_a eat_n if_o any_o man_n eat_v unworthe_o then_o will_v christ_n complain_v of_o he_o as_o he_o complain_v of_o judas_n for_o straight_o after_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o blood_n he_o say_v as_o s._n luke_n do_v witness_v and_o s._n augustine_n it_o have_v note_v the_o same_o to_o pertain_v to_o the_o sacrament_n veruntamen_fw-la ecce_fw-la manus_fw-la tradentis_fw-la i_o mecum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o mensa_fw-la but_o yet_o see_v yâ_z hand_n of_o he_o yâ_z betray_v i_o be_v with_o i_o on_o the_o table_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v you_o see_v what_o love_n i_o show_v to_o you_o by_o geve_v my_o own_o body_n to_o be_v eat_v my_o own_o blood_n to_o be_v drunken_a in_o this_o my_o last_o supper_n this_o only_a greve_v i_o that_o a_o very_a devil_n do_v eat_v &_o drink_v these_o preciouse_a gift_n together_o with_o i_o and_o you_o except_o our_o new_a brethren_n will_v say_v judas_n to_o have_v be_v a_o good_a faithful_a man_n i_o see_v not_o but_o they_o must_v confess_v that_o evil_a man_n may_v have_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n deliver_v to_o they_o which_o thing_n s._n paul_n most_o evident_o confirm_v of_o all_o evil_a 1ââ¦_n christian_n say_v therefore_o who_o so_o ever_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n or_o drink_v the_o chalice_n of_o our_o lord_n unworthe_o he_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n do_v not_o he_o that_o speak_v of_o un_fw-fr eat_v worthy_a eat_n confess_v a_o true_a eat_n true_o i_o say_v in_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n eat_v but_o unworthy_a concern_v the_o effect_n of_o grace_n ensew_v and_o yet_o do_v not_o evil_a man_n who_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n unworthe_o eat_v real_o the_o same_o body_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n that_o king_n antiochus_n 5._o have_v slay_v four_o score_n thousand_o within_o three_o day_n enter_v also_o into_o the_o holy_a temple_n et_fw-la scelestis_fw-la manibus_fw-la sumens_fw-la sancta_fw-la vasa_fw-la contrectabat_fw-la indignus_fw-fr &_o contaminabat_fw-la and_o take_v in_o his_o handle_v wicked_a hand_n the_o holy_a vessel_n he_o handle_v or_o touch_v they_o unworthe_o and_o defile_v they_o i_o ask_v whether_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v antiochus_n touch_v unworthe_o the_o holy_a vessel_n therefore_o he_o thou_fw-mi ch_v the_o holy_a vessel_n if_o that_o argument_n be_v good_a it_o be_v like_a to_o say_v a_o evil_a man_n do_v eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n unworthe_o therefore_o he_o do_v eat_v yâ_z body_n of_o christ._n or_o do_v not_o adam_n and_o ãâã_d eat_v of_o the_o ââ¦uit_n of_o the_o tree_n because_o they_o do_v eat_v the_o same_o against_o the_o commandment_n 3._o of_o god_n for_o these_o defender_n seem_v to_o make_v a_o unworthy_a eat_v no_o eat_v whereas_o if_o it_o be_v no_o eat_n it_o be_v ãâã_d not_o a_o unworthy_a eat_n perhaps_o they_o will_v say_v s._n paul_n write_v not_o that_o sinner_n &_o wicked_a man_n eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n unworthe_o but_o that_o they_o eat_v this_o bread_n unworthe_o uery_o s._n paul_n speak_v not_o of_o baker_n bread_n in_o yâ_z place_n but_o have_v show_v that_o christ_n take_v bread_n after_o thanks_n give_v 11_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n straight_o he_o infer_v that_o as_o often_o as_o this_o bread_n be_v eat_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v show_v &_o therefore_o who_o so_o eat_v this_o bread_n unworthe_o he_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n this_o bread_n be_v one_o certain_a kind_n of_o meat_n or_o food_n for_o so_o eat_v bread_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v signify_v which_o food_n before_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n and_o s._n paul_n do_v so_o wary_o describe_v this_o kind_n of_o bread_n that_o he_o put_v both_o a_o article_n and_o a_o pronoune_n to_o it_o say_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d as_o if_o it_o be_v say_v in_o english_a who_o so_o eat_v unworthe_o 26._o this_o certain_a kind_n of_o bread_n for_o so_o the_o article_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d betoken_v ââ¦_n certain_a bread_n speak_v of_o before_o but_o than_o follow_v beside_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o most_o vehement_o restrain_v that_o certain_a bread_n
christ_n be_v his_o member_n which_o be_v incorporate_v by_o grace_n &_o join_v to_o he_o be_v their_o head_n this_o incorporation_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o baptism_n in_o one_o degrââ¦_n and_o finisââ¦ed_v by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n whereof_o we_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o more_o at_o large_a the_o natural_a body_n of_o christis_fw-la that_o which_o he_o take_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o give_v to_o death_n for_o us._n now_o christ_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n give_v yâ_z substance_n of_o his_o natural_a body_n to_o be_v ââ¦aten_v of_o his_o disciple_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o shall_v be_v make_v one_o mystical_a body_n even_o by_o eat_v his_o flesh_n &_o blood_n see_v then_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o thââ¦end_v we_o may_v be_v near_o knit_v in_o the_o mystical_a body_n according_a as_o s._n paul_n say_v the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v the_o communicate_v of_o our_o 10_o lord_n body_n because_o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n one_o body_n all_o that_o partake_v of_o one_o bread_n see_v i_o say_v we_o communicate_v the_o natural_a body_n to_o be_v make_v a_o mystical_a body_n in_o a_o great_a unity_n than_o we_o have_v in_o baptism_n any_o man_n of_o discretion_n may_v perceive_v that_o in_o some_o 26._o sense_n evil_a man_n receive_v not_o the_o thing_n or_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n understand_v by_o the_o effect_n of_o body_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o mysti_n call_v body_n the_o obtain_n whereof_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o eat_n which_o unity_n s._n augustine_n sometime_o call_v rem_fw-la ipsam_fw-la the_o thing_n itself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o last_o effect_n and_o benefit_n which_o arise_v to_o we_o by_o worthy_a eat_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n after_o which_o sort_n s._n augustin_n say_v evil_a man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v 25_o to_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n add_v thereunto_o this_o reason_n quonian_a nec_fw-la in_fw-la membris_fw-la computandi_fw-la sunt_fw-la christi_fw-la because_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o membre_n of_o christ._n so_o that_o evil_a man_n eat_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n but_o not_o the_o thing_n for_o which_o that_o substance_n be_v give_v which_o be_v the_o unite_v of_o the_o body_n mystical_a because_o they_o eat_v not_o worthy_o whereas_o worthy_a eat_v only_o make_v they_o to_o obtain_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n which_o be_v to_o abide_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v christ_n abide_v in_o they_o therefore_o 6._o s._n augustine_n himself_o say_v non_fw-la quocunque_fw-la modo_fw-la quisquà m_fw-la 22._o manducaverit_fw-la carnem_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o biberit_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la christi_fw-la manet_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la &_o in_o illo_fw-la christus_fw-la sed_fw-la certo_fw-la quodam_fw-la modo_fw-la not_o how_o so_o ever_o a_o man_n eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o drinketh_z the_o blood_n of_o christ_n he_o abide_v in_o christ_n and_o christ_n in_o he_o but_o by_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o way_n as_o though_o s._n augustine_n say_v every_o way_n the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v receive_v in_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o not_o every_o way_n it_o be_v so_o receive_v that_o we_o may_v dwell_v in_o christ_n and_o christ_n in_o us._n s._n bregorse_n say_v by_o evell_a man_n salutis_fw-la fructum_fw-la non_fw-la percipiunt_fw-la 1._o in_o comestione_fw-la salutaris_fw-la hostiae_fw-la they_o receive_v not_o yâ_z fruit_n of_o salvation_n in_o yâ_z eat_n of_o yâ_z healthful_a sacrifice_n they_o eat_v yâ_z healthful_a sacrifice_n which_o sure_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o fruit_n they_o receive_v not_o as_o many_o man_n take_v a_o healthful_a medicine_n but_o because_o their_o body_n be_v evil_a affect_v it_o prove_v not_o healthful_a to_o they_o 22._o s._n bede_n compare_v he_o to_o judas_n who_o with_o his_o sinful_a member_n presume_v to_o violate_v illud_fw-la inestimabile_fw-la &_o inuiolabile_fw-la domini_fw-la corpus_fw-la that_o inestimable_a and_o inviolable_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o how_o can_v he_o violate_v it_o with_o his_o member_n if_o with_o no_o part_n 11_o of_o his_o body_n he_o touch_v it_o i_o omit_v arnobius_n upon_o that_o psalm_n 74._o s._n ambrose_n theodorite_n decumenius_n haimo_n theophilact_n anselme_n upon_o s._n paul_n who_o agree_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n sacrament_n that_o there_o be_v in_o every_o mystery_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o effect_n thereof_o as_o well_o the_o evil_a as_o the_o good_a receive_v the_o substance_n which_o in_o our_o lord_n supper_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n but_o only_o the_o good_a receive_v the_o effect_n which_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o spiritual_a nourishment_n to_o life_n everlasting_a and_o the_o union_n with_o christ._n now_o as_o we_o have_v show_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n even_o so_o have_v we_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n that_o evell_a man_n recââ¦ave_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o real_o as_o the_o purple_a be_v one_o still_o whether_o it_o be_v spot_v or_o cut_v as_o real_o as_o one_o meat_n be_v eat_v of_o some_o to_o their_o hurt_n of_o other_o to_o their_o health_n as_o real_o as_o good_a and_o evil_a jew_n have_v all_o one_o measure_n of_o manna_n but_o not_o all_o one_o swetenes_n in_o yeââ¦ast_v thereof_o as_o real_o as_o judas_n do_v kiss_v traitorous_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o himself_o as_o all_o evil_a man_n traitorous_o receive_v at_o christ_n supper_n if_o now_o the_o apology_n have_v neither_o scripture_n nor_o father_n it_o may_v leave_v those_o boast_a upbraidinge_n as_o though_o the_o catholic_n flee_v the_o triaââ¦_n of_o bââ¦th_a scripture_n and_o father_n it_o be_v god_n cause_n we_o have_v commit_v it_o to_o god_n word_n the_o father_n when_o they_o agree_v in_o any_o one_o article_n be_v know_v to_o have_v yâ_z spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o they_o bear_v witness_v that_o we_o have_v right_o expound_v the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o that_o list_v to_o see_v more_o of_o the_o same_o argument_n ãâã_d read_v that_o which_o i_o have_v write_v upon_o that_o say_v of_o s._n paul_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n unworthe_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n ¶_o what_o be_v the_o true_a deliverance_n of_o christ_n body_n chapter_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o supper_n there_o be_v true_o deliver_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o 24._o lord_n the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n quicken_a our_o soul_n the_o food_n of_o immortality_n grace_n truth_n life_n in_o these_o word_n no_o evil_a doctrine_n be_v contain_v but_o all_o sound_n answer_n and_o catholic_a in_o so_o much_o a_o man_n will_v wonder_v to_o what_o purpose_n these_o thing_n be_v now_o bring_v be_v extreme_a contrary_n to_o yâ_z which_o the_o caluinist_n defend_v sa_v they_o will_v seem_v to_o speak_v as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o primitive_a church_n have_v speak_v see_v therefore_o these_o word_n contain_v true_a doctrine_n i_o will_v reason_v brief_o out_o of_o they_o against_o their_o opinion_n that_o write_v they_o you_o say_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v true_o deliver_v in_o the_o suââ¦per_n if_o it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v true_o present_a and_o see_v none_o other_o thing_n can_v be_v warraut_v presence_n to_o have_v be_v deliver_v in_o the_o supper_n beside_o that_o which_o christ_n give_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n which_o seem_v bread_n whereof_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o beside_o that_o which_o seem_v wine_n where_o of_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apology_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o chrisââ¦es_n body_n be_v deliver_v true_o under_o that_o which_o seem_v bread_n and_o his_o blood_n be_v deliver_v true_o under_o that_o which_o seem_v wine_n or_o tell_v i_o can_v ãâã_d any_o man_n prove_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o any_o other_o thing_n be_v deliver_v in_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n beside_o two_o kind_n the_o one_o be_v bread_n until_o christ_n have_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o other_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o wine_n until_o christ_n have_v say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n be_v there_o mention_v make_v of_o any_o other_o thing_n true_o exhibit_v offer_v or_o deliver_v to_o the_o apostle_n or_o do_v the_o supper_n of_o christ_n consist_v of_o four_o kind_n of_o bread_n &_o body_n of_o wine_n and_o blood_n in_o what_o gospel_n read_v we_o of_o bread_n and_o wine_n deliver_v bread_n and_o wine_n be_v take_v but_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v 26._o only_o deliver_v for_o christ_n say_v take_v this_o be_v my_o body_n drink_v this_o be_v my_o
blood_n this_o can_v be_v but_o one_o thing_n therefore_o christ_n deliver_v that_o whereof_o he_o say_v this_o and_o this_o deliver_v at_o each_o time_n but_o one_o thing_n in_o all_o but_o two_o thing_n he_o deliver_v his_o body_n &_o blood_n as_o himself_o say_v and_o you_o confesââ¦e_v he_o true_o deliver_v they_o whereupon_o i_o conclude_v that_o he_o deliver_v neither_o bread_n nor_o wine_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o bread_n take_v be_v change_v in_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o his_o blood_n for_o see_v christ_n take_v both_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o deliver_v true_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n &_o yet_o deliver_v but_o one_o thing_n at_o each_o time_n and_o that_o also_o keep_v the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o be_v true_o take_v and_o not_o true_o deliver_v because_o a_o other_o thing_n be_v true_o deliver_v be_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n true_o change_v into_o that_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v true_o deliver_v o_o master_n truth_n be_v strong_a and_o by_o the_o adversary_n own_o weapon_n get_v the_o victory_n again_o remember_v that_o the_o name_n of_o body_n and_o the_o name_n of_o blood_n heresic_n be_v name_n belong_v to_o the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n to_o which_o manhood_n when_o you_o adjoine_v any_o act_n or_o work_v which_o may_v true_o be_v verisied_a thereof_o it_o must_v be_v mean_v according_a to_o that_o truth_n which_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o manhood_n when_o we_o say_v christ_n be_v true_o scurge_v nail_v to_o the_o cross_n bind_v and_o bury_v it_o be_v not_o here_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o figure_n in_o spirit_n in_o faith_n but_o that_o his_o body_n suffer_v according_a to_o the_o fââ¦esh_n all_o these_o thing_n and_o he_o that_o say_v the_o contrary_a be_v a_o ãâã_d which_o heresy_n will_v the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v change_v into_o his_o divine_a nature_n if_o then_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o dââ¦red_v you_o must_v not_o vuderstand_v a_o figure_n only_o to_o be_v dââ¦red_v neither_o a_o spiritual_a dââ¦_n only_o for_o if_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v deliver_v true_o and_o yet_o by_o spirit_n only_o then_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o body_n be_v by_o these_o man_n bring_v unto_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o spirit_n and_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n have_v losi_n his_o true_a nature_n and_o propââ¦_n mark_v well_o the_o reason_n when_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o deliver_v it_o be_v deliver_v according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n the_o nature_n of_o a_o body_n be_v to_o be_v dââ¦d_v after_o some_o bodily_a manner_n very_o by_o hand_n or_o by_o some_o other_o corporail_a action_n and_o they_o to_o body_n who_o it_o be_v delââ¦red_v likewise_o receive_v it_o by_o some_o part_n or_o sense_n of_o their_o body_n for_o so_o require_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n not_o immediate_o to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o spirit_n and_o soul_n but_o to_o come_v to_o it_o by_o mean_a of_o the_o body_n whereof_o it_o be_v infer_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v true_o deliver_v in_o the_o supper_n be_v bodily_a deliver_v and_o bodily_a receive_v but_o from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n who_o make_v the_o dââ¦ance_n unto_o the_o body_n of_o the_o apoââ¦es_n who_o receive_v the_o thing_n deliver_v none_o other_o thing_n can_v ââ¦syde_v that_o which_o seem_v bread_n and_o wine_n therefore_o under_o that_o foorme_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o contââ¦ined_v and_o by_o yâ_z mean_n true_o deliver_v and_o true_o receive_v three_o when_o you_o say_v the_o ââ¦sh_n of_o god_n quicken_v our_o soul_n you_o shall_v have_v say_v also_o that_o it_o quicken_v our_o body_n as_o in_o other_o place_n i_o have_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o six_o of_o s._n ãâã_d anââ¦_n out_o of_o s._n jreneus_n ââ¦tullian_n cyrillus_n and_o other_o ancient_a father_n ¶_o what_o it_o be_v which_o nourish_v we_o in_o the_o supper_n of_o chapter_n christ_n âª_o and_o that_o the_o same_o supper_n be_v the_o coââ¦ion_n of_o the_o body_n 24._o and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o partake_n whereof_o we_o be_v qââ¦ned_v we_o be_v ãâã_d and_o sed_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o which_o ãâã_d and_o ââ¦th_n can_v not_o be_v ãâã_d from_o ââ¦swere_n they_o who_o it_o nourish_v and_o when_o it_o be_v cut_v of_o their_o reach_n they_o can_v not_o have_v it_o before_o it_o be_v give_v if_o then_o we_o have_v in_o ãâã_d yâ_z body_n preââ¦_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n we_o receive_v it_o by_o his_o gift_n at_o his_o supper_n and_o sure_o it_o be_v the_o thing_n whereof_o he_o say_v eat_v and_o whereof_o he_o say_v drink_n other_o food_n be_v not_o deliver_v in_o christ_n supper_n beââ¦_n his_o body_n and_o blood_n nor_o possible_o can_v we_o have_v the_o food_n of_o his_o supper_n at_o any_o other_o man_n table_n then_o at_o he_o wel._n if_o we_o be_v nourish_v by_o the_o meat_n which_o christ_n give_v we_o nourââ¦sheth_v when_o he_o say_v eat_v and_o yet_o we_o be_v nourish_v by_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n undoubted_o he_o say_v eat_v of_o that_o which_o he_o give_v with_o his_o hand_n and_o which_o the_o apostle_n take_v into_o their_o mouth_n and_o that_o be_v bread_n to_o see_v unto_o therefore_o under_o that_o ââ¦orme_n of_o bread_n we_o take_v the_o nourishment_n whereby_o we_o be_v say_v to_o immortality_n otherwise_o what_o warrant_v have_v we_o to_o come_v by_o this_o food_n which_o be_v clean_o out_o of_o our_o reach_n until_o god_n geve_v it_o say_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n drink_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n by_o those_o word_n oââ¦ââ¦ate_a &_o one_o liquor_n only_o be_v give_v which_o also_o ââ¦deth_v we_o to_o immortality_n as_o yâ_z apologie_n coââ¦h_o but_o none_o other_o food_n that_o man_n may_v receive_v bodily_a can_v feed_v we_o to_o immortality_n beside_o the_o real_a substance_n of_o christ._n therefore_o that_o substance_n be_v receive_v &_o nourish_v we_o when_o christ_n say_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n drink_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n ¶_o the_o union_n which_o be_v make_v by_o eat_v christ_n ãâã_d real_a flesh_n must_v nââ¦s_o be_v a_o natural_a union_n ââ¦ore_o it_o be_v a_o mystical_a and_o by_o the_o which_o we_o be_v couple_v we_o be_v unite_v and_o graft_v ãâã_d into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v ââ¦well_v in_o hinââ¦_n and_o he_o in_o us._n christ_n ââ¦sh_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v be_v nourish_v therewith_o and_o the_o end_n of_o nourish_v be_v to_o make_v one_o thing_n of_o yâ_z aunââ¦_n which_o be_v eat_v and_o of_o he_o that_o eat_v it_o the_o flesh_n deliver_v to_o nourish_v we_o be_v not_o any_o mystical_a flesh_n but_o only_o the_o natural_a flesh_n of_o christ_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v any_o other_o food_n for_o none_o other_o thing_n that_o coââ¦th_v in_o at_o the_o mouth_n of_o man_n be_v able_a to_o seed_v he_o to_o immortality_n beside_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n if_o then_o it_o be_v the_o natural_a flesh_n which_o feed_v and_o the_o union_n do_v come_v by_o seed_v the_o union_n must_v of_o necesââ¦ty_n be_v make_v with_o the_o natural_a flesh_n of_o christ._n and_o because_o that_o be_v such_o a_o flesh_n as_o 1._o be_v unite_v to_o god_n have_v power_n to_o geve_v life_n and_o ââ¦mortality_n out_o of_o the_o natural_a union_n which_o be_v make_v with_o it_o by_o eat_v a_o other_o spiritual_a and_o mystical_a union_n flow_v which_o make_v all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v one_o mystical_a body_n so_o that_o we_o have_v now_o fiââ¦e_a degree_n first_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v supper_n deliver_v to_o we_o in_o his_o supper_n next_o we_o eat_v the_o same_o flesh_n three_o we_o be_v feed_v by_o it_o if_o we_o eat_v it_o worthy_o four_o of_o yâ_z feed_n conune_v a_o real_a and_o natural_a union_n and_o join_v with_o christ_n flesh_n as_o s._n hilary_n teach_v and_o other_o ancient_a father_n of_o that_o natural_a union_n procee_v a_o spiritual_a union_n with_o 8._o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o be_v make_v one_o with_o christ_n flesh_n we_o be_v unite_v thereby_o to_o his_o spirit_n and_o godhead_n live_v for_o he_o as_o he_o ââ¦th_v for_o his_o father_n whereof_o i_o will_v speak_v 6_o more_o hereafter_o the_o apology_n acknowledge_v a_o join_n with_o christ_n by_o eat_v but_o it_o sure_o mean_v the_o last_o spiritual_a join_n which_o arise_v of_o the_o other_o natural_a union_n whereas_o that_o spiritual_a join_n do_v ââ¦ude_v the_o other_o natural_a as_o every_o effect_n presuppose_v the_o necessary_a
agree_v for_o all_o scââ¦iptures_n call_v it_o the_o body_n and_o some_o doctor_n call_v it_o a_o sign_n but_o if_o these_o thing_n can_v not_o both_o be_v true_a together_o awase_n with_o sign_n away_o with_o token_n let_v the_o word_n of_o 26._o god_n be_v hear_v which_o say_v this_o be_v mââ¦_n body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n be_v it_o reason_n we_o obey_v man_n or_o god_n if_o both_o stand_v in_o one_o degree_n 5._o man_n keep_v themselves_o under_o god_n let_v both_o be_v obey_v but_o if_o man_n draw_v from_o god_n he_o be_v more_o worth_a alone_o than_o all_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n what_o ãâã_d we_o now_o will_v the_o sigââ¦e_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o body_n it_o selââ¦e_v stand_v together_o or_o no_o if_o not_o let_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n geve_v place_n let_v the_o body_n itself_o which_o be_v often_o time_n find_v there_o tarry_v still_o if_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o truth_n can_v not_o stand_v together_o the_o sacramentary_n must_v needs_o be_v condemn_v who_o deny_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o prefer_v the_o sign_n before_o it_o which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n if_o the_o sign_n &_o truth_n do_v both_o stand_v together_o yâ_z sacramentary_n ãâã_d onlesse_a they_o repent_v be_v condemn_v because_o they_o deny_v the_o one_o part_n of_o yâ_z twain_o for_o they_o deny_v the_o true_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o what_o case_n stand_v these_o defender_n which_o still_o be_v in_o state_n of_o damnation_n whatsoever_o be_v conclude_v true_a we_o very_o teach_v and_o believe_v the_o figure_n and_o the_o truth_n to_o stand_v together_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o to_o be_v his_o own_o body_n the_o weak_a part_n be_v the_o sign_n the_o great_a ãâã_d be_v the_o truth_n but_o both_o do_v not_o only_o stand_v together_o in_o one_o sacrament_n but_o farther_o more_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o every_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o have_v both_o that_o be_v ââ¦aie_o to_o have_v ove_z certain_a truth_n &_o one_o certain_a sign_n of_o the_o same_o truth_n the_o truth_n be_v hide_v under_o the_o sign_n the_o sign_n be_v witness_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o thing_n once_o be_v declare_v you_o shall_v see_v the_o vain_a doctrine_n of_o this_o apology_n &_o with_o what_o kind_n of_o worthy_a schoolââ¦_n the_o english_a church_n be_v now_o govern_v to_o the_o great_a ãâã_d and_o destruction_n of_o christian_a soul_n pardon_v i_o good_a reader_n if_o i_o stand_v somewhat_o long_o upon_o the_o name_n of_o a_o sacrament_n for_o in_o that_o word_n lie_v hide_v all_o the_o poison_n of_o the_o sacramentarie_a doctrine_n ¶_o that_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v both_o the_o sign_n of_o chapter_n christ_n body_n and_o also_o his_o true_a body_n even_o as_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n give_v diligent_a care_n good_a reader_n to_o the_o doctrine_n follow_v because_o as_o it_o be_v most_o true_a and_o profitable_a so_o be_v it_o somewhat_o hard_a i_o will_v show_v that_o such_o a_o sign_n as_o belong_v to_o christ_n institution_n must_v needs_o have_v the_o same_o truth_n present_a whereof_o it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n or_o holy_a sign_n 2._o the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n take_v natural_a flesh_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n to_o the_o intent_n he_o be_v oââ¦e_a person_n and_o there_o in_o have_v his_o humane_a nature_n common_a with_o man_n and_o his_o divine_a common_a with_o god_n may_v by_o that_o mean_n reconcile_v man_n to_o god_n again_o his_o divine_a personne_fw-fr staid_a in_o it_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n his_o manhood_n partly_o cover_v the_o divine_a nature_n from_o the_o eye_n of_o mortal_a man_n partly_o by_o marvellous_a sign_n and_o work_n show_v the_o same_o to_o the_o faith_n 10._o of_o ãâã_d man_n liââ¦ewise_o man_n consist_v of_o two_o part_n of_o a_o soul_n invisible_a and_o part_n of_o a_o visible_a body_n the_o soul_n rule_v and_o govern_v the_o body_n and_o the_o body_n show_v to_o other_o by_o outward_a token_n what_o the_o soul_n think_v and_o inward_o work_v christ_n therefore_o intend_v to_o leave_v certain_a holy_a mystery_n unto_o his_o church_n thereby_o to_o ãâã_d to_o her_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o death_n as_o well_o for_o regard_v of_o his_o own_o self_n in_o who_o personne_fw-fr part_n two_o nature_n be_v unite_v as_o for_o regard_n of_o we_o who_o consist_v of_o body_n and_o soul_n make_v the_o say_v holy_a sacrament_n to_o be_v of_o a_o double_a sort_n and_o nature_n so_o that_o the_o one_o part_n thereof_o may_v appear_v to_o the_o sense_n the_o other_o shall_v lie_v privy_a and_o only_o be_v see_v by_o faith_n but_o as_o the_o outward_a work_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v undoubted_a testimony_n of_o the_o inward_a godhead_n real_o present_a so_z the_o outward_a sign_n which_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o most_o evident_a witness_n of_o the_o inward_a grace_n which_o they_o work_v real_o present_a in_o they_o aââ¦ter_v this_o sort_n christ_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n 3._o that_o we_o may_v be_v new_o bear_v and_o regenerate_v of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o himself_o say_v to_o ãâã_d for_o the_o outward_a wash_a of_o the_o body_n in_o the_o naââ¦e_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v a_o evident_a 28._o sign_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o the_o same_o instant_n by_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o word_n and_o water_n inward_o wassh_v yâ_z soul_n from_o sin_n therefore_o s._n paul_n say_v god_n have_v save_v we_o by_o the_o wash_a of_o water_n 3._o and_o of_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o which_o holy_a scripture_n s._n augustine_n embrace_v say_v aqua_fw-la exhibens_fw-la forinsecus_fw-la bonifacium_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la gratiae_fw-la &_o spiritus_fw-la operans_fw-la intrinsecus_fw-la beneficium_fw-la gratiae_fw-la regenerate_v hominem_fw-la in_o uno_fw-la christo_fw-la ex_fw-la uno_fw-la adam_n generatum_fw-la water_n geve_v outward_o the_o sacrament_n or_o holy_a sign_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v inward_o the_o benefit_n of_o grace_n beget_v man_n again_o in_o one_o christ_n which_o be_v beget_v of_o one_o adam_n water_n be_v the_o outward_a sign_n grace_n be_v yâ_z inward_a benefit_n the_o outward_a water_n which_o wassh_v the_o body_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o inward_a grace_n which_o be_v wrought_v upon_o the_o souââ¦e_n here_o thou_o see_v good_a reader_n the_o sign_n of_o a_o thing_n and_o the_o thing_n itself_o to_o agree_v so_o ther._n well_o that_o the_o one_o be_v always_o depend_v of_o the_o other_o much_o less_o do_v one_o of_o they_o hinder_v the_o other_o except_o any_o man_n will_v say_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o god_n in_o deed_n because_o his_o work_n be_v token_n &_o sign_n of_o his_o godhead_n which_o be_v a_o detestable_a say_n likewise_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n be_v both_o a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n &_o also_o his_o true_a body_n a_o sign_n outward_o &_o the_o true_a body_n inward_o a_o sign_n by_o yâ_z sound_a of_o word_n when_o it_o be_v first_o make_v &_o a_o truth_n by_o the_o inward_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_z the_o mean_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o censecration_n for_o as_o when_o the_o priest_n spââ¦inkleth_v or_o dip_v the_o child_n in_o water_n 28._o say_v ãâã_d wass_v he_o the_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o the_o same_o moment_n the_o holy_a ghost_n wassh_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o person_n baptize_v right_o so_o when_o christ_n or_o any_o lawful_a priest_n in_o his_o name_n take_v bread_n &_o blesââ¦ing_v due_o say_v 11_o this_o be_v my_o body_n make_v in_o those_o word_n a_o evident_a token_n of_o his_o body_n ââ¦eally_o present_a at_o the_o same_o instant_n the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v inward_o the_o true_a substance_n of_o jesus_n christ_n real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n the_o outward_a pronounce_v of_o the_o word_n over_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v the_o sacrament_n or_o holy_a sign_n that_o make_v and_o show_v christ_n body_n and_o the_o inward_a ãâã_d ning_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o christ_n real_a body_n be_v the_o grace_n which_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n invisââ¦bly_o wrought_v thus_o in_o holy_a scripture_n the_o sign_n of_o body_n and_o the_o true_a body_n stand_v so_o welââ¦_n together_o that_o both_o be_v true_a because_o one_o be_v true_a the_o which_o doctrine_n s._n chrisostom_n confess_v write_v sacerdotis_fw-la ne_fw-la oreverba_fw-la proferuntur_fw-la et_fw-la dei_fw-la virtute_fw-la proposita_fw-la consecrantur_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la ait_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la hoc_fw-la verbo_fw-la proposita_fw-la
christ_n ââ¦ayd_v to_o the_o leprouse_n man_n be_v thou_o make_v clean_o which_o word_n give_v a_o sign_n and_o token_n of_o cleanse_v therefore_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v make_v clean_o christ_n give_v a_o sign_n and_o token_n that_o sin_n be_v forgeven_v to_o he_o that_o have_v the_o palsy_n by_o these_o word_n remittuntur_fw-la tibi_fw-la peccata_fw-la open_v tua_fw-la thy_o sin_n be_v forgeven_v the_o therefore_o in_o deed_n they_o be_v forgeven_v likewise_o christ_n bid_v he_o take_v up_o his_o bed_n &_o go_v home_o for_o a_o token_n that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v power_n in_o earth_n to_o forgeve_v sin_n therefore_o christ_n in_o deed_n have_v power_n in_o earth_n to_o forgeve_v sin_n because_o his_o token_n and_o sign_n be_v never_o false_a when_o john_n baptiste_n have_v send_v two_o of_o his_o disciple_n to_o know_v whether_o he_o be_v the_o man_n that_o shall_v come_v or_o a_o other_o be_v to_o be_v look_v for_o christ_n give_v a_o token_n to_o the_o eye_n and_o ear_n of_o the_o messenger_n that_o the_o blind_a saw_n yâ_z lame_a walk_v yâ_z leeper_n be_v cleanse_v therefore_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v so_o and_o he_o bid_v they_o tell_v s._n john_n what_o they_o have_v hear_v and_o seen_v christ_n say_v to_o the_o deaf_a and_o dumb_v man_n adaperire_fw-la be_v thou_o open_v and_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o gospel_n straight_o way_n his_o ear_n be_v open_v and_o the_o bond_n of_o his_o tongue_n loose_v thus_o may_v i_o go_v through_o every_o example_n of_o the_o whole_a gospel_n and_o always_o when_o at_o the_o do_v of_o any_o thing_n a_o outward_a sign_n of_o a_o inward_a grace_n be_v rehearse_v that_o which_o the_o sign_n sound_v the_o grace_n work_v mark_v well_o good_a reader_n that_o this_o rule_n be_v not_o wre_v to_o that_o mere_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o speak_v do_v or_o make_v nothing_o do_v for_o than_o i_o confess_v many_o parable_n many_o obscure_a say_n be_v utter_v to_o provoke_v his_o audience_n to_o be_v humble_a to_o think_v of_o their_o own_o ignorance_n to_o depend_v whole_o of_o christ_n &_o to_o ask_v he_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o dark_a say_n but_o now_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o sole_a doctrine_n i_o speak_v of_o a_o work_n that_o christ_n make_v and_o of_o word_n ioyââ¦d_v with_o his_o work_n in_o this_o case_n i_o say_v what_o so_o ever_o sign_n be_v outward_o make_v the_o same_o be_v inward_o wrought_v 20._o christ_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n take_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o withal_o he_o ãâã_d upon_o they_o behold_v the_o word_n and_o the_o do_v the_o outward_a word_n be_v a_o holy_a sign_n or_o sacrament_n so_o be_v the_o outward_a do_v which_o be_v breathe_v the_o inward_a work_n be_v the_o perfoorm_v of_o thââ¦_n ãâã_d sign_n which_o the_o word_n and_o breath_n do_v betoken_v see_v then_o christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n do_v somewhat_o see_v he_o supper_n take_v bread_n see_v he_o bless_v see_v he_o break_v see_v he_o give_v see_v at_o the_o tyââ¦_n of_o this_o outward_a do_v and_o work_v he_o say_v somewhat_o which_o say_v be_v a_o sign_n a_o sacrament_n a_o figure_n a_o token_n a_o pledge_n a_o ãâã_d of_o his_o body_n we_o be_v assure_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o never_o shall_v perish_v that_o christ_n give_v at_o the_o same_o 1._o time_n his_o true_a body_n under_o the_o form_n of_o that_o bread_n which_o he_o take_v and_o which_o by_o blessing_n he_o turn_v into_o his_o body_n have_v not_o now_o the_o apology_n deep_o reason_v have_v it_o not_o put_v a_o goodly_a foundation_n of_o the_o sacramentarie_a doctrine_n to_o say_v the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o evident_a token_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n thereby_o mean_v thââ¦_n his_o body_n be_v not_o in_o deed_n real_o present_a wherein_o although_o it_o speak_v otherwise_o then_o the_o holy_a scripture_n ââ¦oth_v in_o the_o same_o case_n ââ¦et_v mangre_n the_o will_n of_o the_o maker_n thereof_o it_o prove_v the_o catholic_a faith_n because_o the_o sign_n that_o every_o sa_o crament_n of_o christ_n make_v evident_o to_o our_o sense_n be_v inward_o wrought_v in_o that_o creature_n whereof_o the_o signify_v word_n be_v speak_v by_o this_o true_a declaration_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n it_o be_v prove_v that_o so_o many_o father_n as_o call_v the_o supper_n of_o christ_n a_o sign_n or_o figure_n geve_v witness_n that_o it_o be_v also_o the_o truth_n itself_o and_o if_o the_o apology_n will_v disprove_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n under_o yâ_z foorm_v of_o bread_n it_o must_v show_v that_o his_o supper_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o as_o long_o as_o they_o grant_v we_o the_o sigââ¦e_n the_o word_n of_o god_n will_v convince_v the_o truth_n to_o be_v present_a which_o be_v signify_v ¶_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n be_v not_o figurative_a chapter_n nor_o his_o token_n a_o common_a kind_n of_o token_n when_o i_o grant_v the_o supper_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o sign_n a_o token_n a_o figure_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o grant_v the_o word_n wherewith_o figurative_a it_o be_v make_v to_o be_v figurative_a if_o i_o geve_v you_o a_o ring_n and_o say_v be_v this_o token_n for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o i_o i_o both_o geve_v a_o token_n of_o i_o and_o name_v a_o sign_n or_o token_n and_o yet_o my_o word_n be_v not_o figurative_a it_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v note_v that_o how_o many_o father_n so_o ever_o call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o figure_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o all_o teach_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n to_o be_v word_n figurative_a rhetoââ¦_n for_o when_o they_o call_v it_o a_o figure_n they_o mean_v not_o a_o figure_n of_o rhetoric_n but_o a_o mystical_a figure_n and_o call_v it_o a_o sign_n they_o mean_v not_o a_o natural_a sign_n or_o token_n but_o a_o mystical_a sign_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o secret_a and_o miraculous_a kind_n of_o token_n such_o as_o the_o state_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n require_v the_o nature_n whereof_o be_v to_o do_v that_o which_o it_o say_v âª_o because_o christ_n the_o speaker_n ãâã_d all_o that_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n and_o substance_n which_o his_o word_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o manhood_n in_o holy_a sacrament_n do_v utter_v and_o signify_v now_o he_o that_o will_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n so_o to_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o make_v that_o thing_n to_o be_v his_o body_n in_o deed_n whereof_o in_o word_n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n he_o most_o wicked_o deni_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ._n ebion_n be_v a_o heretic_n who_o deny_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o 30._o christ_n say_v he_o to_o be_v nudun_n hominem_fw-la a_o bare_a man_n epiphanius_n will_v prove_v against_o ebion_n that_o he_o be_v god_n how_o so_o because_o he_o be_v give_v to_o the_o world_n for_o a_o sign_n as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v prophesy_v before_o of_o he_o when_o he_o say_v to_o achaz_n pete_n tibi_fw-la signum_fw-la miraculouse_a ask_v to_o the_o a_o sign_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v not_o ask_v than_o say_v the_o prophet_n ipse_fw-la dominus_fw-la dabit_fw-la vobis_fw-la signum_fw-la our_o lord_n himself_o will_v geve_v you_o a_o sign_n behold_v a_o virgin_n shall_v conceive_v now_o say_v epiphanius_n non_fw-la potest_fw-la be_v qui_fw-la per_fw-la omne_fw-la homo_fw-la genitus_fw-la est_fw-la signi_fw-la gratia_fw-la mundo_fw-la dari_fw-la he_o yâ_z be_v altogether_o beget_v as_o a_o man_n can_v not_o be_v give_v to_o the_o world_n for_o a_o sign_n for_o that_o which_o be_v customable_o do_v what_o sign_n of_o the_o godhead_n can_v be_v therein_o epiphanius_n therefore_o do_v signify_v that_o since_o christ_n birth_n be_v give_v to_o the_o world_n for_o a_o sign_n it_o can_v not_o be_v such_o a_o birth_n as_o other_o man_n have_v but_o it_o must_v be_v miraculous_a and_o the_o miracle_n stand_v in_o this_o point_n because_o he_o be_v true_o bear_v of_o a_o true_a virgin_n much_o more_o we_o may_v say_v since_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n have_v be_v leave_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n it_o can_v not_o be_v so_o if_o it_o be_v bare_a bread_n and_o wine_n and_o not_o token_n in_o deed_n his_o body_n and_o blood_n what_o sign_n what_o secret_a token_n what_o miracle_n be_v in_o the_o eat_n and_o drink_v of_o bare_a bread_n and_o wine_n if_o none_o other_o thing_n be_v make_v thereof_o as_o the_o ordinary_a birth_n of_o man_n be_v no_o mere_a sign_n for_o christ_n who_o be_v true_a god_n so_o the_o ordinary_a eat_n of_o bread_n &_o drink_v of_o wine_n be_v no_o meet_a sign_n for_o
thorough_o try_v as_o he_o he_o lack_v not_o grace_n virtue_n and_o understanding_n but_o he_o lack_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o flesh_n when_o it_o come_v real_o into_o the_o world_n when_o it_o be_v crucify_v and_o gusshed_a out_o stream_n of_o blood_n than_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n deliver_v the_o soul_n of_o abraham_n and_o all_o the_o other_o father_n out_o of_o prison_n well_o to_o end_v this_o matter_n christ_n to_o show_v that_o he_o will_v be_v in_o his_o supper_n by_o yâ_z nature_n of_o his_o manhed_a for_o that_o cause_n he_o name_v not_o his_o person_n but_o his_o flesh_n his_o body_n his_o blood_n and_o s._n paul_n name_v 5._o his_o bone_n as_o you_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o wherefore_o yâ_z talk_v of_o his_o presence_n by_o faith_n be_v unfaythfull_a yâ_z talk_v of_o his_o presence_n by_o spirit_n as_o 24._o thereby_o exclude_v his_o body_n &_o soul_n from_o our_o body_n and_o soul_n be_v spritish_a and_o devilish_a a_o spirit_n have_v no_o flesh_n and_o bone_n christ_n be_v with_o we_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o own_o flesh_n &_o of_o his_o own_o bone_n and_o yet_o that_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o christ_n name_v flesh_n &_o blood_n mean_v not_o that_o either_o his_o flesh_n be_v under_o yâ_z form_n of_o bread_n without_o blood_n or_o his_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n without_o flesh_n but_o that_o under_o each_o kind_n both_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o soul_n and_o godhead_n be_v he_o say_v he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o 6._o blood_n taryethin_v i_o &_o i_o in_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o i_o promise_v flesh_n and_o blood_n i_o name_v they_o only_o to_o declare_v plain_o that_o my_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o be_v according_a to_o yâ_z truth_n of_o my_o humane_a nature_n and_o not_o as_o though_o i_o be_v not_o there_o in_o my_o own_o person_n for_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drynk_v my_o blood_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o but_o it_o i_o have_v say_v that_o i_o geve_v myself_o &_o no_o more_o ãâã_d false_a preacher_n have_v expound_v myself_o by_o my_o godhead_n and_o by_o faith_n upon_o i_o my_o simple_a faithful_a people_n may_v have_v be_v deceive_v i_o name_v flesh_n body_n and_o blood_n to_o show_v according_a to_o what_o nature_n i_o be_o ãâã_d but_o i_o be_o not_o divide_v as_o though_o my_o flesh_n be_v under_o one_o kind_n and_o mie_a blood_n under_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o i_o say_v last_o of_o all_o he_o that_o catcth_v i_o he_o also_o shall_v live_v for_o i_o so_o that_o i_o be_o altogether_o in_o my_o own_o person_n under_o each_o kind_n after_o consecration_n mark_v this_o again_o and_o again_o and_o let_v not_o the_o doctrine_n speak_v of_o christ_n himself_o pretend_v in_o suttil_a word_n deceive_v thou_o any_o long_o believe_v thou_o the_o presence_n of_o body_n of_o blood_n of_o flesh_n and_o of_o bone_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n speak_v ¶_o it_o be_v a_o cold_a supper_n which_o the_o sacramentary_n assign_v chapter_n to_o christ_n in_o comparison_n of_o his_o true_a supper_n and_o we_o say_v not_o this_o be_v do_v slight_o and_o cold_o but_o effectual_o logie_fw-la and_o true_o the_o eat_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o spirit_n be_v no_o sleight_n or_o answer_n cold_a thing_n but_o to_o say_v that_o no_o more_o be_v do_v in_o his_o supper_n that_o be_v slight_o &_o cold_o say_v partly_o because_o so_o much_o may_v be_v do_v without_o 6._o the_o supper_n namely_o when_o so_o ever_o a_o man_n with_o good_a faith_n and_o charity_n do_v meditate_v upon_o his_o gloriouse_a victory_n over_o death_n &_o sin_n partly_o because_o it_o be_v a_o cold_a thing_n to_o ãâã_d man_n who_o consist_v of_o body_n to_o a_o supper_n of_o christ_n make_n and_o to_o geve_v their_o body_n none_o other_o meat_n then_o corruptible_a bread_n and_o wine_n as_o you_o teach_v whereas_o christ_n do_v forbid_v we_o to_o work_v the_o perish_a meat_n at_o his_o banquet_n how_o can_v yâ_z be_v worthy_o call_v yâ_z supper_n of_o christ_n which_o a_o man_n may_v make_v at_o home_n without_o come_v to_o the_o table_n of_o christ_n as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o for_o his_o honour_n to_o have_v a_o singular_a kind_n of_o supââ¦_n of_o his_o own_o every_o man_n may_v eat_v bread_n and_o drink_n wine_n at_o his_o own_o house_n with_o his_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o remember_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o they_o neither_o will_n christ_n leave_v his_o good_a devotion_n unrewarded_a wherein_o the_o supper_n that_o you_o assign_v to_o christ_n consist_v and_o be_v fulfil_v and_o be_v not_o that_o which_o may_v be_v do_v at_o private_a man_n table_n cold_o and_o slight_o do_v in_o comparison_n of_o that_o great_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o true_a melchisedech_n who_o by_o his_o bless_a word_n turn_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o that_o body_n of_o he_o 5._o which_o die_v and_o into_o that_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o ¶_o by_o eat_n we_o touch_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o may_v chapter_n be_v touch_v under_o the_o foorm_n of_o bread_n for_o although_o we_o do_v not_o touch_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o tooth_n logie_fw-la and_o mouth_n yet_o we_o hold_v he_o fast_o and_o eat_v he_o by_o faith_n by_o understanding_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n these_o man_n have_v lose_v their_o wit_n through_o malice_n as_o who_o can_v answer_n devise_v a_o eat_n of_o meat_n in_o a_o supper_n which_o eat_v shall_v be_v without_o touch_v the_o meat_n that_o be_v eat_v with_o tooth_n and_o mouth_n for_o in_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v a_o detestable_a heresy_n and_o a_o intolerable_a 26_o ignorance_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n say_v take_v and_o eat_v do_v not_o mean_a take_n by_o hand_n or_o mouth_n and_o eat_v by_o tooth_n and_o mouth_n take_v and_o eat_v be_v not_o without_o touch_v christ_n say_v take_v and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n therefore_o he_o say_v in_o effect_n touch_v my_o body_n with_o your_o tooth_n and_o with_o your_o mouth_n neither_o do_v it_o skill_n that_o his_o body_n be_v immortal_a and_o impassable_a for_o though_o it_o be_v not_o perish_v by_o the_o eat_n yet_o the_o eat_a and_z thou_fw-mi ching_n be_v not_o therefore_o false_a but_o so_o much_o the_o true_a by_o how_o much_o the_o meat_n receive_v be_v the_o more_o profitable_a cven_n to_o our_o body_n and_o as_o we_o be_v say_v true_o to_o kiss_v the_o king_n knee_n when_o we_o kiss_v his_o hose_n under_o which_o the_o knee_n be_v contain_v even_o so_o in_o touch_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n we_o touch_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v contain_v under_o they_o for_o which_o cause_n s._n chrysostom_n 83_o say_v ãâã_d we_o do_v not_o only_o see_v we_o do_v not_o only_o touch_v but_o we_o eat_v and_o fasten_v our_o tooth_n in_o yâ_z flesh_n of_o christ_n thereby_o note_v and_o teach_v the_o undoubted_a presence_n thereof_o under_o the_o foorm_n of_o bread_n which_o foorm_n we_o see_v we_o touch_v we_o eat_v we_o chaw_v and_o by_o that_o mean_v we_o do_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n under_o that_o foorm_n not_o perish_v the_o body_n one_o whit_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n s._n cyrillus_n speak_v of_o the_o bless_a eucharist_n say_v of_o christ_n praebet_fw-la ãâã_d nobis_fw-la carnem_fw-la svam_fw-la tangendam_fw-la ut_fw-la firmiter_fw-la credamus_fw-la quia_fw-la templum_fw-la verè_fw-la suum_fw-la suscitavit_fw-la he_o geve_v we_o his_o flesh_n to_o be_v touch_v that_o we_o may_v believe_v assure_o that_o he_o have_v true_o raise_v his_o temple_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o own_o body_n christ_n geve_v we_o his_o flesh_n to_o be_v touch_v and_o yet_o do_v we_o not_o touch_v it_o but_o how_o do_v we_o touch_v it_o uery_o as_o s._n thomas_n touch_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ._n for_o as_o in_o 20._o touch_v his_o flesh_n he_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v god_n because_o the_o godhead_n lie_v hide_v in_o that_o flesh_n right_o so_o when_o we_o touch_v with_o tooth_n &_o mouth_n the_o form_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o holy_a mystery_n we_o confess_v that_o we_o touch_v thereby_o the_o flesh_n which_o lie_v hide_v under_o that_o form_n and_o yet_o the_o apology_n deni_v we_o to_o touch_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o tooth_n and_o mouth_n and_o whereas_o it_o say_v we_o hold_v he_o fast_o by_o faith_n that_o be_v true_a also_o but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a truth_n for_o as_o s._n thomas_n the_o apostle_n do_v believe_v upon_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n and_o withal_o touch_v the_o flesh_n wherein_o it_o dwell_v corporal_o even_o so_o we_o believe_v the_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n and_o
and_o geve_v himself_o present_a in_o thââ¦e_a mystery_n or_o no_o you_o grant_v he_o do_v be_v these_o mystery_n in_o heaven_n or_o in_o earth_n i_o suppose_v they_o be_v in_o earth_n then_o say_v i_o your_o word_n import_v thââ¦t_v christ_n geve_v himself_o present_a in_o the_o earth_n how_o then_o do_v you_o straight_o way_n infer_v by_o a_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v bid_v lift_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o hââ¦nward_a because_o he_o be_v there_o by_o who_o we_o must_v be_v ãâã_d feed_v if_o you_o mean_v he_o be_v both_o there_o and_o here_o you_o say_v very_o well_o buââ¦_n thââ¦_n you_o grant_v his_o body_n to_o be_v at_o once_o in_o diverse_a place_n at_o the_o least_o by_o yâ_z way_n of_o sacramental_a be_v except_o you_o will_v say_v his_o body_n be_v not_o in_o these_o mystery_n and_o then_o he_o geve_v not_o himself_o present_a for_o his_o body_n be_v the_o chief_a thing_n whereof_o this_o sacrament_n be_v name_v neither_o we_o be_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n in_o those_o mystery_n where_o his_o flesh_n be_v not_o present_a to_o be_v join_v with_o we_o you_o say_v that_o christ_n geve_v himself_o present_a yea_o so_o far_o present_a that_o we_o know_v certain_o we_o be_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o yet_o you_o bid_v we_o go_v to_o heaven_n because_o he_o be_v there_o of_o who_o we_o must_v be_v full_o feed_v as_o though_o his_o mystery_n be_v not_o in_o earth_n in_o which_o you_o grant_v he_o geve_v he_o selââ¦_n present_a if_o any_o spark_n of_o grace_n remain_v in_o you_o consider_v that_o god_n have_v 1._o give_v you_o over_o into_o a_o lewd_a understanding_n into_o a_o blind_a hart_n in_o to_o palpable_a darkness_n you_o will_v set_v god_n and_o the_o devil_n together_o you_o will_v reconcile_v your_o fond_a hearesie_n with_o the_o healthful_a gospel_n of_o christ_n you_o will_v seem_v to_o confââ¦e_v with_o christ_n yâ_z he_o geve_v himself_o present_a in_o these_o mystery_n with_o s._n paul_n that_o we_o be_v flesh_n oââ¦_n 6._o christ_n flesh_n and_o yet_o withal_o you_o will_v join_v your_o own_o repugnant_a 5._o assertion_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v only_o in_o heaven_n and_o consequent_o not_o in_o these_o mystery_n which_o be_v in_o earth_n the_o long_a you_o stand_v in_o this_o repugnance_n the_o more_o you_o shame_v yourselves_o i_o have_v not_o speak_v this_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n but_o to_o stir_v up_o your_o mind_n by_o word_n of_o sharp_a warning_n which_o s._n paul_n bid_v we_o 3._o use_v to_o heretic_n thereby_o to_o provoke_v some_o such_o as_o have_v regard_n to_o their_o soul_n to_o repent_v in_o time_n and_o to_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o geve_v a_o new_a exposition_n of_o christ_n supper_n which_o may_v stand_v with_o the_o old_a gospel_n of_o christ_n church_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o meat_n of_o his_o supper_n for_o thereof_o he_o say_v take_v 26_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n if_o then_o christ_n geve_v himself_o present_a in_o these_o mystery_n he_o gen_v his_o body_n present_a if_o his_o body_n be_v present_a how_o say_v you_o we_o must_v lift_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o heaven_n there_o to_o be_v full_o feed_v be_v not_o christ_n himself_o be_v present_a able_a to_o feed_v we_o full_a how_o be_v it_o then_o that_o we_o must_v go_v up_o to_o heaven_n to_o be_v full_o feed_v but_o let_v we_o far_o consider_v your_o discrete_a discurse_n it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o mass_n lift_v up_o your_o heart_n which_o word_n you_o interpret_v as_o though_o it_o be_v say_v your_o meat_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o holy_a table_n this_o argument_n i_o maruail_v if_o any_o man_n be_v able_a to_o answer_v the_o people_n be_v warn_v before_o consecration_n to_o liââ¦t_v up_o their_o mind_n to_o heaven_n therefore_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o real_o present_a on_o the_o altar_n after_n consecration_n as_o much_o to_o say_v as_z before_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n the_o prophet_n and_o patriarch_n call_v and_o cry_v to_o god_n themselves_o and_o also_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o coming_z of_o christ_n therefore_o when_o he_o be_v come_v he_o be_v not_o true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n in_o earth_n we_o cry_v lift_v up_o your_o heart_n before_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v as_o beseech_v god_n we_o may_v have_v his_o body_n make_v for_o us._n &_o when_o it_o be_v make_v we_o lift_v the_o body_n itself_o up_o to_o be_v adore_v and_o worship_v of_o the_o faithful_a people_n as_o have_v then_o obtain_v our_o desire_n and_o that_o because_o it_o be_v the_o true_a body_n of_o true_a god_n and_o yet_o even_o after_o consecration_n and_o after_o the_o body_n be_v real_o 4._o present_a it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v lift_v up_o your_o heart_n to_o heaven_n where_o by_o lyft_v up_o we_o shall_v mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o faithful_a man_n shall_v not_o geve_v themselves_o to_o worldly_a thought_n of_o the_o earth_n of_o money_n of_o flesh_n but_o listen_v up_o their_o mind_n to_o think_v of_o everlasting_a joy_n again_o by_o name_v heaven_n we_o mean_v not_o to_o deny_v yâ_z real_a presence_n either_o of_o god_n in_o the_o whole_a earth_n or_o of_o christ_n on_o the_o altar_n but_o only_o to_o show_v that_o we_o shall_v look_v for_o another_o world_n and_o yâ_z life_n thereof_o this_o argument_n may_v have_v become_v a_o tinkar_n better_o than_o a_o divine_a and_o least_o of_o all_o it_o can_v become_v a_o superintendent_n who_o ought_v to_o have_v know_v that_o yâ_z church_n be_v yâ_z kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v within_o we_o &_o that_o to_o consider_v 17._o what_o christ_n work_v in_o his_o church_n and_o for_o her_o sake_n be_v also_o after_o one_o sort_n to_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o heaven_n &_o last_o of_o all_o he_o ought_v to_o consider_v that_o s._n chrysostom_n write_v do_v thou_o not_o promise_v yâ_z priest_n when_o he_o cry_v lift_v up_o your_o eucharistia_n mind_n and_o heart_n and_o say_v thou_o not_o we_o lift_v they_o up_o unto_o our_o lord_n will_v you_o see_v a_o wonderful_a matter_n the_o table_n be_v furnish_v with_o the_o mystery_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n be_v offer_v for_o thou_o the_o priest_n be_v hofull_a for_o thou_o a_o spiritual_a fire_n flow_v from_o the_o table_n see_v what_o lift_v up_o of_o heart_n be_v to_o the_o old_a father_n it_o be_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o mystery_n upon_o the_o table_n to_o believe_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o not_o to_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ._n that_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o homely_a lift_v up_o of_o heart_n to_o lift_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n clean_o from_o the_o altar_n and_o holy_a table_n such_o lift_v away_o become_v thief_n hitherto_o these_o man_n bring_v neither_o any_o evident_a authority_n of_o scripture_n thereby_o to_o fortify_v their_o opinion_n nor_o any_o sentence_n of_o ancient_a father_n concern_v the_o question_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o now_o i_o pray_v you_o see_v what_o worshipful_a gear_n they_o bring_v we_o say_v in_o the_o mass_n lift_v up_o your_o heart_n before_o yâ_z body_n be_v sanctify_v and_o make_v present_a therefore_o it_o be_v not_o make_v present_a at_o all_o we_o say_v grace_n before_o the_o meat_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o table_n therefore_o none_o at_o all_o be_v set_v there_o this_o be_v the_o stuff_n of_o they_o that_o boast_v so_o much_o of_o the_o gospel_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v forget_v which_o be_v four_o time_n repete_v twice_o of_o two_o apostle_n and_o twice_o of_o two_o evangelist_n yet_o be_v that_o forget_v and_o lift_v up_o of_o heart_n which_o come_v of_o the_o good_a invention_n of_o godly_a father_n but_o yet_o from_o man_n it_o come_v that_o be_v call_v in_o for_o a_o witness_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o every_o man_n thinkeththey_a bring_v nothing_o but_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n for_o their_o false_a doctrine_n ¶_o what_o be_v gross_a imagination_n concern_v the_o supper_n chapter_n of_o christ._n and_o cyrillus_n say_v that_o in_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o mystery_n logie_fw-la all_o gross_a imagination_n must_v be_v put_v away_o here_o be_v the_o second_o authority_n allege_v against_o the_o real_a presence_n answer_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o that_o i_o warrant_v you_o full_a strong_a gross_a imagination_n must_v be_v put_v away_o in_o receive_v the_o mystery_n apologie_n therefore_o christ_n speak_v not_o proper_o nor_o true_o when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v we_o not_o now_o happy_a to_o have_v such_o fine_a preacher_n who_o can_v show_v the_o beleve_v of_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v
and_o teach_v to_o be_v a_o gross_a imagination_n o_o gross_a imagination_n of_o these_o pitiful_a preacher_n may_v there_o be_v a_o more_o gross_a imagination_n then_o to_o imagine_v that_o christ_n lie_v cyrillus_n bid_v we_o put_v calosyr_n away_o gross_a imagination_n and_o cyrillus_n say_v of_o yâ_z real_a presence_n ne_o dubites_fw-la a_o hoc_fw-la verum_fw-la sit_fw-la eo_fw-la manifestè_fw-la dicente_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la say_fw-la potius_fw-la suscipe_fw-la verba_fw-la saluatoris_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la cum_fw-la enim_fw-la sit_fw-la veritas_fw-la non_fw-la mentitur_fw-la doubt_v thou_o not_o whether_o this_o be_v true_a since_o himself_o plain_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o rather_o embrace_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o faith_n for_o see_v he_o be_v the_o truth_n he_o lie_v not_o who_o so_o consyder_v well_o these_o word_n may_v understand_v that_o cyrillus_n think_v nothing_o more_o gross_a then_o to_o doubt_v whether_o that_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a or_o no._n what_o gross_a imagination_n than_o do_v cyrillus_n bid_v we_o put_v away_o 1._o for_o soothe_v above_o all_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o imagine_v christ_n to_o lie_v 2._o second_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o imagine_v his_o word_n concern_v this_o sacrament_n to_o be_v dark_a or_o obscure_a see_v christ_n as_o he_o say_v speak_v manifest_o 3._o again_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v think_v any_o other_o body_n to_o be_v give_v besides_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n who_o in_o one_o person_n be_v god_n and_o man_n in_o the_o time_n of_o cyrillus_n a_o great_a heretic_n name_v nestorius_n hearesie_n scholar_n to_o one_o diodorus_n false_o teach_v that_o christ_n have_v two_o person_n one_o of_o god_n a_o other_o of_o man_n therefore_o they_o imagine_v the_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o all_o the_o world_n even_o the_o heretic_n themselves_o beleve_v to_o be_v present_a upon_o the_o altar_n after_o consecration_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o man_n but_o not_o the_o proper_a body_n of_o god_n the_o word_n this_o be_v a_o very_a gross_a imagination_n and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o be_v put_v away_o from_o the_o mind_n of_o faithful_a man_n in_o receive_v the_o mystery_n hereof_o cyrillus_n literal_o say_v num_fw-la hominis_fw-la comestionem_fw-la anathematismo_fw-la nostrum_fw-la hoc_fw-la sucramentum_fw-la pronuncias_fw-la &_o irreligiosè_fw-la ad_fw-la crassas_fw-la cogitationes_fw-la urge_v eorum_fw-la mentem_fw-la qui_fw-la crediderunt_fw-la do_v thou_o pronounce_v this_o our_o sacrament_n to_o be_v the_o eat_n of_o a_o man_n and_o do_v thou_o irreverent_o enforce_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o gross_a cogitation_n behold_v the_o gross_a cogitation_n be_v to_o think_v that_o we_o do_v eat_v that_o body_n of_o a_o man_n whereas_o in_o deed_n through_o the_o unity_n of_o person_n it_o be_v yâââ¦ody_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o therefore_o cyrillus_n say_v afterwarââ¦_n proprium_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la eius_fw-la verbi_fw-la quod_fw-la omne_fw-la vivificat_fw-la it_o be_v the_o body_n proper_a to_o that_o word_n which_o quicken_v all_o thing_n of_o this_o ââ¦oule_n and_o gross_a eââ¦oure_n two_o epistle_n be_v extant_a of_o cyrillus_n as_o isauriae_n also_o in_o all_o his_o work_n he_o full_a oft_o confute_v it_o one_o thing_n i_o will_v further_o note_v this_o fine_a penner_n of_o the_o apology_n cit_v not_o where_o cyrillus_n speak_v of_o these_o gross_a imagination_n because_o the_o place_n be_v marvellous_a evident_a against_o he_o and_o what_o foul_a play_n be_v this_o to_o belie_v cyrillus_n as_o though_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o that_o imagination_n wherein_o we_o believe_v that_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n whereas_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o wherein_o nestorius_n understand_v that_o we_o do_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n with_o out_o the_o divine_a nature_n unite_v unto_o it_o in_o one_o person_n cyrillus_n say_v because_o the_o word_n which_o be_v of_o god_n the_o father_n enoptium_fw-la be_v life_n by_o nature_n it_o have_v declare_v his_o flesh_n to_o be_v the_o gever_n of_o life_n &_o hac_fw-la ratione_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la benedictio_fw-la vivificatrix_fw-la and_o by_o this_o mean_n the_o blessing_n be_v make_v to_o we_o gever_n of_o life_n cyrillus_n call_v yâ_z sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n benedictio_fw-la blessing_n because_o it_o be_v make_v by_o blessing_n now_o in_o name_v blessing_n he_o must_v sing_v needs_o mean_v that_o which_o be_v bless_v which_o be_v on_o the_o altar_n before_o we_o and_o not_o any_o thing_n coââ¦ceaved_v in_o faith_n or_o spirit_n therefore_o cyrillus_n mean_v out_o of_o all_o controversy_n that_o thing_n which_o be_v make_v by_o blessing_n which_o we_o take_v in_o our_o hand_n which_o comeditur_fw-la we_o put_v in_o our_o mouth_n to_o be_v able_a to_o geve_v life_n everlasting_a which_o none_o other_o eatable_a thing_n can_v do_v besides_o the_o real_a flesh_n of_o christ._n for_o the_o nature_n of_o godhead_n as_o cyrillus_n there_o confess_v be_v not_o eat_v by_o itself_o or_o a_o part_n from_o the_o flesh_n if_o we_o put_v this_o together_o i_o require_v no_o more_o but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o honest_a man_n who_o shall_v construe_v the_o place_n of_o cyrillus_n he_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o confess_v such_o a_o eat_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n as_o be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o godhead_n and_o yet_o eat_v by_o faith_n be_v proper_a to_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o godhead_n therefore_o cyrillus_n speak_v of_o eat_v that_o which_o quicken_v we_o to_o life_n everlasting_a with_o our_o body_n also_o and_o not_o with_o faith_n alone_o an_o other_o gross_a imagination_n be_v to_o think_v that_o we_o eat_v the_o gination_n body_n of_o christ_n shall_v eat_v it_o dead_a or_o mortal_a and_o passable_a as_o we_o use_v to_o eat_v other_o meat_n whereas_o it_o be_v quick_a yea_o of_o power_n to_o quicken_v we_o as_o cyrillus_n teach_v quoniam_fw-la saluatoris_fw-la caro_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la quod_fw-la naturaliter_fw-la vita_fw-la estconiuncta_fw-la vivifica_fw-la effecta_fw-la est_fw-la quando_fw-la eam_fw-la comedimus_fw-la tunââ¦_n vitam_fw-la habemus_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la illi_fw-la coniuncti_fw-la quae_fw-la vita_fw-la effecta_fw-la est_fw-la because_o the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n join_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v life_n na_fw-mi tural_o be_v make_v able_a to_o geve_v life_n when_o we_o eat_v it_o than_o we_o have_v life_n in_o we_o be_v join_v to_o that_o flesh_n which_o be_v make_v life_n 5._o the_o five_o gross_a imagination_n be_v to_o think_v that_o we_o shall_v so_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n as_o if_o it_o be_v raw_a and_o not_o by_o any_o mean_n make_v meat_n for_o man_n cate_v of_o this_o gross_a imagination_n the_o capharnait_n be_v ad_fw-la immanes_a ferarum_fw-la mores_fw-la vocari_fw-la se_fw-la a_o chri_n 22._o sto_z arbitrabantur_fw-la incitarique_fw-la ut_fw-la vellent_fw-la crudas_fw-la hominis_fw-la carnes_z manducare_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la bibere_fw-la quae_fw-la vel_fw-la auditu_fw-la horribilia_fw-la sunt_fw-la they_o think_v themselves_o to_o be_v invite_v of_o christ_n to_o the_o cruel_a custom_n of_o wild_a beast_n and_o to_o be_v provoke_v to_o eat_v the_o raw_a flesh_n &_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o man_n which_o thing_n be_v horrible_a to_o hear_v it_o be_v yet_o no_o less_o a_o gross_a imagination_n to_o suppose_v they_o shall_v 6._o cate_z the_o body_n of_o christ_n piece_n meal_n one_o take_v the_o shoulder_n a_o other_o the_o leg_n the_o three_o the_o breast_n and_o so_o forth_o against_o which_o imagination_n s._n augustine_n have_v write_v their_o imagination_n also_o be_v very_o gross_a who_o think_v that_o substance_n 98._o of_o bread_n to_o remain_v after_o consecration_n as_o though_o they_o will_v eat_v that_o immortal_a and_o gloriouse_a flesh_n of_o christ_n with_o baker_n bread_n 7._o which_o be_v the_o curse_a banquet_n of_o the_o lutheran_n whereas_o christ_n say_v the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n geve_v we_o to_o understand_v 6._o yâ_z he_o will_v not_o have_v in_o his_o heavenly_a supper_n a_o earthly_a substance_n of_o material_a bread_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o more_o gross_a imagination_n to_o confess_v that_o reallpresence_n 8._o of_o christ_n body_n and_o to_o deny_v adoration_n to_o it_o since_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o god_n 9_o but_o how_o gross_a be_v it_o to_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n since_o it_o be_v his_o body_n who_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o the_o whole_a world_n 2._o âª_o i_o omit_v at_o this_o time_n his_o gross_a imagination_n who_o teach_v the_o word_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o a_o gift_n present_o make_v and_o deliver_v to_o be_v word_n of_o promise_n and_o of_o preach_v *_o but_o the_o gross_a imagination_n that_o ever_o be_v hear_v of_o be_v of_o they_o who_o affirm_v no_o body_n of_o christ_n at_o all_o to_o be_v make_v real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n
outward_o celebrate_v thereof_o and_o not_o only_o diverse_a prediction_n be_v make_v by_o the_o prophet_n 22._o concern_v the_o same_o but_o also_o when_o christ_n himself_o be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o do_v both_o make_v a_o introduction_n to_o the_o promise_n of_o his_o supper_n by_o a_o miraculouse_a blessing_n and_o break_v of_o five_o and_o 7._o seven_o loaf_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o more_o over_o in_o express_a word_n foretell_v that_o he_o will_v geve_v his_o flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v even_o the_o same_o flesh_n 6._o which_o he_o will_v geve_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n but_o for_o so_o much_o as_o some_o man_n think_v that_o christ_n in_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n speak_v not_o proper_o at_o all_o no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o by_o the_o way_n of_o promise_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n i_o must_v as_o book_n well_o prove_v against_o they_o who_o think_v so_o that_o christ_n speak_v in_o that_o place_n of_o the_o gift_n which_o he_o afterward_o make_v in_o his_o part_a banquet_n as_o also_o that_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v evident_o prove_v by_o such_o word_n of_o promise_n as_o he_o there_o utter_v for_o it_o can_v not_o be_v doubt_v but_o the_o truth_n itself_o perform_v all_o that_o in_o deed_n itself_o which_o his_o word_n have_v before_o promise_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v neither_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v a_o grief_n to_o any_o man_n if_o in_o handle_v these_o matter_n i_o seem_v to_o entreat_v of_o hard_a question_n which_o be_v above_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o vulgar_a people_n for_o the_o nature_n of_o all_o holy_a mystery_n 2._o be_v such_o that_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v it_o may_v soon_o be_v impugn_a popular_o and_o plausible_o then_o be_v so_o defend_v which_o notwithstanding_o i_o have_v do_v what_o i_o can_v to_o utter_v all_o thing_n plain_o and_o yet_o who_o be_v there_o that_o now_o can_v just_o find_v fault_n with_o i_o for_o handle_v deep_a and_o obscure_a matter_n be_v not_o every_o man_n sufficient_o instruct_v by_o this_o time_n to_o judge_v of_o all_o point_n in_o divinity_n be_v not_o that_o man_n who_o in_o parliament_n scare_v not_o to_o sit_v judge_n of_o this_o high_a mystery_n and_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o any_o one_o prelate_n in_o that_o house_n to_o condemn_v the_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o bless_a mass_n be_v not_o that_o man_n able_a to_o understand_v such_o writing_n as_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o that_o behalf_n he_o that_o must_v if_o a_o parliament_n be_v call_v prescribe_v a_o faith_n unto_o i_o what_o say_v i_o unto_o i_o he_o that_o will_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o prescribe_v it_o to_o all_o the_o realm_n to_o general_a counsel_n yea_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n he_o that_o will_v accuse_v his_o father_n and_o grandfather_n even_o to_o the_o ten_o generation_n of_o ignorance_n of_o superstition_n and_o of_o idolatry_n he_o that_o account_v himself_o 2._o spiritual_a and_o therefore_o sufficient_a to_o discern_v doctrine_n &_o spirit_n will_v he_o say_v that_o a_o poor_a scholar_n of_o oxford_n do_v write_v to_o high_a for_o his_o understanding_n if_o it_o be_v so_o let_v he_o understand_v that_o the_o say_a scholar_n be_v a_o very_a base_a member_n in_o christ_n church_n and_o a_o very_a ignorant_a man_n in_z re_z pect_v of_o those_o notable_a bishop_n &_o other_o divine_n who_o he_o hear_v council_n and_o see_v at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n with_o such_o admiration_n that_o ãâã_d deed_n he_o be_v neither_o able_a nor_o worthy_a to_o speak_v among_o they_o let_v he_o understand_v that_o those_o father_n do_v so_o exact_o serche_n out_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o present_a controversy_n as_o well_o by_o confer_v together_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o by_o view_v the_o book_n of_o the_o aun_n cient_a doctor_n and_o counsel_n that_o they_o spend_v in_o some_o one_o matter_n four_o month_n continual_a to_o be_v short_a let_v he_o understand_v yâ_z see_v the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o learned_a man_n ãâã_d christendom_n come_v not_o to_o yâ_z council_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v in_o it_o above_o two_o hundred_o person_n of_o such_o excellency_n for_o wit_n learning_n &_o virtue_n that_o it_o pass_v much_o more_o the_o wisdom_n of_o any_o one_o realm_n than_o the_o grave_a senate_n of_o a_o church_n whole_a realm_n do_v exceed_v that_o particular_a council_n of_o never_o so_o mean_a a_o litie_n let_v he_o i_o say_v understand_v what_o wisdom_n what_o knowledge_n what_o judgement_n be_v and_o have_v be_v in_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n by_o the_o space_n of_o fiftene_o hundred_o year_n together_o the_o preach_a practice_n and_o government_n of_o which_o long_a time_n a_o few_o such_o fear_v not_o of_o late_a by_o their_o open_a voice_n to_o condemn_v as_o to_o who_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v at_o their_o own_o house_n propose_v a_o very_a mean_a problem_n âª_o or_o doubt_n in_o divinity_n they_o will_v not_o only_o refuse_v to_o answer_v thereunto_o but_o they_o will_v also_o confess_v plain_o that_o they_o never_o study_v the_o science_n of_o divinity_n they_o will_v swear_v if_o need_n be_v that_o they_o never_o attend_v principal_o to_o any_o other_o thing_n then_o to_o serve_v god_n and_o their_o prince_n and_o to_o hawk_n or_o hunt_v whereof_o i_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v deep_o consider_v with_o what_o temeritie_n they_o attempt_v to_o determine_v the_o high_a and_o secret_a point_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o that_o know_v their_o fault_n they_o shall_v bewail_v &_o amend_v the_o same_o i_o beseech_v god_n to_o geve_v we_o all_o grace_n to_o know_v ourselves_o and_o tââ¦_n beware_v that_o while_o we_o covet_v to_o be_v as_o god_n in_o understand_v the_o scripture_n we_o taste_v not_o of_o the_o tree_n which_o be_v name_v the_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o afterward_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o paradise_n because_o we_o content_v not_o ourselves_o with_o the_o order_n 3._o and_o condition_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v appoint_v for_o us._n i_o trust_v although_o the_o matter_n which_o i_o entreat_v of_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o make_v they_o yet_o plain_a by_o such_o help_n as_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o in_o their_o most_o learned_a work_n and_o commentary_n according_a to_o who_o wisdom_n i_o will_v expound_v those_o place_n of_o s._n john_n which_o special_o appertein_a to_o my_o purpose_n the_o chapiters_n of_o the_o three_o book_n 1._o the_o argument_n of_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n be_v declare_v 2._o it_o be_v prove_v by_o circumstance_n and_o by_o the_o conference_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o christ_n speak_v in_o s._n john_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n 3._o the_o same_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o father_n and_o counsel_n 4._o answer_n be_v make_v to_o they_o that_o teach_v the_o contrary_a out_o of_o the_o father_n 5._o item_n to_o they_o that_o teach_v the_o contrary_a out_o of_o the_o scriptuââ¦es_n 6._o the_o gift_n of_o the_o everlasting_a meat_n be_v show_v to_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o christ_n flesh_n at_o his_o supper_n 7._o the_o equality_n of_o substance_n allege_v between_o christ_n and_o his_o father_n prove_v one_o substance_n to_o be_v give_fw-ge both_o of_o god_n the_o father_n to_o christ_n and_o of_o christ_n to_o us._n 8._o christ_n be_v not_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n to_o we_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o flesh_n except_o we_o eat_v real_o his_o own_o flesh_n 9_o whereas_o three_o gift_n be_v name_v in_o s._n john_n christ_n gift_n partake_v of_o both_o the_o other_o &_o therefore_o contain_v his_o real_a flesh_n under_o a_o figure_n 10._o the_o middle_a state_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n between_o the_o law_n and_o glory_n require_v the_o same_o truth_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n to_o be_v give_fw-ge under_o a_o figure_n 11._o the_o bread_n that_o christ_n will_v geve_v which_o be_v his_o flesh_n must_v needs_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o flesh_n 12._o christ_n himself_o show_v that_o the_o eat_n of_o he_o by_o faith_n or_o in_o a_o figure_n only_o differ_v far_o from_o the_o real_a eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n 13._o christ_n flesh_n to_o be_v as_o real_o present_a in_o his_o supper_n as_o water_n be_v at_o baptism_n in_o so_o much_o that_o child_n be_v sometime_o communicate_v 14._o that_o s._n augustin_n do_v not_o teach_v these_o word_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n &_o caet_fw-la to_o betoken_v only_o eat_v by_o faith_n and_o spirit_n or_o by_o figure_n alone_o 15._o christ_n flesh_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n must_v needs_o be_v real_o present_a to_o be_v eat_v 16._o by_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n tarry_v in_o we_o it_o be_v êue_v that_o we_o eat_v his_o
fulfil_v it_o âª_o for_o the_o fulfil_n 5._o of_o the_o law_n without_o the_o put_v away_o thereof_o be_v no_o less_o to_o say_v then_o to_o put_v the_o fullness_n of_o new_a grace_n under_o a_o shadow_n which_o shadow_n may_v seem_v to_o keep_v a_o resemblance_n with_o the_o old_a law_n so_o that_o of_o two_o distincte_n state_n there_o must_v now_o be_v make_v one_o new_a middle_a state_n of_o the_o which_o the_o outward_a part_n resemble_v the_o law_n and_o the_o inward_a be_v one_o with_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n let_v we_o put_v a_o example_n in_o the_o precept_n of_o nature_n to_o make_v this_o thing_n more_o plain_a the_o law_n say_v non_fw-la occides_fw-la thou_o shall_v not_o 20._o kyl_v this_o precept_n be_v not_o put_v away_o by_o christ_n but_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o it_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v angry_a be_v join_v thereunto_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o yâ_z sermââ¦n_v of_o christ_n in_o s._n matthew_n it_o be_v say_v 5._o to_o they_o of_o the_o oldelaw_n thou_o shall_v not_o kyl_v but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o every_o one_o that_o be_v angry_a with_o his_o brother_n shall_v be_v guilty_a in_o judgement_n here_o we_o see_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o of_o kylliug_n the_o other_o of_o be_v angry_a that_o of_o kill_n be_v outward_a that_o of_o anger_n be_v inward_a kilââ¦ng_v they_o both_o make_v but_o one_o precept_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_z not_o kill_n depend_v upon_o the_o not_o be_v angry_a and_o then_o be_v kill_n thorough_o take_v away_o when_o anger_n be_v thorough_o cure_v and_o as_o it_o fare_v with_o this_o precept_n so_o staud_v it_o with_o the_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n whereof_o we_o reason_n for_o it_o keep_v yâ_z form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o under_o yâ_z law_n be_v empty_a and_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v be_v token_a by_o the_o old_a manna_n be_v put_v by_o the_o almyghtic_a power_n of_o god_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o so_o remain_v the_o law_n not_o altogether_o put_v away_o for_o a_o kind_n of_o figure_n tarry_v still_o and_o it_o be_v ever_o a_o sigurative_a law_n but_o fulfil_v because_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n be_v make_v present_a under_o a_o figure_n the_o sign_n of_o circuncision_n say_v s._n leo_n the_o sanctification_n of_o 13._o gift_n the_o consecration_n of_o priest_n the_o purity_n of_o sacrisice_n the_o verity_n of_o wash_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v with_o us._n there_o be_v no_o legal_a instruction_n no_o prophetical_a figure_n quod_fw-la non_fw-la totum_fw-la in_o christi_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la transierit_fw-la which_o be_v not_o whole_o transfer_v into_o the_o sacrament_n 8._o of_o christ_n and_o again_o one_o oblation_n of_o thy_o body_n and_o blood_n fulfil_v the_o diversity_n of_o the_o old_a sacrifice_n hitherto_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a to_z yâ_z same_o effect_n serve_v yâ_z word_n of_o bless_a dionysius_n a_o counsellor_n of_o the_o senate_n of_o athens_n scholar_n to_o s._n paul_n who_o have_v erarchia_fw-la declare_v the_o holy_a kind_n of_o governance_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n among_o the_o ordres_n of_o angel_n and_o have_v show_v that_o by_o they_o the_o inferior_a degree_n of_o man_n be_v bring_v unto_o god_n according_a to_o their_o capacity_n he_o first_o show_v that_o god_n give_v unto_o the_o world_n the_o goveruement_n of_o the_o law_n which_o he_o give_v as_o to_o child_n in_o sign_n and_o token_n and_o as_o to_o weak_a eye_n in_o figure_n cloud_n or_o shadow_n but_o afterward_o come_v our_o holy_a governaunce_n which_o be_v the_o end_n and_o fulfil_n of_o the_o former_a law_n now_o say_v this_o holy_a 5._o writer_n nostra_fw-la hierarchia_fw-la &_o coelestibus_fw-la est_fw-la &_o legalis_fw-la quae_fw-la communiter_fw-la medietate_fw-la extremorum_fw-la comprehenditur_fw-la cum_fw-la illa_fw-la commune_v habens_fw-la spiritales_fw-la contemplationes_fw-la cum_fw-la hac_fw-la autem_fw-la signa_fw-la quo_fw-la sensum_fw-la movent_fw-la quorum_fw-la varietate_fw-la distinguitur_fw-la &_o per_fw-la ea_fw-la piè_fw-la ad_fw-la deum_fw-la adducitur_fw-la our_o holy_a governance_n say_v dionysius_n be_v both_o heavenly_a and_o legal_a that_o be_v to_o say_v have_v somewhat_o like_a to_o the_o law_n contain_v in_o common_a between_o those_o two_o extremyty_n partake_v with_o that_o of_o heaven_n spiritual_a contemplation_n and_o with_o this_o of_o the_o law_n sensible_a sign_n whereby_o it_o be_v diverse_o distincted_a and_o by_o they_o it_o be_v bring_v after_o a_o holy_a maver_z unto_o god_n we_o have_v hear_v how_o the_o scholar_n of_o s._n paul_n join_v in_o our_o glory_n state_n the_o heavenly_a contemplation_n of_o angel_n who_o look_v upon_o god_n himself_o with_o the_o outward_a sign_n of_o the_o law_n for_o by_o heavenly_a contemplation_n s._n dionysius_n mean_v that_o truth_n which_o face_n to_o face_n be_v see_v in_o heaven_n but_o let_v we_o return_v again_o to_o the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n who_o do_v yet_o express_v this_o matter_n more_o plain_o keep_v the_o same_o division_n but_o geve_v every_o thing_n his_o plain_a name_n the_o law_n have_v the_o bare_a shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v the_o truth_n 10._o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n itself_o which_o he_o call_v also_o rem_fw-la ipsam_fw-la the_o thing_n itself_o wherein_o also_o dwell_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n now_o the_o 2._o join_n of_o a_o figure_n with_o the_o truth_n be_v call_v ipsa_fw-la imago_fw-la rerum_fw-la the_o very_a shape_n or_o image_n of_o the_o thing_n vmbram_fw-la enim_fw-la habens_fw-la lex_fw-la futurorum_fw-la 10._o bonorum_fw-la non_fw-la ipsam_fw-la imaginem_fw-la rerum_fw-la for_o yâ_z law_n say_v s._n paul_n have_v the_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v not_o the_o very_a image_n of_o the_o thing_n the_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v be_v the_o vision_n of_o thing_n christ_n in_o glory_n and_o yâ_z clear_o sight_n of_o god_n who_o corporal_o dwell_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n the_o shadow_n hereof_o be_v yâ_z law_n whereof_o thing_n moses_n be_v steward_n obtain_v bread_n from_o the_o air_n for_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n but_o the_o image_n itself_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v wherein_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v contain_v and_o in_o that_o body_n god_n dwell_v yâ_z image_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o god_n &_o man_n cover_v under_o the_o form_n of_o our_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n christ._n and_o therefore_o that_o sacrament_n be_v proper_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n con_v teyn_v both_o it_o which_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o heaven_n and_o such_o a_o figure_n as_o we_o have_v see_v under_o the_o law_n cover_v present_o the_o truth_n to_o come_v with_o the_o shadow_n past_a to_o come_v i_o say_v without_o a_o shadow_n &_o vain_a past_a i_o say_v without_z yâ_z real_a truth_n but_o now_o have_v the_o truth_n under_o a_o shadow_n maximus_n and_o pachimera_n do_v upon_o s._n dionysius_n allege_v s._n paul_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o that_o which_o dionysius_n say_v oecu_n menius_n likewise_o expound_v the_o thing_n themselves_o to_o be_v the_o life_n to_o come_v the_o shadow_n to_o be_v the_o old_a testament_n the_o image_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o do_v not_o in_o vain_a cause_n the_o gift_n of_o god_n by_o moses_n to_o be_v name_v diverse_o from_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n to_o differ_v from_o they_o both_o moses_n be_v say_v to_o have_v give_v god_n the_o fa_fw-it the_fw-mi present_o to_o geve_v christ_n promise_v that_o he_o will_v geve_v god_n by_o moses_n have_v give_v bread_n god_n the_o father_n at_o the_o time_n of_o speak_v give_v his_o son_n in_o visible_a flesh_n christ_n promyse_v to_o geve_v yâ_z bread_n which_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o flesh_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n bring_v together_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o good_a thing_n of_o heaven_n &_o such_o figure_n as_o be_v in_o the_o law_n gift_n all_o which_o distinction_n of_o geve_v and_o truth_n of_o gift_n the_o sacra_fw-la mentary_n by_o their_o figurative_a doctrine_n make_v void_a as_o they_o do_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o they_o will_v that_o christ_n outward_a gift_n shall_v in_o it_o contain_v no_o invisible_a truth_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o even_o the_o bare_a substance_n of_o common_a bread_n and_o wine_n feed_v we_o with_o needy_a and_o impotent_a creature_n as_o though_o we_o 4._o remain_v yet_o babe_n as_o though_o christ_n in_o fulfyl_a all_o figure_n have_v destroy_v they_o and_o not_o leave_v they_o full_a and_o perfect_a that_o which_o the_o water_n and_o the_o cloud_n do_v signify_v be_v now_o real_o 10._o perform_v in_o baptism_n where_o
we_o be_v save_v by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o of_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n likewise_o 3._o that_o which_o manna_n do_v then_o shadow_n have_v the_o swetenesse_n of_o all_o dainty_a and_o pleasant_a taste_n as_o now_o real_o give_v because_o yâ_z flesh_n 16._o of_o christ_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n we_o differ_v not_o in_o substance_n of_o our_o manna_n from_o the_o angel_n of_o jew_o heaven_n but_o only_o they_o be_v out_o of_o all_o fear_n we_o lyuc_v in_o good_a hope_n they_o see_v and_o eat_v we_o eat_v &_o see_v not_o but_o beââ¦ue_v they_o be_v in_o their_o and_o our_o country_n we_o be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o they_o while_o we_o be_v go_v the_o truth_n of_o heaven_n be_v cover_v to_o we_o but_o since_o christ_n come_v down_o to_o be_v our_o guide_n he_o have_v leave_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n among_o we_o as_o real_o as_o he_o ââ¦_z real_o for_o that_o purpose_n take_v flesh_n and_o die_v in_o the_o same_o flesh_n to_o 12._o thintent_v he_o be_v exalt_v upon_o the_o cross_n shall_v draw_v all_o thing_n unto_o himself_o ¶_o the_o bread_n that_o christ_n promise_v to_o geve_v which_o be_v his_o flesh_n must_v needs_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o chapter_n his_o flesh_n have_v already_o touch_v the_o three_o several_a time_n of_o geve_v âª_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o s._n john_n order_n wood_n yâ_z i_o shall_v show_v the_o three_o several_a kind_n of_o work_v those_o three_o gift_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o last_o gift_n of_o the_o three_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o christ_n whereof_o we_o do_v principal_o entreat_v i_o think_v good_a to_o say_v somewhat_o of_o it_o alone_o christ_n have_v say_v before_o work_v the_o everlasting_a meat_n which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v geve_v you_o come_v now_o to_o namè_fw-la what_o kind_n of_o meat_n it_o be_v and_o the_o bread_n say_v he_o which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n i_o have_v prove_v already_o that_o these_o two_o sentence_n belong_v to_o one_o manner_n of_o gift_n which_o also_o be_v promise_v to_o be_v give_v to_o we_o and_o not_o only_o to_o be_v give_v for_o we_o as_o some_o do_v aââ¦_n to_o be_v give_v to_o we_o i_o say_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n and_o not_o only_o for_o we_o upon_o yâ_z cross_n the_o which_o thing_n because_o i_o have_v by_o diverse_a reason_n prove_v in_o two_o place_n of_o this_o present_a book_n it_o shall_v be_v now_o suââ¦_n 1._o to_o warn_v the_o reader_n that_o s._n cyprââ¦_n write_v upon_o our_o lord_n prayier_n have_v allege_v these_o word_n the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o ââ¦esh_n as_o speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o like_a have_v s._n chrysostom_n do_v in_o his_o comment_n upon_o the_o same_o place_n affirm_v that_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o mystery_n beside_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v hereof_o upon_o the_o sixth_o of_o s._n john_n do_v also_o allege_v it_o again_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n name_v benedictionem_fw-la mysticaââ¦_n the_o mystical_a blessing_n s._n augustine_n often_o time_n allege_v this_o text_n for_o the_o gift_n make_v in_o christ_n supper_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v before_o also_o theodoritus_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o as_o for_o theophilact_n and_o euthymius_n be_v so_o clear_a in_o this_o matter_n that_o they_o never_o doubt_v thereof_o which_o since_o it_o be_v so_o let_v it_o stand_v for_o a_o truth_n most_o universal_o receive_v yâ_z christ_n say_v the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n mean_v the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v you_o at_o my_o last_o supper_n be_v my_o flesh_n moreover_o the_o word_n bread_n must_v be_v note_v which_o stand_v not_o present_o for_o wheaten_a bread_n but_o only_o for_o food_n and_o meat_n for_o as_o christ_n say_v before_o work_v the_o meat_n which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v geve_v you_o so_o now_o he_o say_v and_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n declare_v yâ_z bread_n in_o this_o place_n be_v all_o one_o with_o meat_n the_o which_o 22._o truth_n be_v also_o express_v of_o s._n cyrillus_n where_o he_o say_v saluator_fw-la cum_fw-la ad_fw-la judaeos_fw-la multa_fw-la de_fw-la carne_fw-la sva_fw-la dissereret_fw-la ac_fw-la vivisicum_fw-la verè_fw-la panem_fw-la ââ¦am_fw-la appellaret_fw-la panis_fw-la enim_fw-la inquit_fw-la quem_fw-la ego_fw-la dabo_fw-la caro_fw-la mea_fw-la est_fw-la when_o our_o saviour_n dispute_v many_o thing_n among_o the_o jew_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o caââ¦ed_v it_o the_o bread_n true_o geve_v life_n he_o say_v for_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n thus_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o christ_n in_o effect_n say_v i_o will_v geve_v you_o a_o kind_n of_o meat_n or_o food_n in_o my_o last_o supper_n yâ_z which_o be_v my_o flesh_n even_o the_o same_o flesh_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n this_o promise_n christ_n make_v at_o caphââ¦_n to_o all_o the_o ââ¦tude_n but_o ãâã_d submit_v then selue_o to_o receive_v that_o doctrine_n beside_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n among_o who_o judas_n be_v one_o have_v this_o promise_n make_v to_o he_o also_o for_o although_o christ_n know_v he_o to_o be_v a_o devil_n and_o traitor_n as_o himself_o say_v even_o at_o caphââ¦um_n yet_o see_v 6._o he_o tarry_v with_o the_o twelve_o even_o at_o the_o last_o supper_n and_o other_o man_n know_v not_o so_o much_o of_o his_o malicious_a intent_n christ_n dissemble_v it_o and_o as_o he_o promise_v his_o flesh_n to_o all_o so_o he_o give_v it_o to_o the_o twelve_o in_o the_o night_n wherein_o he_o be_v betray_v the_o which_o thing_n i_o speak_v to_o send_v the_o reader_n may_v perceane_n what_o christ_n promise_v present_o such_o a_o gift_n it_o be_v the_o which_o be_v perform_v ââ¦o_o less_o to_o judas_n then_o to_o the_o other_o apostle_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o a_o spiritual_a gift_n only_o which_o be_v promise_v for_o such_o a_o one_o judas_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v take_v but_o it_o be_v a_o real_a âª_o and_o external_a gift_n which_o be_v deliver_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n and_o receive_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n after_o which_o sort_n judas_n take_v it_o which_o can_v not_o be_v so_o except_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n which_o christ_n give_v again_o christ_n speak_v not_o now_o of_o geve_v his_o flesh_n by_o faith_n only_o for_o that_o gift_n his_o father_n present_o give_v as_o he_o say_v pater_fw-la meus_fw-la that_fw-mi vobis_fw-la panem_fw-la de_fw-la coelo_fw-la verum_fw-la my_o father_n do_v geve_v you_o the_o true_a bread_n from_o heaven_n that_o gift_n christ_n himself_o be_v be_v give_v in_o flesh_n to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o and_o ãâã_d upon_o he_o by_o spiritual_a devotion_n but_o christ_n gift_n both_o have_v a_o other_o person_n &_o a_o other_o tyme._n the_o person_n be_v christ_n the_o time_n be_v to_o come_v whereupon_o joan._n s._n chrysostom_n here_o note_v see_v non_fw-la patrem_fw-la dare_v dicit_fw-la he_o say_v himself_o to_o geve_v and_o not_o his_o father_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o real_a gift_n to_o be_v make_v external_o whereof_o christ_n speak_v whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o christ_n flesh_n be_v promise_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n which_o suin_n his_o ââ¦pper_n be_v take_v bless_a and_o deliver_v under_o that_o form_n christ_n flesh_n be_v promise_v not_o in_o faith_n only_o but_o in_o truth_n of_o nature_n and_o in_o the_o same_o substance_n which_o be_v give_v ãâã_d the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n the_o sacramentary_n must_v now_o say_v that_o flesh_n here_o stand_v ââ¦ction_n for_o the_o sign_n and_o figure_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o so_o by_o that_o mean_n they_o will_v say_v both_o judas_n have_v the_o figure_n of_o christ_n flesh_n give_v âª_o and_o the_o other_o apostle_n have_v the_o flesh_n itself_o by_o faith_n and_o spirit_n it_o have_v bââ¦e_o ââ¦wed_v before_o that_o the_o bread_n whereof_o christ_n now_o ââ¦swere_n speak_v and_o which_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v his_o flesh_n be_v christ_n himself_o as_o he_o be_v true_a god_n and_o man_n therefore_o to_o say_v the_o bread_n which_o christ_n will_v geve_v be_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o flesh_n be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n himself_o through_o his_o own_o gift_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o own_o flesh_n for_o of_o any_o other_o bread_n christ_n speak_v not_o in_o this_o place_n then_o of_o such_o bread_n as_o himself_o be_v and_o of_o that_o he_o speak_v not_o in_o that_o only_a respect_n as_o he_o be_v god_n but_o as_o he_o be_v man_n and_o so_o either_o the_o manââ¦hood_n of_o christ_n be_v yâ_z give_fw-ge sign_n of_o his_o flesh_n
may_v be_v allege_v against_o i_o first_o by_o ââ¦utherans_n the_o lutheran_n who_o will_v prove_v thereby_o that_o christ_n in_o s._n thou_o speak_v figurative_o wheââ¦_n he_o name_v the_o eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o the_o drink_n of_o his_o blood_n for_o there_o will_n they_o say_v he_o take_v eat_v and_o drink_v for_o perfect_a beleve_v and_o remember_v christ_n death_n which_o be_v no_o sacramental_a eat_n to_o who_o i_o answer_v that_o s._n augustin_n by_o call_v this_o speech_n answer_n a_o figure_n mean_v not_o to_o deny_v that_o it_o appertain_v to_o the_o last_o supper_n but_o only_o that_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o speech_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o of_o drink_v his_o blood_n because_o it_o seem_v to_o command_v the_o visible_a and_o external_a eat_n of_o a_o man_n flesh_n which_o be_v a_o heynouse_a thing_n but_o in_o deed_n christ_n mean_v that_o they_o shall_v caââ¦e_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n swete_o and_o profitable_o in_o a_o sacrament_n in_o a_o mystery_n in_o a_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n who_o purchase_v our_o life_n which_o be_v do_v at_o christ_n last_o supper_n when_o take_v bread_n he_o say_v after_o blessing_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_fw-ge 22._o for_fw-mi you_o take_v &_o eat_v which_o body_n who_o so_o eat_v worthy_o he_o must_v needs_o communicate_v with_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n in_o so_o much_o as_o he_o eat_v that_o body_n which_o suffer_v so_o bitter_a a_o passion_n for_o he_o now_o by_o the_o fact_n of_o eat_v to_o communicate_v also_o with_o the_o spirit_n &_o godhead_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o figure_n whereof_o s._n augustin_n speak_v but_o otherwise_o it_o be_v out_o all_o question_n that_o s._n augustine_n mean_v not_o by_o the_o sweet_a remembrance_n of_o christ_n death_n to_o exclude_v the_o necessity_n of_o receive_v that_o sacrament_n the_o which_o if_o we_o caââ¦e_v not_o when_o we_o shall_v cate_z it_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n and_o the_o which_o be_v 11._o command_v to_o be_v make_v for_o christ_n remembrance_n or_o be_v any_o man_n able_a to_o make_v a_o more_o sweet_a remembrance_n of_o his_o own_o devotion_n than_o christ_n have_v iustitute_v for_o we_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n therefore_o s._n augustin_n ââ¦oth_v mean_a that_o while_o we_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n we_o shall_v communicate_v with_o christ_n passion_n by_o do_v yâ_z in_o soul_n which_o our_o body_n do_v farthermore_o s._n augustin_n expound_v these_o present_a word_n of_o christ_n last_o supper_n in_o diverse_a other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n in_o 20._o so_o much_o that_o he_o dispute_v against_o the_o pelagians_n express_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v say_v de_fw-fr sanctae_fw-la mensae_fw-la sacramento_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o holy_a table_n and_o upon_o the_o book_n of_o leviticus_fw-la he_o ask_v why_o the_o jew_n be_v forbid_v to_o drink_v blood_n since_o christ_n 25._o exhort_v all_o man_n that_o will_v have_v life_n to_o receive_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n in_o alimentum_fw-la to_o nourish_v they_o which_o thing_n be_v know_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o exhortation_n thereunto_o be_v make_v in_o s._n john_n this_o much_o be_v sufficient_a to_o answer_v the_o lutheran_n concern_v that_o they_o lean_a to_o s._n augustin_n authority_n in_o who_o he_o that_o list_v to_o see_v more_o may_v read_v the_o place_n note_v in_o the_o margeââ¦t_n secondarilie_o the_o zwinglians_n grant_v this_o place_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n last_o supper_n and_o build_v untrue_o thereupon_o ãâã_d the_o necessity_n of_o both_o kind_n make_v a_o argument_n that_o in_o his_o last_o supper_n we_o have_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n after_o consecration_n but_o only_o that_o by_o eat_v material_a bread_n the_o figure_n thereof_o we_o must_v remember_v it_o absent_a and_o swete_o repete_fw-la in_o our_o mind_n what_o pain_v christ_n suffer_v ââ¦or_v we_o and_o with_o how_o great_a love_n he_o redeem_v us._n and_o this_o their_o say_n they_o will_v father_n upon_o this_o present_a place_n of_o s._n augustine_n because_o he_o call_v christ_n speech_n figurative_a for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o present_a controversy_n it_o annswer_n be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o s._n augustine_n write_v rule_n or_o precept_n of_o christian_n doctrine_n take_v and_o define_v a_o figurative_a speech_n after_o a_o certain_a peculiar_a manner_n which_o he_o himself_o describe_v in_o this_o sort_n 10._o quicquid_fw-la in_o sermone_fw-la divino_fw-la nequè_fw-fr ad_fw-la morum_fw-la honestatem_fw-la neque_fw-la ad_fw-la fidei_fw-la veritatom_n propriè_fw-la referri_fw-la potest_fw-la figuratum_fw-la esse_fw-la cognoscas_fw-la whatsoever_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v not_o be_v proper_o refer_v neither_o to_o the_o honesty_n of_o manner_n nor_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n be_v thou_o sure_a it_o be_v figurative_a whereby_o we_o may_v perceive_v that_o he_o measure_v a_o figurative_a augustine_n speech_n by_o true_a faith_n and_o good_a manner_n to_o either_o of_o which_o all_o that_o can_v be_v proper_o attribute_v he_o doubt_v not_o to_o call_v figura_fw-la tive_a in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o now_o use_v that_o word_n for_o a_o thing_n that_o mean_v a_o far_a truth_n than_o the_o word_n natural_o sound_v the_o figure_n that_o s._n augustine_n find_v in_o christ_n word_n be_v because_o if_o we_o rest_v in_o their_o natural_a sense_n they_o can_v not_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o honesty_n of_o manner_n for_o it_o seem_v a_o dishonourable_a deed_n and_o against_o charity_n to_o eat_v a_o man_n flesh_n for_o it_o be_v both_o against_o that_o charity_n which_o a_o man_n owe_v to_o himself_o and_o therefore_o be_v call_v flagitium_fw-la ââ¦agitium_fw-la dishonour_n and_o also_o against_o yâ_z which_o we_o owe_v to_o our_o neighbour_n and_o therefore_o be_v name_v facinus_fw-la a_o uncharitable_a or_o hurtsull_n act_n facinus_fw-la for_o as_o s._n augustine_n himself_o show_v how_o he_o take_v a_o figurative_a speathe_n so_o do_v he_o tell_v how_o he_o take_v flagitium_fw-la and_o facinus_fw-la 10._o it_o be_v sure_o a_o wilful_a abuse_n of_o good_a learning_n if_o a_o man_n know_v how_o a_o master_n and_o teacher_n take_v his_o term_n will_v notwithstanding_o dispute_v with_o he_o use_v they_o in_o other_o seuse_n which_o thing_n since_o it_o be_v not_o landable_a we_o know_v what_o s._n augustine_n call_v figurative_a and_o what_o he_o call_v dishonour_n and_o uncharitable_a must_v so_o talk_v of_o those_o thing_n as_o he_o have_v do_v why_o then_o be_v it_o a_o figurative_a speech_n when_o christ_n ââ¦ad_v the_o jew_n ââ¦ate_v his_o flesh_n s._n augustine_n himself_o geve_v the_o cause_n say_v facinus_fw-la vel_fw-la flagitium_fw-la videtur_fw-la iubere_fw-la he_o seem_v to_o command_v a_o thing_n this_fw-mi honourable_a and_o hurtful_a dishonourable_a to_o yâ_z cater_n hurtful_a to_o he_o who_o flesh_n be_v eat_v for_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n much_o against_o the_o honesty_n of_o nature_n to_o feed_v upon_o our_o brother_n flesh_n and_o it_o can_v not_o be_v natural_o and_o proper_o do_v without_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o life_n who_o flesh_n we_o eat_v for_o these_o two_o cause_n or_o else_o for_o any_o one_o of_o they_o we_o ought_v to_o think_v this_o precept_n to_o be_v a_o figure_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o must_v be_v more_o profitable_o understand_v then_o yâ_z word_n do_v proper_o sound_v what_o sound_v they_o proper_o see_v good_a reader_n whether_o i_o deal_v sincere_o with_o thou_o or_o no._n it_o be_v a_o weighty_a matter_n to_o handle_v divine_a mystery_n and_o therefore_o i_o endeavour_n to_o use_v therein_o such_o wariness_n as_o become_v i_o i_o will_v bring_v none_o other_o man_n word_n but_o s._n augustine_n own_o to_o show_v what_o the_o precept_n of_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n at_o capharnaum_n do_v seem_v to_o sound_v proper_o s._n augustine_n speak_v in_o this_o wise_a ââ¦oan_n of_o the_o jew_n carnen_n sic_fw-la intellexerunt_fw-la quomodo_fw-la in_o cadavere_fw-la dilaniatur_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la the_o jew_n understode_v flesh_n after_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v tear_v in_o piece_n in_o a_o carcase_n or_o as_o it_o be_v sell_v in_o the_o shambles_n and_o not_o as_o it_o be_v quicken_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n s._n augustine_n write_v also_o of_o the_o very_a same_o matter_n durum_fw-la illis_fw-la 98._o visum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la ait_fw-la nisi_fw-la quis_fw-la manducaverit_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o seem_v a_o hard_a say_n to_o the_o jew_n except_o a_o man_n eat_v my_o flesh_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n everlasting_a they_o take_v it_o foolish_o they_o think_v of_o it_o carnal_o and_o suppose_a that_o our_o lord_n mind_v to_o cut_v of_o certain_a small_a piece_n of_o his_o body_n and_o to_o
geve_v it_o they_o this_o be_v a_o hard_a talk_n say_v they_o they_o be_v hard_a and_o not_o the_o talk_n for_o if_o they_o be_v not_o hard_o but_o gentle_a they_o will_v say_v to_o themselves_o he_o speak_v not_o this_o thing_n rash_o but_o because_o there_o lie_v privy_a some_o sacrament_n ââ¦eing_fw-mi gen_fw-la tle_n &_o not_o hard_o they_o will_v ââ¦arie_v with_o he_o and_o shall_v learn_v of_o he_o that_o thing_n which_o after_o their_o departure_n those_o learned_a who_o tarry_v for_o when_o yâ_z twelve_o have_v tarry_v with_o he_o the_o other_o be_v depart_v they_o as_o who_o be_v sorry_a of_o yâ_z other_o depart_v warn_v christ_n that_o they_o be_v offend_v with_o his_o word_n &_o so_o be_v depart_v but_o christ_n instruct_v they_o and_o say_v it_o be_v the_o spirit_n which_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n profit_v not_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n understand_v that_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v spiritual_o you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n which_o you_o see_v ne_o shall_v not_o drink_v that_o blood_n which_o they_o shall_v shed_v who_o will_v ãâã_d i_o i_o have_v commend_v to_o you_o a_o certain_a sacrament_n which_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v shall_v make_v you_o live_v and_o although_o that_o sacrament_n mustenede_v be_v visible_o celebrate_v yet_o it_o must_v be_v invisible_o understand_v thus_o much_o s._n augustine_n first_o i_o note_v in_o these_o word_n against_o the_o lutheran_n that_o s._n 1._o augustine_n understand_v the_o precept_n of_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n for_o there_o only_o a_o sacrament_n of_o his_o death_n be_v visible_o folemnize_v and_o invisible_o understand_v second_o i_o note_v against_o the_o zuinglaââ¦s_n that_o the_o figurative_a 2._o speech_n which_o s._n augustine_n acknowlege_v in_o christ_n word_n be_v to_o be_v measure_v and_o mean_v according_a to_o the_o natural_a and_o customable_a speak_v and_o understand_v of_o carnal_a man_n who_o yet_o be_v not_o full_o faithful_a for_o they_o think_v they_o shall_v have_v eat_v christ_n flesh_n tear_v into_o piece_n &_o to_o fââ¦l_v their_o belly_n there_o withal_o for_o in_o deed_n the_o eat_v of_o flesh_n natural_o imploi_v cut_v or_o tear_v before_o it_o come_v to_o our_o month_n and_o afterward_o chaw_v with_o the_o tooth_n and_o so_o the_o fill_n of_o the_o belly_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o such_o meaning_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v figurative_a for_o see_v it_o be_v against_o the_o honesty_n of_o manner_n to_o order_v man_n flesh_n after_o such_o a_o cruel_a fashion_n the_o jew_n shall_v have_v devise_v how_o to_o make_v a_o honest_a meaning_n of_o his_o word_n who_o 6._o they_o confess_v to_o be_v a_o great_a prophet_n or_o at_o the_o least_o they_o shall_v have_v ask_v of_o christ_n the_o true_a meaning_n of_o his_o own_o word_n for_o see_v christ_n have_v multiply_v sieve_n loaf_n miraculous_o to_o feed_v they_o and_o do_v so_o many_o other_o miracle_n and_o so_o much_o good_a in_o all_o the_o country_n that_o all_o man_n who_o be_v void_a of_o malice_n confess_v he_o 9_o to_o be_v of_o god_n reason_n geve_v they_o shall_v harken_v obedient_o to_o his_o word_n as_o the_o which_o they_o may_v perceive_v to_o be_v speak_v by_o no_o mean_a or_o common_a man_n and_o that_o therefore_o they_o shall_v not_o measure_v they_o by_o their_o own_o fantasy_n &_o experience_n now_o then_o to_o say_v that_o except_o you_o eat_v my_o flesh_n be_v a_o sigurative_a speech_n be_v no_o more_o to_o say_v but_o you_o must_v not_o take_v the_o eat_n of_o christ_n flesh_n so_o as_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n it_o come_v to_o your_o mind_n neither_o concern_v the_o usual_a manner_n nor_o concern_v the_o customable_a end_n of_o yâ_z eat_n for_o that_o be_v unhonest_a tarry_v therefore_o until_o you_o find_v a_o better_a sense_n which_o sense_n be_v find_v when_o it_o be_v know_v that_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n geve_v the_o substance_n of_o his_o flesh_n whole_a 2._o sound_z and_o quick_a with_o the_o godhead_n corporal_o dwell_v in_o it_o to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v live_v spiritual_o for_o ever_o by_o worthy_a receive_n it_o into_o our_o body_n and_o soul_n three_o i_o note_v much_o the_o kind_n of_o speak_v which_o s._n augustine_n use_v for_o he_o call_v that_o thing_n a_o sacrament_n upon_o yâ_z word_n of_o the_o psalm_n now_o allege_v which_o in_o his_o book_n of_o christian_a 98._o doctrine_n he_o call_v a_o figure_n show_v himself_o to_o take_v the_o name_n of_o a_o figure_n for_o all_o that_o when_o a_o far_o and_o high_a thing_n be_v to_o be_v 10._o understand_v then_o be_v outward_o express_v in_o which_o case_n the_o thing_n express_v be_v a_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n a_o figure_n or_o a_o holy_a sign_n of_o that_o high_a truth_n which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v but_o he_o mean_v not_o by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o figure_n either_o to_o exclude_v the_o truth_n of_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n or_o the_o truth_n of_o drink_v his_o blood_n but_o only_o the_o gross_a manner_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v it_o to_o a_o carnal_a end_n which_o the_o jew_n think_v upon_o for_o as_o the_o kill_n and_o eat_v of_o the_o paschall_n lamb_n be_v not_o only_o natural_a but_o also_o give_v yâ_z faithful_a to_o understand_v that_o christ_n ââ¦ould_v be_v both_o kill_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o eat_v in_o a_o sacrament_n and_o as_o the_o figure_n which_o be_v in_o that_o lamb_n do_v not_o diminish_v the_o real_a kill_n and_o eat_v thereof_o but_o only_o do_v refer_v it_o to_o a_o high_a truth_n so_o the_o figure_n which_o be_v in_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n do_v not_o diminish_v the_o true_a eat_n thereof_o but_o only_o declare_v that_o eat_v to_o be_v a_o figure_n because_o it_o be_v refer_v again_o to_o a_o high_a truth_n both_o in_o christ_n who_o flesh_n that_o once_o die_v be_v now_o eat_v and_o in_o we_o who_o eat_v it_o not_o so_o much_o for_o to_o eat_v it_o corporal_o as_o to_o feed_v spiritual_o of_o god_n himself_o who_o make_v that_o flesh_n profitable_a and_o that_o s._n augustine_n think_v so_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o his_o own_o word_n upon_o s._n john_n you_o know_v not_o what_o be_v that_o manner_n of_o eat_v this_o flesh_n but_o except_o you_o eat_v it_o etc._n etc._n lo_o the_o manner_n of_o eat_v be_v secret_a but_o the_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v eat_v be_v natural_a flesh_n 27_o again_o carnem_fw-la sic_fw-la intellexerunt_fw-la quomodo_fw-la in_o cadavere_fw-la dilaniatur_fw-la aut_fw-la in_o macello_fw-la venditur_fw-la non_fw-la quomodo_fw-la spiritu_fw-la vegetatur_fw-la they_z so_o understode_v flesh_n as_o it_o be_v tear_v in_o a_o carcase_n or_o sell_v in_o the_o shambles_n and_o not_o as_o it_o be_v quicken_v with_o the_o spirit_n or_o godhead_n here_o it_o be_v report_v wherein_o the_o jew_n do_v err_v they_o take_v the_o word_n flesh_n amiss_o not_o concern_v the_o substance_n of_o it_o which_o must_v be_v real_o eat_v but_o concern_v the_o manner_n of_o eat_v modus_fw-la it_o be_v not_o modus_fw-la latin_n for_o the_o manner_n be_v not_o quomodo_fw-la as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o by_o what_o manner_n the_o jew_n understode_v yâ_z name_n of_o flesh_n quomodo_fw-la dilaniatur_fw-la non_fw-la quomodo_fw-la vegetatur_fw-la after_o such_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v tear_v into_o pecces_fw-la and_o not_o after_o such_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v quicken_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o these_o word_n import_v that_o the_o jew_n err_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n do_v not_o he_o that_o find_v fault_n only_o with_o the_o manner_n of_o eat_a flesh_n sufficient_o allow_v the_o eat_n of_o the_o flesh_n itself_o if_o it_o be_v do_v after_o a_o good_a manner_n yea_o far_o do_v not_o he_o that_o show_v the_o manner_n how_o it_o may_v be_v well_o eat_v approve_v that_o kind_n of_o eat_v it_o as_o we_o must_v not_o ââ¦ate_v christ_n flesh_n after_o such_o a_o gross_a manner_n as_o be_v use_v in_o eat_v such_o flesh_n which_o be_v common_o cut_v into_o piece_n right_o so_o we_o must_v eat_v christ_n flesh_n after_o such_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v quicken_v with_o the_o godhead_n so_o do_v s._n angustines_n word_n import_v i_o beseech_v thou_o good_a reader_n see_v the_o odds_n between_o the_o argument_n of_o a_o catholic_a and_o of_o a_o sacramentarie_a he_o reason_v thus_o sacramentarie_a we_o must_v not_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n carnal_o and_o butchar_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o eat_v real_o yâ_z substance_n thereof_o we_o reason_v thus_o we_o must_v eat_v christ_n flesh_n as_o it_o be_v quicken_v with_o the_o godhead_n fail_v therefore_o we_o must_v eat_v real_o the_o substance_n thereof_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o sacramentarie_n be_v naught_o
the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o sacrament_n be_v make_v what_o be_v that_o sacrament_n we_o say_v it_o be_v the_o make_v present_a in_o a_o miraculouse_a sort_n the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n our_o adversary_n say_v it_o be_v the_o appoint_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n through_o the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n for_o our_o belefe_v i_o bring_v s._n augustine_n authority_n who_o say_v except_o you_o eat_v my_o flesh_n be_v word_n figurative_a and_o out_o of_o it_o thus_o i_o reason_n the_o ââ¦ating_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o the_o ãâã_d of_o his_o blood_n be_v real_a ãâã_d which_o must_v be_v perform_v in_o christ_n supper_n &_o yet_o be_v call_v ãâã_d good_a ãâã_d sigurative_a ãâã_d must_v needs_o ãâã_d the_o sigure_n of_o somewhat_o &_o the_o ãâã_d dede_n &_o word_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o supper_n os_fw-la christ_n ãâã_d needs_o betoken_v somewhat_o as_o they_o be_v there_o ãâã_d but_o the_o eat_n of_o flesh_n in_o christ_n supper_n can_v betoken_v nothing_o at_o all_o ãâã_d his_o flesh_n be_v there_o eat_v the_o eat_v whereof_o may_v be_v the_o ãâã_d of_o this_o betoken_v therefore_o these_o word_n import_v of_o ãâã_d that_o in_o christ_n supper_n the_o ãâã_d of_o christ_n be_v real_o eat_v and_o his_o blood_n be_v real_o drunken_a it_o be_v not_o say_v of_o christ_n except_o you_o eat_v bread_n &_o drink_n wine_n of_o ãâã_d those_o element_n he_o in_o the_o promise_n of_o his_o supper_n make_v at_o capharââ¦_n speakethnot_v one_o syllable_n for_o which_o cause_n we_o must_v not_o ask_v at_o this_o time_n what_o they_o figure_n &_o signisy_n in_o christ_n supper_n because_o now_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o they_o except_o any_o man_n be_v so_o frontike_a as_o to_o say_v that_o yâ_z flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v here_o make_v yâ_z figure_n of_o baker_n bread_n &_o his_o blood_n yâ_z figure_n of_o wine_n whereupon_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o yâ_z ãâã_d &_o blood_n as_o be_v ãâã_d of_o these_o dead_a ãâã_d be_v worse_o and_o base_a than_o the_o element_n then selue_o for_o every_o figure_n be_v some_o way_n or_o other_o behind_o the_o truth_n which_o it_o figure_v if_o then_o we_o must_v leave_v of_o the_o consyderation_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n if_o likewise_o no_o respect_n must_v now_o be_v have_v of_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o speak_v os_fw-la what_o other_o thing_n can_v these_o ãâã_d rative_a word_n except_o you_o eat_v my_o flesh_n signify_v in_o christ_n supper_n but_o this_o except_o you_o eat_v my_o flesh_n in_o that_o mystical_a and_o wonderful_a manner_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v it_o in_o and_o to_o that_o ãâã_d end_n for_o the_o which_o i_o be_v true_a god_n will_v geve_v it_o you_o that_o be_v to_o say_v except_o you_o do_v both_o take_v it_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o spiritual_o remember_v my_o death_n ãâã_d i_o thanks_n for_o it_o and_o conform_v yourselves_o to_o it_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v ãâã_d in_o you_o by_o which_o interpretation_n christ_n ãâã_d be_v figurative_a in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o mean_v neither_o that_o manner_n of_o ââ¦ating_a pââ¦ces_n of_o flesh_n which_o the_o jew_n understode_v noââ¦_n that_o end_n of_o eat_v it_o which_o they_o think_v upon_o mynd_v altoge_n 44._o there_o as_o s._n cyrillus_n and_o s._n chrysostom_n note_n the_o feed_v of_o their_o belly_n but_o if_o christ_n flesh_n be_v not_o present_a at_o all_o whereof_o be_v it_o a_o figure_n when_o it_o be_v eat_v can_v that_o which_o be_v not_o signify_v or_o figure_v any_o thing_n can_v the_o flesh_n which_o be_v only_o figure_v at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o eat_a bread_n as_o the_o sacramentary_n teach_v be_v make_v a_o sign_n and_o figure_n by_o eat_v it_o if_o the_o eat_n of_o christ_n flesh_n be_v not_o the_o figure_n the_o word_n except_o you_o eat_v my_o flesh_n be_v not_o figurative_a for_o if_o eat_v ââ¦e_o thorough_o take_v for_o beleve_v and_o for_o no_o eat_n at_o all_o they_o these_o word_n do_v not_o apperteine_v to_o the_o sacramental_a eat_n of_o christ_n supper_n but_o see_v the_o sacramentary_n teach_v they_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o supper_n as_o in_o truth_n they_o do_v the_o eat_a must_v so_o be_v figurative_a one_o way_n that_o yet_o it_o be_v true_a another_o way_n for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o true_a eat_n there_o lack_v a_o ground_n which_o may_v be_v the_o figure_n of_o another_o eat_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o spiritual_a communicate_v with_o christ_n passion_n if_o some_o real_a eat_n must_v be_v have_v to_o warn_v we_o of_o that_o spiritual_a eat_n sure_o that_o real_a eat_n can_v not_o in_o s._n john_n be_v mean_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n since_o christ_n never_o name_v they_o therefore_o it_o be_v employ_v that_o christ_n mean_v except_o you_o eat_v my_o flesh_n so_o as_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n both_o of_o my_o death_n and_o may_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o your_o spiritual_a life_n you_o shall_v not_o live_v everlasting_o thus_o doubtelesse_a do_v christ_n mean_a thus_o do_v s._n augustine_n expound_v his_o word_n the_o sacramentary_n doc_fw-fr err_v in_o make_v christ_n word_n to_o be_v figuratiââ¦_n only_o passive_o whereas_o they_o be_v also_o figurative_a worââ¦es_n active_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o sacramentary_n so_o take_v this_o matter_n as_o if_o it_o be_v only_o say_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v figure_v &_o signiââ¦ed_v in_o his_o supper_n as_o to_o be_v spiriââ¦ually_o feed_v on_o but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o say_v only_o but_o also_o the_o actual_a eat_n of_o christ_n flesh_n be_v teach_v to_o be_v a_o figure_n itself_o of_o another_o spiritual_a eat_n therefore_o we_o eat_v real_o flesh_n one_o way_n to_o signify_v another_o way_n the_o ââ¦ating_n and_o 11._o beleve_v in_o flesh_n spiritual_o and_o that_o be_v prove_v out_o s._n ambrose_n most_o maniââ¦estly_o where_o he_o say_v in_o edendo_fw-la &_o potando_fw-la ãâã_d &_o sanguinem_fw-la for_o there_o be_v the_o point_n albeit_o the_o sacramentary_n go_v about_o to_o corrupt_v his_o word_n by_o evil_a distinct_n of_o they_o quae_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la oblata_fw-la sunt_fw-la significamus_fw-la in_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o ãâã_d and_o blood_n we_o signify_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v offer_v ââ¦or_a us._n behold_v the_o ââ¦ating_a ãâã_d do_v signiââ¦ie_a and_o make_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o self_n same_o flesh_n as_o it_o be_v offer_v for_o us._n and_o so_o do_v both_o christ_n &_o s._n augustine_n ââ¦ane_v at_o this_o tyme._n our_o lord_n command_v we_o to_o eatââ¦_n his_o flesh_n do_v command_v we_o to_o communicate_v with_o his_o passion_n say_v christ._n s._n augustine_n and_o profitable_o to_o remember_v his_o death_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n he_o commaââ¦deth_v both_o to_o eat_v the_o body_n which_o die_v &_o to_o eat_v it_o worthy_o to_o eat_v it_o in_o hart_n as_o well_o as_o in_o mouth_n to_o eat_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o love_n towards_o we_o as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o eat_v it_o as_o the_o godhead_n do_v quicken_v it_o and_o as_o it_o figure_v the_o enter_v and_o tarry_n in_o his_o mystical_a body_n the_o church_n this_o eat_n of_o christ_n ââ¦eshe_n be_v sweet_a be_v profitable_a be_v not_o hard_o not_o carnal_a not_o without_o a_o figure_n or_o mystery_n for_o to_o eat_v without_o any_o mystical_a meaning_n be_v only_o to_o fill_v the_o belly_n whereof_o christ_n speak_v not_o he_o command_v a_o figurative_a eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n ãâã_d the_o which_o figurative_a ââ¦ating_n shall_v not_o take_v away_o the_o real_a eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n for_o that_o eat_v which_o be_v not_o real_a can_v not_o be_v active_o figurative_a since_o every_o figure_n be_v make_v upon_o a_o true_a ground_n of_o one_o thing_n do_v real_o &_o of_o another_o thing_n mean_v mystical_o but_o the_o figuratiââ¦e_a eat_n import_v a_o far_a thing_n then_o to_o rest_v in_o the_o eat_n itself_o it_o be_v therefore_o insensible_o say_v of_o the_o sacramentary_n that_o those_o word_n which_o name_v a_o certain_a actual_a and_o real_a deed_n as_o the_o eat_n of_o man_n flesh_n be_v be_v ââ¦igurative_a because_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o real_o ââ¦ten_v but_o they_o be_v in_o deed_n figurative_a because_o the_o flesh_n of_o that_o ãâã_d be_v ãâã_d also_o and_o understand_v to_o be_v more_o then_o ââ¦ally_o eat_v for_o it_o ãâã_d ãâã_d spiritââ¦lly_o eat_v also_o the_o sacrameââ¦taries_n comââ¦ted_v a_o otââ¦er_n foul_a error_n in_o these_o ãâã_d word_n ãâã_d while_n they_o will_v draw_v this_o place_n of_o s._n john_n to_o their_o purpose_n they_o be_v constrain_v to_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n iââ¦_n this_o ãâã_d ãâã_d you_o eat_v tââ¦e_a ãâã_d of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o be_v to_o say_v
very_o meat_n for_o he_o say_v not_o only_o my_o truly_n flesh_n be_v true_a meat_n but_o it_o be_v true_o meat_n it_o have_v not_o only_o yâ_z true_a nature_n of_o meat_n but_o also_o yâ_z true_a manner_n of_o it_o for_o as_o verus_fw-la cibus_fw-la be_v true_a meat_n so_o be_v verè_fw-la cibus_fw-la true_o meat_n as_o true_a meat_n be_v say_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o essential_a propriety_n and_o effect_n of_o meat_n which_o be_v to_o nourish_v so_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n true_o meat_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o because_o it_o be_v receive_v in_o at_o the_o mouth_n &_o go_v into_o the_o body_n after_o such_o sort_n as_o other_o meat_n doc_fw-fr although_o it_o nourish_v spiritual_o i_o have_v say_v often_o time_n that_o christ_n in_o this_o chapter_n speak_v both_o of_o spiritual_a eat_n alone_o and_o besides_o that_o of_o sacramental_a eat_n together_o with_o spiritual_a he_o speak_v of_o spiritual_a alone_o about_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o chapter_n ââ¦raight_o after_o those_o word_n work_v ihon._n the_o everlasting_a meat_n which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v geve_v you_o which_o word_n be_v the_o general_a theme_n to_o the_o whole_a sermon_n follow_v but_o of_o sacramental_a eat_n as_o be_v the_o sââ¦cond_a part_n of_o his_o sermon_n christ_n speak_v special_o and_o express_o from_o these_o word_n forward_o and_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n while_o christ_n be_v yet_o about_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o sermon_n which_o belong_v to_o spiritual_a eat_n alone_o he_o say_v patermeus_fw-la daââ¦_n vobis_fw-la panem_fw-la de_fw-la coelo_fw-la verum_fw-la my_o father_n geve_v you_o the_o true_a panis_fw-la bread_n from_o heaven_n qui_fw-fr credit_n in_o i_o non_fw-la sitiet_fw-la unquam_fw-la he_o that_o beleve_v in_o i_o shall_v not_o thirââ¦t_v at_o any_o tyme._n as_o christ_n be_v only_o beleve_v on_o and_o only_o receive_v by_o faith_n so_o he_o be_v panis_fw-la verus_fw-la the_o true_a bread_n or_o meat_n but_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o sermon_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o sacramental_a eat_v as_o well_o as_o of_o spiritual_a there_o he_o say_v for_o pater_fw-la meus_fw-la that_fw-mi ego_fw-la dabo_fw-la for_o verus_fw-la verè_fw-la in_o gift_n stead_n of_o my_o father_n he_o say_v i_o in_o stead_n of_o do_v geve_v he_o say_v i_o will_v geve_v in_o stead_n of_o himself_o to_o be_v true_a food_n he_o say_v his_o flesh_n be_v true_o food_n there_o be_v in_o the_o second_o part_n none_o other_o substance_n than_o be_v in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v understand_v that_o christ_n geve_v in_o his_o sacrament_n the_o same_o real_a flesh_n which_o his_o father_n give_v he_o when_o he_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n by_o take_v flesh_n but_o there_o be_v a_o other_o time_n of_o christ_n gift_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o a_o other_o sort_n or_o manner_n of_o his_o geve_v for_o that_o which_o god_n the_o father_n give_v unto_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a god_n the_o son_n geve_v to_o their_o body_n also_o and_o by_o that_o mean_v he_o be_v not_o only_o true_a meat_n but_o also_o true_o meat_n and_o that_o without_o all_o dark_a speech_n or_o parable_n s._n hilary_n well_o understand_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o same_o word_n verè_fw-la true_o or_o very_o or_o in_o deed_n press_v the_o old_a arrian_n and_o new_a sacramentary_n therewith_o in_o this_o manner_n de_fw-fr naturali_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la christi_fw-la veritate_fw-la quae_fw-la dicimus_fw-la nisi_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la discimus_fw-la trinitat_fw-la stultè_fw-la atque_fw-la impiè_fw-la dicimus_fw-la ipse_fw-la enim_fw-la ait_fw-la caro_fw-la mea_fw-la veer_fw-la est_fw-la esca_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la thus_o they_o be_v in_o english_a that_o we_o say_v concern_v the_o natural_a truth_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o except_o we_o learue_v it_o of_o he_o we_o say_v it_o foolish_o and_o ungodly_a for_o himself_o say_v my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v in_o deed_n he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n tarry_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o there_o be_v no_o place_n of_o doubt_v leave_v concern_v the_o truth_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n for_o now_o both_o by_o the_o profession_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o by_o our_o own_o faith_n it_o be_v true_o flesh_n and_o true_o blood_n and_o these_o thing_n take_v and_o swallow_v be_v the_o cause_n that_o we_o tarry_v in_o christ_n and_o christ_n in_o us._n be_v not_o this_o thing_n the_o truth_n it_o may_v well_o chance_v not_o to_o be_v true_a to_o they_o who_o deny_v jesus_n christ_n not_o to_o be_v true_a god_n s._n hilary_n dispute_v in_o those_o word_n against_o the_o arrian_n who_o will_v christ_n to_o be_v one_o with_o his_o father_n in_o will_n only_o do_v prove_v that_o we_o also_o be_v one_o with_o christ_n natural_o by_o some_o ââ¦anes_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o natural_a partake_n of_o christ_n flesh_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o to_o prove_v that_o thing_n albeit_o he_o may_v have_v bring_v many_o place_n out_o of_o the_o gospel_n or_o out_o of_o s._n paul_n yet_o ãâã_d to_o bring_v this_o place_n out_o of_o s._n john_n as_o the_o which_o he_o think_v no_o less_o plain_a than_o any_o other_o be_v and_o twice_o he_o repete_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o meat_n dââ¦ce_n as_o be_v speak_v of_o god_n a_o other_o time_n as_o be_v also_o beleve_v of_o us._n and_o far_o he_o affirm_v upon_o this_o place_n that_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v accepta_fw-la and_o swallow_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o christ_n in_o us._n the_o take_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n do_v not_o prove_v s._n hilary_n purpose_n for_o he_o must_v show_v that_o we_o take_v christ_n in_o body_n and_o nature_n even_o as_o he_o defend_v christ_n to_o be_v one_o nature_n and_o substance_n with_o his_o father_n the_o be_v of_o christ_n flesh_n in_o our_o body_n and_o the_o real_a join_n of_o the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o be_v that_o which_o s._n hilary_n force_v upon_o and_o therefore_o he_o say_v afterward_o that_o christ_n naturaliter_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la permanet_fw-la tarry_v natural_o in_o us._n by_o that_o word_n natural_o s._n hilary_n expound_v how_o he_o take_v true_o the_o word_n verè_fw-la true_o for_o he_o take_v it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v write_v my_o flesh_n be_v to_o be_v natural_o receive_v of_o my_o disciple_n as_o meat_n the_o which_o thing_n he_o have_v twice_o express_v before_o say_v nos_fw-la verè_fw-la verbum_fw-la trinitat_fw-la carnem_fw-la cibo_fw-la dominico_n sumimus_fw-la we_o take_v yâ_z word_n make_v flesh_n true_o in_o our_o lord_n meat_n and_o again_o verè_fw-la sub_fw-la mysterio_fw-la ââ¦arnem_fw-la corporis_fw-la svi_fw-la sumimus_fw-la we_o take_v the_o flesh_n of_o his_o body_n true_o under_o a_o mystery_n lo_o by_o thigh_n mean_v the_o natural_a verity_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o according_a as_o we_o learn_v of_o he_o say_v my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n all_o man_n know_v what_o we_o receive_v into_o our_o mouth_n and_o body_n in_o christ_n supper_n that_o very_a thing_n be_v affirm_v of_o christ_n to_o be_v his_o flesh_n and_o by_o that_o receive_n of_o we_o his_o flesh_n be_v true_o meat_n s._n gregory_n of_o nyssa_n brother_n to_o s._n basile_n the_o great_a warn_v moysit_v we_o puro_fw-la defaecatoque_fw-la animo_fw-la coelestem_fw-la cibum_fw-la sumere_fw-la to_o take_v the_o heavenly_a meat_n âª_o with_o a_o pure_a âª_o and_o clean_a mind_n the_o which_o meat_n say_v he_o not_o sow_v bring_v forth_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o art_n of_o till_v the_o ground_n but_o it_o be_v bread_n provide_v for_o we_o without_o seed_n without_o sow_v without_o any_o other_o work_n of_o man_n it_o flow_v from_o above_o be_v find_v in_o the_o earth_n for_o the_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o true_a meat_n which_o be_v obscure_o mean_v by_o this_o history_n of_o manna_n be_v nor_o a_o thing_n without_o a_o body_n for_o by_o what_o mean_n can_v a_o thing_n without_o a_o body_n be_v make_v meat_n unto_o the_o body_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o without_o a_o body_n be_v by_o all_o mean_v a_o body_n this_o bless_a man_n allude_v evident_o to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o s._n john_n where_o he_o say_v my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n for_z the_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o true_a meat_n be_v none_o other_o thing_n then_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ._n this_o kind_n of_o thing_n be_v not_o a_o spiritual_a thing_n that_o lack_v a_o body_n but_o it_o be_v a_o true_a body_n how_o do_v s._n gregory_n prove_v it_o to_o be_v a_o true_a body_n because_o it_o be_v it_o make_v
himself_o to_o be_v almyghty_a god_n he_o say_v also_o that_o it_o be_v profitable_a because_o he_o that_o do_v eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n shall_v be_v raise_v again_o to_o life_n everlasting_a if_o they_o have_v beleve_v he_o in_o these_o 26._o point_n they_o may_v have_v ask_v yea_o without_o ask_v they_o have_v know_v at_o or_o not_o long_o after_o his_o last_o supper_n the_o manner_n how_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v convenient_o do_v as_o those_o apostle_n do_v know_v who_o continue_v in_o their_o belefe_v and_o the_o way_n of_o knowledge_n be_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n where_o take_v bread_n with_o speak_v of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n he_o change_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n and_o will_v his_o disciple_n to_o take_v and_o eat_v his_o body_n this_o much_o those_o can_v not_o free_a because_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v but_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n hyndred_n their_o belefe_v by_o word_n more_o hard_a than_o need_v that_o be_v more_o cruel_o say_v the_o it_o need_v oportebat_fw-la etc._n etc._n they_o ought_v say_v s._n cyril_n first_o of_o all_o to_o cast_v the_o root_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o mind_n and_o then_o to_o ask_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v ask_v but_o the_o joan._n jew_n ask_v importune_o before_o they_o beleve_v for_o this_o cause_n our_o lord_n show_v they_o not_o how_o it_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o pass_v &_o aââ¦terward_o s._n cyrill_n declare_v how_o christ_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n show_v yâ_z manner_n also_o to_o they_o who_o do_v believe_v although_o they_o ask_v not_o for_o it_o ¶_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o those_o word_n it_o be_v the_o spirit_n chapter_n that_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o i_o may_v be_v the_o short_a in_o this_o point_n because_o none_o of_o those_o who_o be_v mean_o conversant_a in_o the_o book_n of_o ancient_a writer_n though_o otherwise_o they_o believe_v not_o well_o have_v apply_v these_o word_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n for_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o christ_n flesh_n which_o be_v give_v for_o the_o 27._o life_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v profit_v nothing_o therefore_o s._n basil_n s._n chrysostom_n and_o s._n augustin_n do_v expound_v the_o name_n of_o flesh_n after_o one_o sort_n for_o the_o fleshly_a and_o carnal_a understanding_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o think_v they_o shall_v have_v eat_v christ_n as_o man_n eat_v mutton_n and_o beef_n whereas_o christ_n mean_v to_o geve_v his_o flesh_n in_o a_o secret_a manner_n as_o the_o faithful_a know_v which_o notwithstanding_o the_o luciferian_n spirit_n of_o caluin_n reprove_v this_o first_o understanding_n in_o his_o comment_n caluin_n upon_o this_o place_n but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o say_v that_o he_o difsent_v from_o those_o three_o notable_a pillar_n of_o god_n church_n before_o name_v the_o second_o understanding_n be_v on_o christ_n behalf_n who_o flesh_n shall_v not_o profit_v any_o thing_n if_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o godhead_n do_v not_o make_v it_o able_a to_o geve_v we_o everlasting_a life_n the_o which_o sense_n be_v chief_o follow_v by_o s._n augustin_n also_o and_o by_o s._n cyrillus_n 24_o now_o see_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v so_o to_o we_o under_o the_o foorm_n of_o bread_n that_o the_o godhead_n be_v present_a with_o it_o we_o be_v sure_a to_o have_v much_o profit_n by_o it_o what_o need_n more_o word_n if_o this_o say_n appertem_fw-la not_o to_o the_o last_o supper_n it_o make_v nothing_o against_o our_o belefe_v if_o it_o do_v appertein_a to_o it_o the_o word_n be_v prophetical_a because_o they_o speak_v before_o hand_n of_o a_o thing_n which_o most_o certain_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o last_o supper_n and_o then_o the_o fulfil_n of_o they_o will_v make_v they_o plain_a for_o as_o procopius_n say_v a_o prophecy_n at_o the_o first_o sight_n be_v not_o clear_o but_o when_o it_o be_v come_v genesim_fw-la to_o the_o event_n which_o be_v forspeak_v and_o be_v confer_v with_o the_o thing_n itself_o then_o draw_v it_o to_o a_o perfect_a clearness_n if_o now_o the_o say_a word_n be_v fulsil_v at_o the_o supper_n and_o take_v a_o clear_a understanding_n thereof_o spiritual_o what_o meaning_n can_v they_o have_v but_o that_o when_o christ_n give_v his_o body_n he_o give_v it_o after_o a_o spiritual_a sort_n &_o not_o after_o a_o fleshe_o manner_n he_o give_v not_o a_o shoulder_n to_o one_o apostle_n and_o a_o leg_n to_o a_o other_o a_o breast_n to_o the_o three_o and_o a_o rib_n to_o the_o four_o but_o the_o whole_a body_n to_o every_o ãâã_d not_o visible_a in_o the_o form_n of_o flesh_n but_o invisible_a in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n so_o make_v plain_a why_o he_o have_v so_o often_o call_v himself_o bread_n and_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n which_o he_o will_v geve_v be_v his_o flesh_n he_o give_v not_o his_o body_n without_o his_o soul_n and_o godhead_n neither_o his_o blood_n without_o his_o bone_n and_o flesh_n but_o the_o spirit_n quicken_v all_o thing_n each_o kind_n have_v whole_a christ._n he_o lose_v not_o his_o visible_a body_n by_o geve_v of_o it_o but_o by_o his_o word_n which_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n turn_v bread_n and_o wine_n into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n show_v yâ_z as_o he_o be_v at_o the_o table_n in_o his_o whole_a body_n notwithstanding_o they_o do_v eat_v the_o same_o body_n so_o he_o may_v be_v in_o heaven_n although_o the_o sub_fw-la stance_n of_o his_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n be_v give_v in_o his_o sacrament_n in_o earth_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v more_o if_o the_o understanding_n of_o these_o word_n depend_v upon_o the_o last_o supper_n they_o must_v not_o geve_v we_o a_o rule_n how_o to_o understand_v the_o last_o supper_n but_o they_o must_v take_v their_o understanding_n of_o it_o who_o dare_v say_v that_o bread_n be_v crucify_v for_o we_o because_o jeremie_n say_v mittamus_fw-la lignum_fw-la in_o panem_fw-la eius_fw-la let_v we_o put_v 11._o wood_n into_o his_o bread_n do_v we_o not_o rather_o say_v that_o because_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o true_a flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v crucify_v therefore_o in_o jeremie_n bread_n be_v take_v for_o flesh_n who_o dare_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v horn_n in_o his_o hand_n because_o habacuk_n say_v cornua_fw-la in_o manibus_fw-la eius_fw-la do_v 3_o we_o not_o rather_o say_v that_o by_o horn_n he_o mean_v the_o corner_n of_o the_o cross_n because_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o christ_n have_v upon_o the_o cross_n no_o material_a horn_n in_o his_o hand_n if_o then_o these_o word_n the_o spirit_n quicken_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o supper_n and_o there_o we_o find_v bread_n &_o wine_n take_v and_o after_o blessing_n body_n and_o blood_n give_v we_o may_v be_v well_o assure_v that_o one_o truth_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o other_o spirit_n do_v not_o take_v away_o flesh_n but_o spirit_n must_v be_v take_v for_o the_o godhead_n which_o make_v the_o flesh_n both_o to_o be_v present_a and_o profitable_a to_o all_o such_o as_o receive_v it_o worthy_o ¶_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v spirit_n and_o life_n show_v that_o chapter_n his_o real_a flesh_n be_v make_v present_a in_o his_o last_o supper_n above_o all_o course_n of_o nature_n and_o reason_n verba_fw-la quae_fw-la ego_fw-la locutus_fw-la sum_fw-la vobis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la &_o vita_fw-la sunt_fw-la the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v or_o as_o the_o greke_n text_n read_v which_o i_o do_v speak_v to_o you_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n the_o capharnait_v hear_v christ_n say_v he_o will_v geve_v his_o flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v partly_o think_v it_o not_o possible_a for_o he_o to_o geve_v partly_o not_o seemly_a for_o themselves_o to_o take_v they_o imagine_v a_o division_n of_o yâ_z flesh_n capharnait_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v and_o consequent_o the_o person_n who_o flesh_n be_v cut_v in_o such_o piece_n must_v die_v but_o how_o can_v a_o dead_a man_n geve_v his_o own_o flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v again_o though_o he_o can_v do_v it_o what_o a_o cruel_a thing_n be_v it_o for_o they_o to_o eat_v man_n flesh_n christ_n know_v this_o their_o gross_a concept_n say_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n where_o he_o be_v before_o thereby_o declare_v first_o his_o almighty_a power_n and_o godhead_n next_o that_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o flesh_n do_v not_o import_v the_o lack_n of_o life_n either_o in_o yâ_z gever_n or_o in_o the_o thing_n give_fw-ge for_o they_o in_o deed_n the_o gift_n shall_v be_v little_a worth_n because_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n &_o life_n which_o quicken_v dead_a flesh_n profit_v nothing_o to_o everlasting_a life_n my_o word_n say_v christ_n be_v spirit_n and_o life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o
be_v godhead_n word_n of_o he_o that_o be_v by_o nature_n everlasting_a life_n who_o mean_v to_o geve_v his_o flesh_n alive_a and_o that_o not_o only_o so_o alive_a as_o our_o flesh_n live_v while_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o it_o but_o so_o live_v as_o that_o flesh_n live_v which_o be_v ãâã_d and_o join_v in_o one_o person_n to_o the_o godheââ¦d_n think_v no_o more_o you_o gross_a capharnait_n of_o dead_a flesh_n give_fw-ge by_o piece_n meal_n which_o be_v not_o avayable_a to_o brââ¦g_v you_o to_o heaven_n but_o think_v of_o such_o a_o flesh_n as_o god_n have_v assumpt_v to_o geve_v life_n by_o it_o to_o the_o world_n of_o such_o a_o flesh_n as_o will_v ascend_v by_o his_o own_o virtue_n into_o heaven_n of_o such_o a_o flesh_n as_o be_v conceive_v not_o by_o the_o seed_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v power_n to_o become_v spiritual_a without_o loss_n of_o his_o true_a nature_n and_o substance_n my_o word_n be_v spirit_n and_o life_n spiritus_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la god_n be_v a_o spirit_n in_o ipso_fw-la vita_fw-la erat_fw-la life_n be_v in_o 1._o the_o word_n &_o verbum_fw-la caro_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la and_z yâ_z word_n be_v make_v flesh_n of_o that_o flesh_n christ_n word_n must_v be_v understand_v that_o be_v the_o flesh_n which_o he_o will_v geve_v &_o which_o we_o must_v eat_v that_o flesh_n live_v with_o god_n and_o in_o god_n and_o geve_v they_o life_n who_o receive_v it_o worthy_o this_o doubtless_o be_v the_o literal_a meaning_n of_o christ_n word_n and_o therefore_o s._n cyrillus_n doubt_v not_o to_o write_v spiritum_fw-la hic_fw-la etc._n etc._n 24._o christ_n have_v call_v here_o the_o very_a flesh_n ââ¦pirit_n not_o because_o it_o have_v lose_v the_o nature_n of_o flesh_n and_o be_v change_v into_o the_o spirit_n but_o because_o the_o flesh_n be_v very_o nigh_o join_v with_o the_o spirit_n or_o godhead_n have_v receive_v the_o whole_a power_n of_o quikn_v or_o of_o make_v thing_n to_o live_v the_o word_n then_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o be_v spirit_n that_o be_v to_o spiritus_fw-la say_v spiritual_a et_fw-fr de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la &_o vita_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-fr vivisica_fw-la &_o naturali_fw-la vita_fw-la sunt_fw-la and_o they_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o natural_a life_n and_o of_o that_o which_o make_v other_o thing_n to_o live_v spiritu_fw-la this_o phrase_n verba_fw-la mea_fw-la de_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sunt_fw-la my_o word_n be_v of_o the_o spirit_n do_v mean_a that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n have_v in_o they_o some_o of_o his_o spirit_n and_o of_o his_o divine_a power_n which_o meaning_n since_o it_o be_v most_o true_a these_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v note_n not_o show_v that_o the_o name_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o go_v before_o be_v figurative_a and_o that_o now_o christ_n declare_v only_o a_o spiritual_a understanding_n of_o they_o as_o the_o sacramentary_n teach_v but_o all_o be_v clean_o contrary_a for_o christ_n now_o geve_v a_o reason_n why_o his_o former_a word_n be_v possible_a easy_a true_a and_o proper_a the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o he_o be_v god_n that_o speak_v they_o and_o he_o speak_v they_o of_o that_o flesh_n which_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n spiritus_fw-la vivificans_fw-la est_fw-la caro_fw-la domini_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o flesh_n of_o our_o lord_n 3._o say_v damascen_n be_v a_o spirit_n which_o quicken_v because_o it_o be_v conceive_v of_o a_o quickenââ¦g_a spirit_n sore_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v spirit_n which_o thing_n i_o say_v not_o taking_z away_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o body_n but_o intend_v to_o show_v the_o godhead_n thereof_o and_o the_o power_n which_o it_o have_v to_o make_v thing_n live_v as_o therefore_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o thereby_o no_o flesh_n because_o it_o be_v join_v to_o his_o divine_a substance_n but_o rather_o have_v by_o that_o union_n the_o power_n to_o make_v we_o live_v for_o ever_o even_o so_o yâ_z word_n which_o before_o do_v show_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v meat_n in_o deed_n and_o his_o blood_n to_o be_v drink_n in_o deed_n be_v not_o now_o declare_v to_o be_v figurative_a or_o unproper_a word_n but_o rather_o they_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v most_o proper_a and_o true_a because_o they_o be_v witness_v to_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n for_o as_o the_o godhead_n be_v in_o his_o own_o nature_n most_o infinite_a almighty_a simple_a and_o uncompounded_a and_o the_o truth_n itself_o so_o those_o spiritââ¦al_a word_n which_o partake_v of_o the_o godhead_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v of_o most_o strength_n to_o work_v that_o they_o sound_v to_o be_v most_o simple_a and_o to_o have_v least_o figure_n &_o parable_n in_o they_o as_o the_o which_o contain_v the_o virtue_n to_o make_v that_o truth_n which_o they_o signifiââ¦_n so_o that_o the_o name_n of_o spirit_n do_v not_o stand_v to_o depriââ¦e_v we_o of_o christ_n real_a flesh_n but_o only_o to_o make_v it_o profitable_a to_o we_o and_o to_o show_v that_o christ_n by_o his_o word_n be_v able_a to_o geve_v we_o his_o flesh_n wherein_o the_o godhead_n corporal_o dwell_v corpus_fw-la dei_fw-la say_v s._n ambrose_n 9_o corpus_fw-la est_fw-la spiritale_fw-it corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la est_fw-la divini_fw-la spiritus_fw-la quia_fw-la spiritus_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la the_o body_n of_o god_n be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n because_o christ_n be_v the_o spirit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v god_n non_fw-la ergo_fw-la corporalis_fw-la esca_fw-la sed_fw-la spiritalis_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v therefore_o no_o bodily_a but_o a_o spiritual_a food_n the_o food_n be_v spiritual_a as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o take_v of_o food_n the_o virgin_n be_v spiritual_a but_o the_o body_n be_v not_o spiritual_a as_o though_o it_o lack_v the_o substance_n of_o true_a flesh_n but_o because_o it_o be_v wrought_v and_o make_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o virgen_v womb_n therefore_o the_o heavenly_a bread_n which_o we_o receive_v from_o the_o altar_n be_v a_o spiritual_a food_n noââ¦_n that_o it_o lack_v the_o true_a substance_n of_o christ_n flesh_n but_o because_o it_o be_v wrought_v and_o make_v present_a under_o the_o foorm_n of_o bread_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n above_o all_o course_n of_o nature_n it_o be_v clear_o say_v s._n ambrose_n that_o the_o virgin_n do_v bear_v christ_n ibidem_fw-la otherwise_o than_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n be_v and_o this_o body_n which_o we_o make_v be_v of_o the_o virgin_n what_o seke_v thou_o here_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n see_v our_o lord_n jesus_n himself_o be_v bring_v forth_o of_o the_o virgin_n beside_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n as_o who_o shall_v say_v the_o real_a flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v present_a under_o the_o foorm_n of_o bread_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o as_o christ_n be_v incarnate_a in_o the_o virgen_v womb_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v the_o godhead_n the_o spirit_n the_o life_n that_o work_v all_o thing_n in_o yâ_z holy_a mystery_n the_o flesh_n without_o yâ_z godhead_n profit_v nothing_o from_o yâ_z godhead_n the_o word_n come_v which_o christ_n speak_v that_o godhead_n be_v it_o which_o make_v christ_n flesh_n profitable_a per_fw-la carnem_fw-la spiritus_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n 27._o aliquid_fw-la prosalute_n nostra_fw-la egit_fw-la caro_fw-la vas_fw-la fuit_fw-la quod_fw-la habebat_fw-la attend_v non_fw-la quod_fw-la erat_fw-la by_o the_o flesh_n the_o spirit_n or_o godhead_n do_v somewhat_o for_o our_o salvation_n the_o flesh_n be_v the_o vessel_n or_o instrument_n mark_v what_o the_o flesh_n have_v or_o hold_v and_o not_o what_o it_o be_v by_o his_o own_o nature_n and_o again_o the_o charity_n of_o god_n be_v spread_v in_o our_o 5._o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v give_v to_o us._n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o quicken_v the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n what_o be_v it_o to_o say_v they_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v spiritual_o if_o thou_o have_v understand_v they_o spiritual_o they_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n if_o thou_o have_v understand_v they_o carnal_o they_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n but_o not_o to_o thou_o thus_o far_o s._n augustine_n the_o word_n spirit_n may_v stand_v to_o signify_v god_n angel_n the_o soul_n signify_v of_o man_n the_o life_n the_o gift_n of_o god_n make_v to_o any_o reasonable_a creature_n &_o the_o wind_n or_o breath_n or_o air_n or_o brief_o any_o thing_n that_o move_v but_o among_o all_o signification_n the_o chief_a be_v to_o signify_v god_n who_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o only_a spirit_n which_o quicken_v and_o move_v all_o other_o spirit_n
nourishment_n because_o the_o only_a spirit_n shall_v suffice_v to_o nourish_v it_o qua_fw-la causa_fw-la etiam_fw-la spiritale_fw-it erit_fw-la for_o which_o cause_n also_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v spiritual_a now_o as_o after_o resurrection_n the_o spiritual_a be_v which_o our_o body_n shall_v have_v do_v not_o diminish_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o nature_n but_o declare_v a_o wonderful_a abetter_n of_o they_o in_z that_o they_o be_v make_v in_o manner_n equal_a to_o spiritual_a substance_n even_o so_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o supper_n be_v spiritual_a not_o for_o any_o lack_n of_o his_o true_a substance_n under_o yâ_z form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o because_o it_o be_v whole_o possess_v and_o replenish_v with_o the_o godhead_n and_o be_v present_a after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o spirit_n as_o be_v neither_o see_v nor_o feel_v nor_o taste_v but_o only_o beleve_v and_o therefore_o this_o bless_a sacrament_n be_v worthy_o call_v of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o blood_n yea_o as_o i_o think_v it_o be_v 3._o call_v of_o s._n paul_n also_o mysterium_fw-la fidei_fw-la the_o mysââ¦erie_n of_o faith_n because_o it_o secret_o contain_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o flesh_n the_o blood_n the_o soul_n and_o the_o spirit_n or_o godhead_n of_o jesus_n christ._n the_o which_o mystery_n of_o faith_n the_o deacon_n use_v to_o deliver_v to_o the_o faithful_a after_o consecration_n as_o justinus_n the_o martyr_n do_v witness_v and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n will_v the_o deacon_n to_o use_v that_o mystery_n of_o faith_n with_o a_o pure_a and_o clean_a conscience_n to_o be_v short_a the_o sacramentary_n abuse_v yâ_z word_n of_o god_n miserable_o when_o they_o talk_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o do_v for_o christ_n say_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o mean_v only_o the_o corruptible_a flesh_n of_o a_o bare_a man_n who_o be_v no_o god_n the_o sacramentary_n expound_v it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v nothing_o worth_a to_o eat_v christ_n own_o flesh_n real_o but_o only_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o feed_v on_o it_o by_o faith_n christ_n say_v it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v mean_v the_o godhead_n to_o make_v his_o flesh_n profitable_a unto_o us._n they_o take_v it_o so_o as_o though_o the_o spirit_n alone_o do_v qââ¦icken_v we_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n without_o eat_v his_o flesh_n real_o christ_n by_o name_v the_o spirit_n revoke_v ââ¦ot_v the_o real_a gift_n of_o his_o flesh_n the_o eat_v whereof_o he_o avouch_v to_o be_v necessary_a for_o us._n they_o use_v it_o contrary_o to_o prove_v his_o flesh_n to_o be_v give_v we_o real_o in_o his_o last_o supper_n as_o though_o he_o have_v correct_v his_o former_a word_n christ_n mean_v to_o add_v more_o dignity_n and_o worthiness_n to_o the_o eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n then_o be_v in_o other_o man_n flesh_n because_o the_o spirit_n make_v it_o alone_o quick_a alive_a and_o profitable_a they_z endeavour_n by_o the_o precense_n of_o the_o word_n spirit_n to_o say_v he_o will_v not_o geve_v his_o flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v in_o deed_n and_o so_o abuse_v that_o name_n to_o the_o diminish_n of_o his_o inestimable_a gift_n christ_n say_v my_o word_n be_v spirit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o divine_a power_n &_o procede_v from_o god_n they_o imagine_v he_o say_v my_o word_n be_v unproper_a and_o cropicall_a or_o parabolicall_a as_o be_v only_o true_a by_o a_o allegory_n christ_n mean_v his_o word_n to_o proceed_v from_o his_o own_o spirit_n and_o majesty_n and_o thereââ¦ore_o to_o be_v true_a above_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n they_o expoââ¦nd_v they_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v you_o must_v care_v my_o flesh_n in_o your_o spirit_n only_o &_o not_o in_o very_a deed_n thus_o they_o wrest_v that_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n which_o christ_n say_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o under_o this_o ambiguity_n of_o word_n they_o cover_v their_o poisoved_a doctrine_n christ_n will_v we_o to_o understand_v spiritual_o the_o real_a ââ¦ating_n of_o his_o real_a flesh_n because_o he_o will_v geve_v it_o we_o without_o loss_n of_o his_o own_o body_n without_o loathsomeness_n of_o our_o stomach_n and_o without_o remove_v from_o his_o own_o place_n in_o heaven_n they_o apply_v the_o spiritual_a understanding_n of_o eat_v his_o flesh_n to_o take_v away_o the_o real_a ââ¦ating_n of_o it_o as_o though_o he_o that_o understand_v a_o thing_n spiritual_o shall_v not_o therefore_o eat_v that_o real_o which_o he_o understand_v to_o be_v mystical_a the_o substance_n of_o christ_n flesh_n eat_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o mystery_n figure_n sacrament_n or_o spiritual_a understanding_n which_o christ_n speak_v of_o because_o he_o will_v they_o to_o eat_v his_o flesh_n not_o to_o fill_v their_o belly_n but_o to_o signify_v and_o partake_v yâ_z merit_n otherwise_o do_v in_o that_o flesh_n they_o take_v away_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o figure_n which_o be_v christ_n flesh_n add_v of_o their_o own_o iââ¦ention_n bread_n &_o wine_n to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o this_o figure_n and_o of_o the_o spiritual_a understanding_n they_o make_v christ_n spiritual_a word_n tropical_a and_o gramatical_o ââ¦igurative_a abase_v they_o beneath_o yâ_z condition_n of_o common_a word_n for_o a_o proper_a word_n iââ¦_n of_o more_o dignity_n than_o a_o improper_a and_o man_n for_o the_o most_o part_n speak_v proper_o christ_n say_v my_o word_n be_v life_n mean_v they_o to_o be_v so_o proper_a that_o they_o perform_v whatsoever_o they_o promise_v or_o speak_v as_o have_v the_o propriety_n of_o the_o godhead_n which_o be_v most_o far_o from_o all_o figure_n shadow_n and_o change_n they_o make_v they_o dead_a word_n for_o see_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o speaker_n utter_v in_o plain_a word_n be_v yâ_z life_n of_o the_o word_n the_o same_o word_n utter_v the_o speaker_n mind_v obscure_o be_v as_o dead_a and_o without_o life_n until_o they_o be_v expound_v what_o shall_v i_o say_v more_o they_o take_v these_o word_n to_o be_v figurative_a in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o make_v they_o inferior_a to_o the_o common_a word_n of_o mortal_a man_n who_o never_o ligtht_o use_v yâ_z word_n flesh_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o sign_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o for_o the_o substance_n of_o they_o and_o much_o less_o do_v they_o use_v flesh_n and_o blood_n so_o to_o signify_v bread_n and_o wine_n that_o the_o same_o bread_n and_o wine_n must_v again_o signify_v christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o i_o have_v note_v before_o that_o the_o sacramentary_n be_v constrain_v to_o say_v if_o they_o will_v defend_v their_o false_a and_o ãâã_d doctrine_n the_o which_o i_o pray_v god_n they_o may_v have_v grace_n to_o see_v and_o to_o amend_v the_o preface_n of_o the_o four_o book_n vue_fw-fr have_v show_v what_o proof_n may_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o christ_n promise_n at_o capharnaum_n for_o his_o real_a and_o corporal_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n it_o remain_v we_o now_o declare_v the_o same_o truth_n by_o that_o which_o he_o perform_v in_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o because_o the_o chief_a controversy_n be_v whether_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v mean_a as_o they_o sound_v or_o else_o must_v be_v take_v otherwise_o i_o will_v first_o make_v it_o plain_a that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v take_v proper_o &_o as_o they_o sound_v to_o man_n of_o common_a understanding_n until_o a_o evident_a reason_n be_v bring_v why_o they_o must_v be_v mean_v unproper_o &_o therewithal_o i_o show_v that_o no_o reason_n be_v now_o to_o be_v hear_v for_o the_o unproper_a interpretation_n of_o they_o because_o the_o time_n of_o all_o such_o allegation_n be_v expire_v more_o than_o fiften_v hundred_o year_n past_a for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o proper_a meaning_n afterward_o i_o will_v prove_v the_o proper_a &_o literal_a meaning_n of_o those_o word_n by_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o supper_n by_o the_o conference_n of_o holy_a scripture_n take_v out_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o last_o of_o all_o by_o the_o commandment_n which_o be_v give_v the_o apostle_n to_o continue_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n until_o he_o come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n if_o in_o confer_v the_o promise_n with_o the_o performance_n or_o by_o any_o other_o occasion_n i_o chance_v to_o say_v somewhat_o which_o be_v before_o touch_v i_o must_v ask_v pardon_n thereof_o as_o who_o endevore_fw-mi partly_o to_o make_v all_o thing_n plain_a partly_o to_o confirm_v the_o present_a matter_n whereof_o i_o speak_v by_o such_o convenient_a allegation_n as_o for_o the_o time_n come_v to_o my_o remembrance_n once_o i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n affect_v of_o i_o to_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n oft_o albeit_o either_o the_o affinity_n
ãâã_d of_o godhead_n dwellech_n corporal_o in_o christ_n flesh_n &_o so_o his_o flesh_n rââ¦ally_o eat_v of_o we_o with_o due_a faith_n &_o charity_n be_v a_o maruelouse_a instrument_n to_o geve_v we_o the_o everlasting_a meat_n and_o to_o join_v we_o most_o ãâã_d to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n mark_v well_o that_o concern_v the_o eat_a god_n by_o say_v and_o mind_n we_o approve_v it_o as_o a_o special_a good_a thing_n but_o we_o say_v far_o that_o god_n come_v in_o flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v in_o flesh_n of_o they_o that_o consist_v of_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o have_v say_v my_o father_n geve_v you_o the_o true_a bread_n from_o heaven_n and_o i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n which_o hitherto_o be_v mean_v to_o be_v eat_v by_o faith_n he_o also_o go_v forward_o flesh_n promise_v a_o eat_v to_o come_v hereafter_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o thereof_o say_v the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n and_o he_o that_o eat_v i_o tarry_v in_o i_o the_o same_o christ_n come_v in_o his_o own_o person_n to_o perform_v yâ_z flesh_n former_a promise_n not_o say_v only_o believe_v you_o in_o god_n and_o in_o i_o as_o i_o teach_v you_o but_o say_v and_o do_v that_o be_v to_o wit_n take_v blessing_n geve_v and_o say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o ãâã_d this_o only_a point_n be_v depelie_o ponder_v it_o seem_v to_o i_o beleve_v that_o the_o almighty_a speaker_n so_o send_v so_o promise_v and_o so_o do_v aught_o to_o be_v of_o such_o authority_n that_o nothing_o shall_v stay_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o external_a thing_n to_o be_v his_o body_n whereof_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n let_v we_o now_o add_v hereunto_o the_o wisdom_n the_o providence_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o goodue_v of_o yâ_z speaker_n who_o will_v not_o of_o purpose_n blind_a his_o own_o spouse_n with_o sigurative_a word_n both_o of_o promise_n and_o of_o performance_n and_o yet_o the_o one_o join_v with_o the_o other_o and_o the_o person_n who_o both_o speak_v and_o do_v well_o consider_v make_v to_o man_n of_o reason_n such_o persuasion_n of_o a_o proper_a speech_n that_o no_o sufficient_a cause_n be_v leave_v why_o to_o presume_v those_o word_n to_o be_v figurative_a of_o this_o first_o circumstance_n eusebius_n emissenus_fw-la write_v pasch_fw-mi ad_fw-la cognoscendum_fw-la &_o percipiendum_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la very_fw-la corporis_fw-la ipsa_fw-la te_fw-la roboret_fw-la potentia_fw-la consecrantis_fw-la let_v the_o very_a power_n of_o he_o that_o consecrate_v it_o strengthen_v thou_o to_o know_v &_o to_o perceive_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o true_a body_n again_o recedat_fw-la omne_fw-la ãâã_d ambiguum_fw-la qui_fw-la auctor_fw-la est_fw-la muneris_fw-la ipse_fw-la etiam_fw-la testis_fw-la est_fw-la veritatis_fw-la let_v all_o doutfulnes_n of_o insidelity_n depart_v he_o that_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o gift_n be_v himself_o also_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o truth_n ¶_o the_o second_o circumstance_n may_v be_v to_o consider_v the_o time_n when_o the_o supper_n be_v make_v the_o time_n of_o speak_v be_v the_o night_n before_o christ_n depart_v 11._o out_o of_o this_o world_n at_o what_o time_n man_n be_v wont_a to_o speak_v most_o plain_o and_o s._n paul_n himself_o note_v that_o circumstance_n say_v our_o lord_n in_o the_o night_n that_o he_o be_v betray_v take_v bread_n etc._n etc._n for_o when_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n draw_v never_o man_n use_v manifest_o to_o show_v their_o last_o will_n without_o all_o figure_n &_o trope_n as_o nigh_o as_o the_o matter_n will_v suffer_v and_o how_o much_o more_o will_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n use_v word_n wary_o in_o this_o case_n special_o see_v s._n augustin_n witness_v that_o he_o give_v this_o sacrament_n after_o supper_n nuar._n when_o his_o passion_n be_v at_o hand_n to_o thintent_v the_o highness_n of_o the_o mystery_n may_v the_o better_a stick_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o memory_n of_o the_o disciple_n whereas_o otherwise_o the_o church_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o receive_v this_o sacrament_n fast_v for_o the_o honour_n say_v s._n augustine_n of_o so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n let_v we_o now_o a_o little_a weigh_v with_o ourselves_o whether_o any_o good_a ãâã_d and_o discrete_a man_n know_v his_o part_a hour_n out_o of_o this_o world_n to_o be_v at_o hand_n will_v speak_v of_o purpose_n such_o word_n of_o ordain_v matter_n to_o be_v do_v after_o his_o death_n the_o which_o word_n he_o forsee_v will_v cause_v his_o heir_n either_o to_o sin_n grevous_o if_o they_o observe_v they_o plain_o as_o they_o shall_v or_o else_o to_o have_v a_o inward_a dissension_n if_o some_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v plain_a other_o deny_v and_o ãâã_d they_o ââ¦o_o be_v figurative_a for_o if_o christ_n word_n be_v in_o dedt_fw-mi figurative_a the_o catholics_n sin_n both_o in_o teach_v the_o contrary_a and_o in_o adore_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o ãâã_d which_o thing_n they_o be_v constrain_v to_o do_v by_o the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n and_o then_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o ãâã_d who_o possible_o can_v find_v no_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v not_o believe_v their_o master_n so_o speakig_a and_o do_v as_o he_o speak_v and_o do_v and_o thus_o lie_v the_o ââ¦ander_n upon_o christ_n himself_o but_o if_o the_o word_n be_v in_o deed_n plain_a than_o christ_n be_v purge_v and_o the_o only_a salt_n be_v in_o they_o who_o will_v not_o believe_v i_o think_v it_o far_o the_o better_a to_o believe_v the_o wonderful_a discretion_n of_o christ_n ââ¦_n so_o ãâã_d he_o to_o mistrust_v the_o infidelite_n of_o wicked_a man_n ¶_o the_o three_o circumstance_n concern_v the_o person_n who_o be_v at_o the_o last_o supper_n the_o hearer_n be_v his_o twelve_o apostle_n who_o shall_v instruct_v yâ_z who_o will_v world_n of_o that_o which_o they_o learn_v of_o christ_n figure_n in_o this_o very_a business_n whereof_o we_o talk_v and_o so_o they_o do_v never_o leave_v in_o any_o piece_n of_o all_o their_o write_n or_o preaching_n that_o christ_n least_o a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n without_o the_o very_a truth_n thereof_o contain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n to_o the_o same_o apostle_n it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v and_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n whereââ¦ore_v it_o be_v very_o 13._o iveredible_a that_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v either_o hide_v from_o they_o by_o christ_n or_o by_o they_o hide_v from_o us._n 13._o yet_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o it_o be_v in_o some_o part_n hide_v if_o that_o word_n which_o report_v it_o be_v figurative_a and_o parabolicall_a for_o parable_n be_v speak_v as_o christ_n himself_o witness_v out_o of_o esaias_n the_o prophet_n so_o that_o man_n hear_v do_v not_o understand_v in_o hart_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v thyrd_o the_o apostle_n be_v those_o who_o tarry_v with_o christ_n at_o capharnaum_n where_o he_o promise_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n therefore_o if_o 6._o christ_n have_v then_o speak_v figurative_o to_o the_o people_n yet_o now_o at_o the_o least_o he_o shall_v and_o will_v have_v declare_v the_o matter_n more_o plain_o and_o so_o he_o do_v in_o deed_n not_o very_o add_v any_o word_n which_o may_v show_v his_o former_a talk_n to_o have_v beve_v figurative_a concerue_v the_o substance_n of_o flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v &_o the_o substance_n of_o wine_n to_o be_v drunken_a but_o only_o teach_v the_o manner_n of_o geve_v they_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v figurative_a and_o mystical_a because_o they_o be_v not_o give_v to_o fill_v the_o belly_n but_o to_o feed_v the_o soul_n &_o not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o flesh_n sake_n which_o we_o ãâã_d as_o for_o yâ_z spirit_n &_o godhead_n which_o replenish_v that_o flesh_n of_o christ._n ¶_o the_o four_o circumstance_n concern_v the_o end_n of_o the_o old_a passover_n and_o the_o make_n of_o a_o new_a the_o occasion_n move_v christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n rather_o than_o at_o any_o other_o time_n to_o say_v over_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o over_o wine_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n be_v the_o set_n and_o place_v do_v of_o the_o new_a paschal_n lamb_n in_o stead_n of_o yâ_z old_a for_o lest_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v without_o a_o mystical_a sacrifice_n call_v according_o to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n a_o passover_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o sacrifice_n betoken_v 12._o our_o pass_n over_o the_o sea_n of_o sin_n and_o our_o ãâã_d to_o the_o land_n of_o grace_n and_o life_n which_o we_o look_v for_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o old_a lamb_n 1._o be_v eat_v and_o the_o time_n come_v that_o shadow_n and_o figure_n shall_v be_v fultil_v by_o
bread_n but_o the_o eucharist_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o thanksgeve_a the_o sacramentary_n on_o yâ_z other_o side_n make_v thanks_n to_o be_v give_fw-ge of_o christ_n in_o bare_a wheaten_a bread_n and_o wine_n they_o make_v also_o the_o word_n of_o thanksgeve_a figurative_a and_o thereby_o untrue_a in_o their_o proper_a sense_n the_o liââ¦e_n be_v do_v by_o their_o ancestor_n before_o as_o s._n ignatius_n do_v witness_v who_o word_n theodorus_n allege_v 3_o thus_o eucharistias_n &_o oblationes_fw-la non_fw-la admittunt_fw-la quòd_fw-la non_fw-la confiteantur_fw-la eucharistiam_fw-la esse_fw-la carnem_fw-la saluatoris_fw-la nostri_fw-la they_o admit_v no_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgeve_a nor_o oblation_n because_o they_o confess_v not_o the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o hereof_o i_o shall_v speak_v again_o hereafter_o ¶_o the_o twelve_o circumstance_n of_o break_v by_o the_o fact_n of_o break_v the_o protestant_n think_v themselves_o to_o have_v one_o circumstance_n make_v for_o their_o opinion_n for_o what_o can_v be_v break_v say_v they_o at_o christ_n supper_n beside_o common_a bread_n but_o if_o we_o take_v the_o bread_n to_o have_v be_v break_v before_o the_o consecration_n thereof_o they_o have_v no_o more_o advantage_n by_o the_o fact_n of_o break_v common_a bread_n than_o they_o have_v by_o the_o fact_n of_o take_v common_a bread_n for_o we_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v still_o common_a bread_n until_o christ_n have_v say_v of_o it_o this_o be_v my_o body_n after_o which_o word_n if_o we_o think_v the_o break_n to_o have_v be_v use_v which_o be_v far_o the_o more_o probable_a opinion_n we_o must_v needs_o confess_v the_o evangelist_n not_o to_o have_v rehearse_v speak_v all_o thing_n in_o such_o order_n as_o they_o be_v do_v in_o &_o we_o must_v construe_v the_o word_n in_o this_o wise_a christ_n take_v bread_n bless_a or_o give_v thanks_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o then_o break_v and_o give_v 10_o to_o his_o disciple_n the_o which_o interpretation_n be_v confirm_v both_o by_o s._n paul_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o a_o other_o place_n &_o by_o the_o daily_a practice_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n neither_o have_v the_o sacramentary_n any_o just_a occasion_n to_o triumph_n hereof_o that_o we_o grant_v a_o figure_n in_o change_v the_o order_n of_o the_o word_n for_o the_o figure_n be_v not_o in_o christ_n word_n of_o which_o only_o we_o contend_v but_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n who_o know_v that_o before_o the_o time_n of_o their_o writing_n the_o order_n of_o christ_n supper_n be_v teach_v &_o practise_v in_o a_o great_a number_n of_o christian_a church_n do_v rather_o attend_v to_o write_v the_o ãâã_d of_o the_o matter_n as_o in_o most_o other_o thing_n they_o have_v do_v then_o curious_o to_o note_v the_o ceremony_n and_o order_n of_o the_o do_v &_o speak_v and_o therefore_o he_o that_o will_v may_v observe_v that_o they_o ââ¦oyne_v together_o wordââ¦_n all_o the_o dede_n of_o christ_n supper_n belong_v to_o each_o kind_n and_o afterward_o place_v the_o word_n appertain_a to_o the_o same_o not_o because_o none_o of_o the_o word_n come_v not_o between_o some_o of_o the_o dede_n but_o to_o make_v short_a and_o by_o division_n make_v into_o dede_n &_o word_n to_o set_v like_a to_o his_o like_a that_o be_v to_o wit_n to_o join_v only_a dede_n with_o dede_n and_o only_a word_n with_o word_n the_o dede_n be_v take_v bread_n blessing_n thanksgen_v break_v deliver_v which_o stand_v together_o the_o word_n be_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n do_v and_o make_v this_o thing_n for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o those_o be_v place_v altogether_o let_v it_o then_o go_v for_o a_o truth_n howsoever_o our_o adversary_n be_v now_o please_v withal_o that_o christ_n do_v break_v and_o go_v after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n yet_o shall_v it_o even_o so_o make_v more_o for_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o body_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n they_o against_o it_o because_o that_o very_o break_v do_v show_v the_o substance_n of_o flesh_n whereof_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o be_v so_o real_o and_o miraculoush_v present_a that_o it_o be_v contain_v whole_a under_o every_o piece_n and_o fragment_n of_o that_o which_o still_o appear_v bread_n otherwise_o every_o apostle_n can_v not_o have_v ââ¦aved_v one_o and_o the_o same_o whole_a substance_n without_o more_o and_o less_o which_o a_o other_o do_v ââ¦ave_v but_o the_o contrary_n be_v figure_v in_o manna_n of_o the_o which_o some_o gather_v more_o and_o some_o less_o but_o 16_o neither_o he_o that_o gather_v more_o have_v more_o nor_o he_o that_o gather_v less_o find_v less_o when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o trial_n of_o measure_n the_o which_o thing_n s._n ãâã_d show_v to_o be_v verify_v of_o that_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n 2._o supper_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o neither_o externallie_o nor_o spiritual_o if_o it_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o wheaten_a bread_n which_o the_o apostle_n ãâã_d after_o yâ_z break_n for_o then_o one_o shall_v have_v the_o great_a piece_n of_o bread_n a_o other_o the_o less_o neither_o can_v any_o balance_n or_o measure_n daââ¦y_v make_v they_o thorough_o equal_a again_o if_o it_o be_v bread_n which_o be_v break_v and_o take_v christ_n be_v only_o eat_v by_o faith_n and_o spirit_n sure_o see_v the_o faith_n and_o devotion_n which_o every_o man_n have_v be_v in_o a_o ãâã_d measure_n from_o that_o which_o a_o other_o have_v according_a as_o christ_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n divide_v 12_o his_o ãâã_d to_o one_o after_o one_o sort_n to_o a_o other_o otherwise_o as_o he_o list_v to_o every_o man_n neither_o by_o that_o meave_v one_o shall_v have_v as_o much_o as_o the_o other_o and_o that_o especial_o because_o some_o receive_v life_n everlasting_a by_o eat_v that_o which_o be_v break_v to_o they_o and_o other_o eat_v their_o own_o damnation_n and_o how_o be_v it_o i_o pray_v you_o all_o 11_o one_o measure_n to_o they_o or_o be_v it_o one_o to_o be_v save_v &_o to_o be_v damn_v s._n ãâã_d have_v speak_v of_o the_o equal_a measure_n of_o manna_n say_v et_fw-la nos_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la ââ¦qualiter_fw-la accipimus_fw-la una_fw-la est_fw-la in_o mysterijs_fw-la 2._o sanctificatio_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o serui_fw-la &_o ãâã_d quanquà m_fw-la pro_fw-la accipientium_fw-la meritis_fw-la diversum_fw-la fiat_fw-la quod_fw-la unum_fw-la est_fw-la and_o we_o also_o take_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n equal_o there_o be_v one_o sanctification_n in_o the_o mystery_n as_o well_o of_o the_o servant_n as_o of_o the_o master_n albeit_o according_a to_o that_o merit_n of_o the_o ãâã_d that_o be_v make_v diverse_a which_o be_v one_o the_o meaning_n of_o which_o word_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v that_o one_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v receive_v in_o the_o mystery_n to_o wit_n under_o the_o foorm_n of_o bread_n as_o well_o by_o the_o poor_a as_o by_o the_o scotfree_a although_o the_o devotion_n be_v diverse_a wherewith_o it_o be_v receive_v to_o one_o it_o be_v more_o meritoriouse_a in_o effect_n and_o to_o a_o other_o less_o meritoriouse_a but_o in_o substance_n it_o be_v one_o sanctification_n to_o all_o man_n so_o that_o the_o break_n and_o the_o piece_n which_o be_v make_v certify_v we_o of_o such_o a_o mystical_a presence_n that_o as_o eusebius_n ãâã_d witness_v corpus_fw-la hoc_fw-la sacerdote_fw-la dispensante_fw-la tantum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o exiguo_fw-la pasch._n quantum_fw-la esse_fw-la constat_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la and_o again_o de_fw-fr hoc_fw-la verò_fw-la pane_fw-la cum_fw-la assumitur_fw-la nihilo_fw-la minus_fw-la habent_fw-la singuli_fw-la quam_fw-la universi_fw-la totum_fw-la unus_fw-la totum_fw-la duo_fw-la totum_fw-la plures_fw-la sine_fw-la diminutione_n percipiunt_fw-la this_o body_n when_o the_o priest_n ãâã_d be_v as_o great_a in_o the_o small_a piece_n as_o it_o be_v great_a in_o the_o whole_a loaf_n of_o this_o bread_n when_o it_o be_v take_v every_o man_n have_v no_o less_o than_o altogether_o have_v ãâã_d have_v all_o twain_o all_o ãâã_d have_v all_o without_o diminish_v these_o word_n i_o say_v can_v be_v ãâã_d neither_o of_o material_a bread_n outward_o break_v and_o deliver_v the_o piece_n whereof_o be_v unequal_a nor_o of_o inward_a grace_n and_o faith_n the_o measure_n whereof_o be_v diverse_a âª_o but_o only_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o be_v conââ¦_n whole_o under_o every_o fragment_n of_o that_o which_o be_v break_v have_v with_o it_o none_o other_o substance_n which_o may_v cause_v any_o man_n to_o have_v more_o or_o less_o than_o his_o fellow_n of_o this_o kind_n of_o break_v s._n ãâã_d ignatius_n say_v vnus_fw-la panis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la confractus_fw-la est_fw-la one_o bread_n be_v break_v to_o all_o one_o bread_n of_o life_n he_o mean_v as_o for_o material_a loan_z they_o werââ¦_n diverse_a even_o in_o the_o same_o church_n and_o not_o always_o one_o but_o
his_o word_n ãâã_d this_o whereunto_o he_o point_v to_o be_v in_o substance_n his_o oââ¦n_a body_n but_o his_o dede_n perform_v only_o a_o sign_n of_o his_o own_o body_n as_o the_o sacramentary_n teach_v may_v i_o not_o now_o say_v to_o the_o sacramentary_n the_o like_a to_o that_o which_o malachi_n the_o prophet_n say_v to_o those_o ãâã_d ãâã_d among_o the_o jew_n who_o offer_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n ââ¦ind_n lame_a and_o faint_a or_o sick_a ox_n and_o sheep_n offer_v illud_fw-la ãâã_d si_fw-la placueret_fw-la 1_o ei_fw-la aut_fw-la si_fw-la susceperit_fw-la faciem_fw-la tuam_fw-la offer_v such_o halt_a present_n to_o thy_o lord_n or_o captain_n &_o tell_v i_o whether_o it_o will_v please_v he_o or_o whether_o thou_o shall_v be_v welcome_a to_o he_o or_o no._n if_o one_o shall_v come_v to_o a_o great_a personage_n and_o with_o solemn_a thank_n make_v he_o a_o present_a in_o word_n of_o a_o fat_a ox_n or_o of_o a_o couragiouse_a horse_n and_o when_o the_o noble_a man_n be_v come_v forth_o to_o accept_v the_o present_a he_o shall_v geve_v he_o a_o peââ¦ce_n of_o paper_n wherein_o it_o be_v write_v this_o be_v a_o fat_a ox_n or_o a_o couragiouse_a horse_n will_v the_o noble_a man_n take_v it_o well_o now_o come_v these_o new_a preacher_n and_o whereas_o they_o confess_v yâ_z christ_n give_v thanks_n to_o his_o father_n and_o say_v in_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n yet_o they_o fear_v not_o to_o teach_v that_o he_o offer_v more_o to_o he_o in_o word_n than_o he_o perform_v in_o dede_n yea_o they_o doubt_v not_o to_o teach_v that_o the_o word_n wherewith_o he_o make_v his_o present_n be_v utter_o unproper_a and_o figurative_a not_o withstand_v that_o s._n ambrose_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o ãâã_d supper_n say_v in_o consecratione_fw-la divina_fw-la verba_fw-la ipsa_fw-la domini_fw-la saluatoris_fw-la operantur_fw-la in_o the_o divine_a consecration_n the_o self_n word_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o ãâã_d do_v work_n âª_o the_o word_n do_v work_v how_o they_o be_v they_o ãâã_d a_o figurative_a word_n be_v like_o a_o paited_a image_n figurative_a which_o may_v be_v somewhat_o if_o the_o thing_n mean_v thereby_o be_v real_a and_o true_a but_o otherwise_o it_o be_v a_o idol_n and_o nothing_o at_o all_o but_o as_o a_o image_n of_o never_o so_o lively_a a_o truth_n absent_a in_o substance_n from_o it_o can_v not_o itself_o work_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n because_o it_o be_v dead_a no_o more_o can_v word_n grammatical_o figurative_a work_n of_o themselves_o for_o that_o they_o be_v dead_a as_o not_o have_v their_o meaning_n which_o be_v their_o life_n present_v with_o they_o judae_fw-la s._n chrysostom_n likewise_o write_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la ait_fw-fr corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la hoc_fw-la verbo_fw-la proposita_fw-la consecrantur_fw-la this_o say_v he_o be_v my_o body_n with_o this_o word_n the_o thing_n set_v forth_o be_v consecrate_v and_o yet_o can_v this_o word_n which_o do_v so_o wonderful_a a_o act_n can_v it_o be_v in_o the_o mean_a tââ¦me_n so_o weak_a so_o feeble_a so_o dead_a that_o it_o have_v not_o in_o itself_o so_o much_o as_o the_o natural_a propriety_n of_o common_a word_n common_o word_n do_v mean_a as_o they_o sound_v and_o those_o which_o do_v not_o so_o be_v concern_v the_o use_n and_o service_n of_o word_n which_o be_v to_o utter_v a_o man_n mind_n of_o base_a condition_n than_o other_o word_n be_v but_o christ_n word_n be_v so_o lively_a that_o they_o have_v power_n to_o work_v and_o make_v that_o which_o they_o sound_v in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o call_v they_o in_o s._n john_n life_n 6._o and_o spirit_n therefore_o it_o be_v unreasonable_o say_v that_o they_o be_v figurative_a hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la be_v but_o four_o word_n of_o which_o four_a they_o leave_v never_o a_o one_o in_o his_o own_o signification_n and_o some_o of_o they_o they_o pluck_v from_o his_o gender_n other_o they_o pluck_v from_o their_o case_n which_o they_o be_v put_v in_o hoc_fw-la this_o be_v the_o neuter_a gender_n with_o his_o noun_n word_n substantive_a corpus_fw-la body_n they_o draw_v it_o to_o the_o masculine_a gender_n that_o it_o may_v agree_v with_o panis_n bread_n est_fw-la be_v a_o verb_n substantive_a signifi_v the_o substance_n of_o that_o noun_n substantive_a with_o who_o it_o be_v join_v they_o draw_v it_o from_o that_o signification_n to_o signify_v a_o accident_n in_o bread_n which_o in_o these_o word_n be_v not_o name_v they_o put_v corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la which_o be_v by_o christ_n set_v the_o nominative_a case_n into_o sometime_o the_o accusative_a sometime_o the_o genitive_n case_n for_o they_o ââ¦ay_v this_o do_v signify_v my_o body_n &_o then_o be_v it_o in_o yâ_z accusative_fw-mi case_n or_o this_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n and_o then_o it_o be_v the_o genitive_n case_n what_o miserable_a take_n be_v this_o of_o so_o heavenly_a word_n but_o hereof_o i_o think_v to_o say_v more_o upon_o those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n lest_o i_o now_o exceed_v the_o measure_n of_o a_o circumstance_n yet_o this_o one_o thing_n i_o can_v not_o but_o warn_v yâââ¦eader_n of_o although_o 35._o it_o may_v seem_v to_o some_o man_n of_o no_o great_a weight_n but_o i_o think_v with_o s._n chrysostom_n no_o syllable_n or_o prick_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v superfluous_o place_v s._n paul_n recite_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n place_v they_o thus_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d hoc_fw-la mei_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la this_o of_o i_o be_v the_o body_n for_o where_o as_o the_o other_o evangelist_n have_v write_v the_o pronoun_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o the_o last_o place_n as_o we_o likewise_o in_o latin_a put_n meum_fw-la last_v the_o holy_a ghost_n foresee_v the_o heresy_n yâ_z now_o shall_v rise_v cause_v s._n paul_n to_o join_v that_o proââ¦oun_n belong_v to_o christ_n word_n person_n unto_o yâ_z other_o pronoun_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d hoc_fw-la this_o for_o although_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v rule_v of_o the_o noun_n body_n and_o in_o sense_n must_v needs_o follow_v after_o it_o yet_o it_o please_v god_n to_o place_v the_o same_o pronoun_n with_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d this_o show_v thereby_o that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d must_v final_o be_v refer_v unto_o the_o noun_n corpus_fw-la body_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o pronoun_n meum_fw-la mine_n as_o if_o it_o be_v in_o latin_a hoc_fw-la mei_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la this_o of_o i_o be_v the_o body_n that_o join_v i_o say_v of_o this_o and_o of_o i_o together_o do_v geve_v such_o conjecture_n as_o in_o the_o order_n of_o word_n may_v be_v have_v that_o as_o of_o i_o be_v the_o genitive_n case_n come_v after_o yâ_z noun_n body_n so_o this_o likewise_o appertain_v to_o the_o noun_n substantive_a body_n and_o only_o rest_v and_o end_v his_o signification_n in_o that_o word_n whereas_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o this_o be_v only_o refer_v unto_o bread_n no_o reason_n can_v be_v bring_v why_o s._n paul_n shall_v join_v the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d of_o i_o unto_o it_o this_o bread_n of_o i_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o body_n judge_v what_o a_o hard_a speech_n it_o be_v let_v noman_n wonder_n if_o i_o so_o narrow_o scan_v every_o syllable_n for_o you_o shall_v see_v before_o all_o be_v do_v that_o god_n have_v cause_v the_o wordââ¦_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n by_o so_o many_o circumstance_n of_o writing_n and_o speak_v to_o be_v open_v unto_o we_o that_o when_o the_o rest_n be_v all_o hear_v it_o will_v seem_v probable_a enough_o not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o set_n of_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d with_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o have_v be_v superfluous_a ¶_o the._n ãâã_d circumstance_n of_o these_o word_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o although_o s._n matthew_n and_o s._n mark_n think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o report_v that_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o the_o which_o word_n both_o be_v plain_a enough_o &_o able_a to_o make_v the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n supper_n yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n stir_v up_o s._n luke_n to_o add_v the_o other_o word_n which_o christ_n have_v also_o use_v to_o thââ¦ntene_v the_o literal_a meaning_n of_o christ_n word_n may_v be_v most_o cââ¦tainly_o confirm_v and_o therefore_o he_o write_v that_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o ãâã_d body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o in_o all_o the_o which_o word_n there_o be_v none_o other_o noun_n substantive_a name_v beside_o the_o only_a substance_n of_o christ_n body_n with_o it_o agree_v hoc_fw-la this_o with_o it_o quod_fw-la the_o which_o it_o come_v after_o the_o verb_n est_fw-fr be_v and_o go_v before_o the_o verb_n datur_fw-la be_v give_v if_o now_o we_o interpret_v the_o noun_n corpus_fw-la body_n by_o figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la the_o ââ¦igure_n of_o
play_v with_o god_n word_n to_o elude_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o destroy_v the_o whole_a write_v gospel_n ¶_o what_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v whereof_o the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o consecrate_v of_o the_o blood_n s._n matthew_n s._n mark_v s._n luke_n and_o s._n paul_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o circumstance_n which_o follow_v âª_o to_o declare_v what_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v a_o testament_n be_v the_o solemn_a ordain_v of_o a_o thing_n by_o word_n testament_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v confirm_v by_o natural_a or_o violeut_fw-fr death_n for_o neither_o the_o last_o will_n of_o any_o man_n be_v of_o strength_n and_o force_n until_o the_o 31_o testatour_n dye_v nor_o any_o truse_a or_o ãâã_d be_v perfect_a until_o it_o be_v dedicate_v with_o sacrifice_n wherein_o some_o live_a creature_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n bloody_o of_o testament_n one_o be_v old_a a_o other_o new_a for_o it_o be_v of_o old_a 4._o time_n covenant_v with_o the_o jew_n that_o in_o case_n they_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n they_o shall_v have_v a_o temporal_a inheritance_n for_o keep_v it_o christ_n make_v a_o new_a truse_a that_o if_o we_o keep_v his_o law_n we_o shall_v have_v forgevenes_n of_o sin_n and_o enjoy_v the_o everlasting_a inheritance_n 31_o of_o god_n the_o old_a truse_a be_v dedicate_v as_o s._n paul_n speak_v 9_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o calf_n or_o ox_n which_o be_v offer_v for_o the_o confirmation_n thereof_o the_o new_a truse_a be_v dedicate_v by_o christ_n own_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o new_a law_n and_o promise_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o old_a truse_a be_v put_v into_o basââ¦s_n and_o so_o 24._o sprinkle_v with_o hyssop_n upon_o the_o people_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a truse_a be_v put_v into_o a_o cup_n or_o chalice_n and_o thence_o it_o be_v drink_v by_o the_o people_n of_o god_n they_o that_o keep_v the_o old_a truse_a enjoy_v the_o land_n of_o promise_n and_o they_o that_o keep_v the_o new_a truse_a enjoy_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n now_o because_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n requisite_a to_o a_o testament_n testament_n first_o a_o law_n covenant_n or_o promise_n next_o a_o bloodshedding_n to_o confirm_v the_o promise_n three_o a_o application_n of_o the_o blood_n that_o be_v shed_v for_o to_o be_v as_o a_o witness_n and_o a_o remembrance_n to_o all_o they_o who_o bind_v themselves_o to_o keep_v the_o condition_n agree_v upon_o it_o may_v so_o be_v that_o either_o all_o these_o thing_n or_o some_o one_o of_o they_o alone_o may_v be_v call_v the_o new_a testament_n when_o god_n say_v by_o jeremy_n consummabo_fw-la testamentum_fw-la 8._o nowm_fw-la he_o mean_v all_o together_o for_o he_o will_v as_o well_o publish_v his_o true_a law_n as_o confirm_v it_o by_o blood_n and_o distribute_v the_o blood_n wherewith_o it_o be_v confirm_v to_o the_o faithful_a when_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o mean_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v the_o law_n and_o promise_n itself_o of_o forgeve_a syââ¦s_n and_o therefore_o it_o follow_v the_o which_o shall_v be_v 26_o shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n oââ¦_n sin_n in_o which_o word_n he_o show_v how_o this_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n uery_o because_o it_o be_v the_o blood_n which_o shall_v obtain_v and_o merit_v the_o forgevenesse_n 31_o of_o those_o sin_n which_o the_o new_a law_n promise_v to_o take_v away_o ââ¦e_o call_v it_o say_v s._n chrysostom_n the_o blood_n of_o yâ_z promise_v of_o 83._o yâ_z new_a law_n and_o again_o testamentum_fw-la nowm_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipso_fw-la confirmatur_fw-la the_o new_a testament_n be_v confirm_v with_o this_o very_a blood_n tertullian_n say_v of_o chrââ¦_n testamentum_fw-la constituens_fw-la sanguine_fw-la marci_n svo_fw-la obsignatum_fw-la he_o establish_v the_o testament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o law_n seal_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n but_o when_o s._n luke_n and_o s._n paul_n report_n christ_n to_o have_v say_v this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n they_o seem_v to_o take_v the_o word_n testament_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o do_v confirm_v the_o new_a testament_n or_o witness_v it_o to_o be_v confirm_v and_o not_o proper_o for_o the_o new_a truse_a and_o promise_v thereof_o for_o this_o that_o be_v in_o the_o chalice_n be_v not_o the_o promise_n of_o remit_v sin_n but_o it_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o christ_n blood_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o confirm_v the_o new_a law_n or_o that_o witnââ¦h_v it_o to_o be_v confirm_v 11._o so_o do_v sedulius_n very_o well_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n say_v ideo_fw-la autem_fw-la calix_fw-la testamentum_fw-la voco_fw-la for_o so_o i_o think_v the_o true_a read_n to_o be_v and_o not_o testamenti_fw-la quia_fw-la testatus_fw-la est_fw-la pòst_fw-la paululum_fw-la passionem_fw-la futuram_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la testificatur_fw-la factam_fw-la the_o chalice_n be_v therefore_o call_v the_o new_a testament_n because_o it_o do_v witness_v bear_v witness_n at_o christ_n supper_n that_o the_o passion_n shall_v be_v a_o little_a after_o and_o now_o it_o do_v bear_v witness_n that_o yâ_z passion_n be_v make_v or_o do_v thus_o we_o see_v that_o whereas_o a_o testament_n have_v a_o law_n a_o confirmation_n and_o a_o witness_n of_o the_o confirmation_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o law_n itself_o but_o it_o be_v both_o the_o thing_n which_o confirm_v the_o law_n and_o the_o thing_n which_o do_v witness_v it_o to_o be_v confirm_v the_o which_o if_o it_o be_v well_o remember_v i_o trust_v the_o circumstance_n of_o great_a importance_n whereof_o i_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o will_v be_v the_o better_o understand_v ¶_o the._n twenty-four_o circumstance_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n say_v christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o blood_n wherewith_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v con_v firm_v and_o seal_v as_o s._n chrysostom_n tertullian_n theophilact_n 22._o and_o the_o other_o ancient_a father_n declare_v but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n new_a testament_n be_v real_a and_o true_a therefore_o this_o which_o christ_n do_v point_n unto_o be_v the_o true_a &_o real_a blood_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o the_o substance_n of_o wine_n which_o the_o sacramentary_n imagine_v to_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o this_o blood_n and_o so_o consââ¦_n the_o word_n this_o be_v the_o sigue_n of_o my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o their_o interpretation_n be_v prove_v false_a by_o confer_v the_o old_a testament_n with_o the_o new_a for_o as_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v none_o other_o thing_n to_o signify_v the_o blood_n thereof_o beside_o yâ_z self_n same_o blood_n of_o the_o calf_n which_o be_v shed_v to_o confirm_v the_o old_a covenant_n so_o ãâã_d much_o more_o the_o new_a testament_n must_v have_v noââ¦e_v other_o thing_n to_o signify_v the_o blood_n thereof_o beside_o the_o self_n same_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v shed_v to_o confirm_v the_o new_a law_n for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o perfection_n not_o only_o to_o have_v the_o truââ¦e_n and_o law_n confirm_v by_o blood_n but_o also_o to_o have_v the_o confirmation_n thereof_o witness_v by_o sprinkle_v yâ_z blood_n which_o be_v shed_v upon_o the_o people_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o the_o old_a law_n shall_v in_o that_o point_n pass_v the_o new_a for_o as_o s._n chrysostom_n 13._o say_v the_o figure_n neither_o be_v clean_o different_a from_o the_o truth_n &_o yet_o if_o it_o keep_v the_o condition_n of_o a_o shadow_n minor_fw-la erat_fw-la veritate_fw-la it_o be_v less_o than_o the_o truth_n and_o yet_o the_o basin_n of_o calf_n blood_n be_v more_o than_o the_o truth_n if_o the_o substance_n of_o common_a wine_n be_v set_v to_o show_v that_o the_o new_a truse_a be_v confirm_v again_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n luke_n so_o evident_o expound_v these_o very_a word_n by_o recite_v they_o otherwise_o that_o no_o reasonable_a man_n conââ¦ing_v the_o word_n together_o will_v say_v that_o in_o these_o word_n blood_n may_v stand_v for_o a_o figure_n of_o blood_n they_o write_v thus_o hic_fw-la calix_fw-la nowm_fw-la testamentum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o meo_fw-la sanguine_fw-la this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n but_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o in_o the_o figure_n of_o christ_n blood_n but_o in_o his_o true_a blood_n therefore_o the_o name_n of_o blood_n which_o christ_n use_v in_o consecrate_v the_o liquor_n in_o the_o chalice_n be_v not_o use_v figurative_o for_o the_o same_o blood_n whereof_o s._n matthew_n &_o s._n mark_n do_v speak_v blood_n be_v also_o mean_v of_o s._n luke_n and_o
of_o s._n paul_n but_o as_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n luke_n take_v the_o noun_n blood_n it_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v take_v figurative_o âª_o except_o any_o man_n will_v be_v so_o desperate_a as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o ââ¦w_a promise_n and_o law_n of_o christ_n be_v establish_v in_o a_o figure_n of_o blood_n or_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o common_a wine_n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o we_o be_v in_o worse_a case_n than_o the_o patriarââ¦hes_n and_o jew_n who_o at_o the_o least_o have_v true_a blood_n to_o confirm_v their_o temporal_a truse_n testament_n and_o promise_n as_o it_o may_v be_v seââ¦e_o both_o 9_o in_o genesis_n &_o exodus_fw-la although_o it_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o beast_n &_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o heaveuly_a thing_n themselves_o be_v cleanse_v with_o better_a sacrifice_n say_v s._n paul_n if_o then_o the_o name_n of_o blood_n be_v put_v in_o these_o word_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n be_v take_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n blood_n which_o be_v that_o better_a sacrifice_n whereof_o s._n paul_n speak_v without_o all_o question_n in_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o stond_v likewise_o for_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n blood_n it_o be_v one_o supper_n one_o sacrament_n one_o part_n of_o the_o supper_n and_o one_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yea_o one self_o same_o thing_n whereof_o all_o four_o do_v speak_v if_o new_a do_v answer_v to_o new_a testament_n to_o testament_n this_o to_o this_o be_v to_o be_v how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o blood_n shall_v not_o answer_v to_o blood_n but_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n can_v not_o be_v mean_v in_o yâ_z figure_n of_o my_o blood_n lest_o yâ_z sign_n of_o blood_n and_o not_o the_o truth_n thereof_o be_v that_o which_o establish_v the_o new_a truse_a therefore_o in_o these_o word_n this_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o noun_n blood_n stand_v not_o for_o a_o figure_n and_o sign_n of_o blood_n but_o for_o the_o real_a substance_n thereof_o ¶_o the_o twenty-five_o circumstance_n of_o these_o word_n this_o cup_n or_o chalice_n as_o every_o apostle_n or_o evangelist_n write_v late_a than_o other_o so_o 11_o he_o make_v the_o supper_n of_o christ_n more_o plain_a geve_v we_o evident_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n be_v so_o far_o of_o from_o figurative_a speech_n that_o rather_o the_o propriety_n of_o they_o be_v by_o all_o mean_v fortify_v i_o have_v show_v before_o how_o the_o name_n of_o cup_n or_o chalice_n do_v not_o hinder_v any_o whit_n why_o all_o yâ_z rest_n of_o christ_n word_n may_v not_o be_v proper_a and_o literal_o true_a but_o name_v now_o i_o affirm_v also_o that_o it_o increase_v much_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o pro_fw-la prietie_n why_o so_o because_o the_o cup_n be_v name_v to_o show_v the_o manner_n of_o fulfil_n of_o the_o old_a figure_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o ox_n be_v put_v in_o crateras_fw-la 24_o into_o great_a cup_n or_o basin_n and_o so_o the_o people_n be_v sprinkle_v therewithal_o now_o to_o bring_v the_o apostle_n and_o all_o we_o in_o mind_n thereof_o christ_n name_v the_o cup_n or_o chalice_n declare_v thereby_o that_o his_o own_o blood_n be_v now_o to_o we_o as_o the_o blood_n of_o ox_n be_v to_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n his_o in_o the_o chalice_n as_o the_o blood_n of_o ox_n be_v in_o the_o basiââ¦s_n his_o present_o drink_v as_o that_o other_o be_v present_o co._n sprinkle_v erat_fw-la autem_fw-la veteris_fw-la testamenti_fw-la calix_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la there_o be_v a_o cup_n or_o chalice_n say_v s._n chrysostom_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o brute_n beast_n for_o after_o sacrifice_v the_o blood_n be_v take_v in_o a_o chalice_n and_o cup_n they_o make_v after_o that_o sort_n libation_n or_o offering_n of_o that_o which_o be_v liquid_a and_o ren_a cum_fw-la igitur_fw-la pro_fw-la sanguine_fw-la brutorum_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la suum_fw-la induxisset_fw-la ne_fw-la quis_fw-la his_fw-la auditis_fw-la perturbaretur_fw-la illius_fw-la veteris_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la meminit_fw-la see_v therefore_o he_o have_v bring_v in_o his_o own_o blood_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o brute_n beast_n lest_o any_o man_n hear_v of_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v trouble_v he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o old_a sacrifice_n decumenius_n also_o 11._o write_v thus_o concern_v the_o name_n of_o the_o chalice_n or_o cup_n pro_fw-la sanguine_fw-la irrationalium_fw-la dominus_fw-la proprium_fw-la that_fw-mi sanguinem_fw-la et_fw-la bene_fw-la in_o poculo_fw-la ut_fw-la ostendat_fw-la vetus_fw-la testamentum_fw-la anteà _fw-la hoc_fw-la delineasse_n our_o lord_n geve_v his_o own_o blood_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o unreasonable_a creature_n and_o he_o do_v well_o to_o geve_v it_o in_o a_o cup_n to_o show_v that_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v shadow_v this_o thing_n before_o behold_v why_o the_o cup_n be_v mention_v uery_o to_o show_v christ_n blood_n to_o be_v as_o real_o in_o the_o cup_n of_o his_o own_o supper_n as_o ever_o the_o bruââ¦e_a beast_n blood_n be_v in_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n yea_o much_o more_o also_o for_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o ox_n be_v real_o put_v into_o that_o old_a cup_n to_o show_v that_o christ_n blood_n shall_v be_v real_o present_a in_o the_o cup_n of_o his_o supper_n the_o old_a blood_n do_v not_o show_v that_o wine_n shall_v be_v in_o christ_n cup_n for_o that_o have_v be_v less_o than_o the_o old_a testament_n itself_o because_o the_o blood_n of_o ox_n be_v better_a than_o wine_n of_o the_o grape_n but_o that_o blood_n in_o the_o basin_z do_v signify_v that_o christ_n blood_n shall_v chalice_n be_v in_o our_o chalice_n not_o only_o as_o in_o a_o figure_n for_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o basin_n also_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o even_o in_o very_a deed_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n it_o be_v not_o now_o sufficient_a to_o say_v we_o drink_v christ_n blood_n in_o hart_n or_o by_o faith_n it_o must_v be_v drunken_a real_o out_o of_o the_o chalice_n and_o cup_n of_o christ_n supper_n thence_o the_o hart_n must_v take_v it_o at_o christ_n supper_n thence_o it_o must_v be_v receive_v both_o in_o faith_n and_o truth_n ¶_o the_o xxvi_o circumstance_n of_o the_o verb_n est_fw-fr leave_v out_o in_o s._n luke_n word_n it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o writer_n in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n to_o leave_v out_o many_o time_n the_o verb_n sum_n es_fw-la fui_fw-la which_o be_v latin_a to_o be_v and_o out_o that_o because_o common_a sense_n and_o use_n do_v easy_o teach_v we_o to_o supply_v that_o verb_n as_o be_v both_o most_o necessary_a of_o all_o other_o and_o most_o frequent_a in_o common_a speech_n s._n luke_n write_v thus_o this_o cuââ¦_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n shed_v for_o you_o this_o sentence_n be_v imperfect_a for_o lack_v of_o a_o verb_n which_o may_v knit_v the_o part_n thereof_o together_o i_o ask_v what_o verb_n we_o shall_v understand_v to_o make_v it_o perfect_a the_o sacramontary_n say_v that_o christ_n mean_v this_o cup_n do_v signify_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o dead_a blood_n will_v you_o then_o understand_v the_o verb_n significat_fw-la do_v signify_v if_o you_o do_v so_o i_o will_v show_v that_o as_o well_o the_o noun_n cup_n as_z ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d testamentum_fw-la be_v both_o put_v in_o the_o nominative_a case_n but_o if_o s._n luke_n have_v mean_v to_o understand_v the_o verb_n significat_fw-la he_o will_v have_v put_v one_o of_o they_o in_o the_o accusative_a case_n if_o you_o supply_v the_o verb_n est_fw-fr be_v to_o make_v the_o sentence_n perfect_a that_o supply_v verb_n must_v needs_o be_v take_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n wherein_o it_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v supply_v but_o it_o be_v common_o supply_v as_o a_o common_a verb_n who_o nature_n be_v to_o declare_v the_o substance_n and_o not_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o therefore_o so_o it_o must_v be_v take_v at_o this_o tyme._n otherwise_o what_o a_o folly_n be_v it_o when_o a_o verb_n be_v at_o the_o first_z leave_v out_o to_o call_v it_o of_o purpose_n into_o the_o speech_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v place_v there_o to_o say_v it_o stand_v not_o proper_o but_o to_o remove_v it_o again_o &_o put_v a_o other_o verb_n for_o it_o what_o be_v the_o verb_n est_fw-fr be_v once_o leave_v out_o bring_v in_o for_o this_o intent_n only_o yâ_z as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o place_n it_o shall_v be_v immediate_o cast_v out_o &_o change_v into_o the_o verb_n significat_fw-la if_o you_o say_v you_o be_v compel_v to_o call_v it_o in_o i_o agree_v with_o you_o and_o word_n say_v further_o you_o be_v
similitude_n which_o full_o do_v open_v his_o mind_n s._n cyrillus_n express_o affirm_v rill_n christ_n to_o be_v in_o we_o and_o we_o to_o be_v in_o he_o by_o the_o communicate_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n even_o after_o that_o sort_n as_o if_o a_o man_n take_v wax_n which_o be_v melt_v by_o the_o fire_n do_v so_o mingle_v it_o with_o other_o melt_a wax_n that_o one_o manner_n of_o thing_n seem_v to_o be_v make_v of_o both_o how_o think_v you_o m._n nowell_n be_v one_o wax_n mingle_v with_o a_o other_o by_o faith_n and_o spirit_n alone_o or_o be_v it_o mingle_v by_o sign_n and_o token_n ãâã_d the_o one_o part_n without_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o both_o wax_n what_o wicked_a man_n be_v you_o who_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v yâ_z s._n cyrill_n do_v not_o mean_v the_o real_a substance_n of_o christ_n flesh_n to_o be_v real_o and_o corporal_o in_o we_o by_o communicate_v his_o body_n &_o blood_n if_o you_o believe_v he_o not_o why_o do_v you_o not_o deny_v his_o authority_n if_o you_o believe_v his_o doctrine_n why_o teach_v you_o not_o the_o same_o these_o be_v cyrill_n the_o point_n m._n nowell_n which_o you_o must_v aââ¦swer_v unto_o for_o every_o word_n that_o follow_v be_v in_o s._n cyrill_n even_o in_o that_o place_n where_o he_o dispute_v of_o the_o true_a vine_n though_o not_o in_o such_o order_n as_o i_o now_o put_v they_o which_o thing_n i_o do_v to_o make_v his_o whole_a mind_n appear_v at_o once_o thus_o he_o say_v *_o 1._o the_o mystical_a blessing_n or_o the_o communicate_v of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n âª_o *_o 2._o make_v *_o 3._o christ_n or_o the_o life_n or_o the_o flesh_n of_o life_n *_o 4._o to_o be_v or_o to_o be_v make_v or_o to_o be_v join_v or_o to_o dwell_v *_o 5._o in_o we_o or_o with_o we_o and_o we_o to_o have_v it_o in_o ourselves_o or_o in_o our_o body_n *_o 6._o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n or_o corporal_o *_o 7._o and_o not_o only_o by_o habit_n or_o power_n or_o by_o ââ¦aith_o or_o charity_n or_o spiritual_o *_o 8._o but_o also_o by_o natural_a partake_n *_o 9_o even_o so_o as_o one_o melt_v wax_n be_v mingle_v to_o a_o other_o melt_v wax_n and_o in_o manner_n make_v one_o therewith_o *_o 10._o by_o this_o mean_n we_o be_v both_o corporal_o and_o spiritual_o branch_n of_o christ_n flesh_n which_o be_v also_o the_o true_a vine_n see_v now_o m._n nowell_n how_o yâ_z parable_n of_o the_o true_a vine_n right_o expound_v make_v altogether_o for_o our_o purpose_n as_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a vine_n according_a to_o his_o flesh_n so_o be_v we_o the_o branch_n according_a vine_n to_o his_o flesh_n he_o be_v the_o vine_n by_o have_v his_o flesh_n real_o present_a and_o unite_a to_o himself_o therefore_o we_o be_v the_o branch_n by_o che_v have_v the_o same_o flesh_n real_o present_a in_o we_o and_o by_o be_v real_o unite_v unto_o it_o as_o the_o branch_n be_v unite_v to_o his_o root_n as_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a vine_n two_o way_n by_o his_o godhead_n and_o by_o his_o manhood_n so_o a_o man_n may_v two_o way_n live_v by_o christ_n by_o partake_v of_o his_o godhead_n and_o manhood_n by_o habit_n only_o if_o he_o have_v a_o good_a faith_n and_o by_o partake_v his_o manhood_n corporal_o also_o if_o he_o receive_v worthy_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n but_o that_o sacrament_n can_v no_o more_o make_v we_o be_v branch_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n than_o our_o faith_n and_o charity_n do_v make_v we_o to_o be_v branch_n thereof_o except_o it_o have_v his_o flesh_n real_o present_a for_o otherwise_o our_o faith_n itself_o be_v a_o better_a means_n to_o graââ¦_n we_o into_o christ_n than_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v because_o it_o be_v a_o join_n of_o we_o to_o god_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n but_o the_o mystical_a blessing_n in_o s._n cyril_n be_v make_v the_o mean_a to_o join_v we_o to_o god_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n than_o faith_n or_o charity_n therefore_o s._n cyrill_n and_o all_o the_o father_n before_o he_o who_o mind_n he_o profess_v himself_o to_o follow_v beleve_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n flesh_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o that_o by_o the_o way_n of_o turn_v the_o bread_n into_o his_o flesh_n for_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v real_o present_a to_o dwell_v corporal_o with_o we_o and_o in_o our_o body_n except_o it_o be_v corporal_o receive_v of_o us._n and_o other_o way_n how_o to_o receive_v it_o corporal_o i_o see_v not_o except_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o it_o thus_o you_o see_v what_o advantage_n i_o be_o the_o true_a vine_n do_v bring_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o no_o hindrance_n in_o the_o world_n can_v be_v thence_o deduce_v against_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n m._n nowell_n ¶_o nay_o if_o christ_n have_v say_v likewise_o this_o be_v my_o true_a &_o very_a body_n as_o he_o say_v i_o be_o a_o true_a or_o very_a vine_n what_o a_o rule_n have_v we_o then_o have_v i_o marvel_v if_o m._n nowell_n think_v more_o strength_n to_o be_v in_o these_o answer_n word_n my_o true_a or_o very_a body_n they_o in_o these_o my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o as_o though_o yâ_z true_a &_o very_a body_n be_v not_o give_v for_o us._n but_o if_o the_o true_a body_n be_v give_v for_o we_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o say_v also_o this_o be_v my_o true_a and_o very_a body_n and_o therein_o m._n nowell_n shall_v have_v a_o rule_n to_o know_v that_o christ_n speak_v not_o metaphorical_o for_o the_o relative_a quod_fw-la which_o can_v not_o agree_v with_o any_o other_o word_n then_o with_o the_o noun_n substantive_a corpus_fw-la body_n which_o noun_n corpus_fw-la body_n if_o it_o stand_v unproperlie_o the_o relative_a must_v needs_o repete_fw-la it_o so_o as_o it_o stand_v and_o then_o if_o this_o be_v the_o sigure_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o be_v give_v at_o his_o supper_n the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n be_v give_v for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n i_o confess_v m._n nowell_n i_o can_v be_v content_a to_o go_v to_o school_n &_o to_o ââ¦rne_v of_o so_o ancient_a a_o schoolmaster_n as_o you_o be_v how_o a_o word_n which_o be_v but_o once_o name_v as_o yâ_z noun_n corpus_fw-la body_n in_o christ_n supper_n may_v be_v antecedent_n to_o the_o relative_a quod_fw-la which_o as_o the_o latin_n read_v or_o noun_n substantive_a to_o the_o participle_n datum_fw-la give_v as_o the_o greek_n read_v and_o yet_o be_v otherwise_o mean_v in_o his_o relative_a and_o participle_n than_o it_o be_v be_v the_o antecedent_n or_o the_o noun_n substantive_a christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n give_v for_o you_o will_v you_o divide_v the_o participle_n give_v from_o his_o noun_n substantive_a body_n if_o you_o will_v not_o as_o the_o body_n give_v for_o we_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n so_o this_o be_v the_o self_n same_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o the_o apostle_n be_v command_v to_o take_v to_o eat_v and_o to_o make_v in_o that_o you_o turn_v the_o word_n vitis_fw-la vera_fw-la not_o only_o a_o true_a but_o also_o a_o very_a vine_n you_o be_v much_o deceive_v the_o word_n vera_fw-la be_v not_o now_o to_o be_v press_v as_o if_o it_o be_v set_v to_o signify_v a_o natural_a vine_n where_o unto_o your_o word_n run_v but_o to_o signify_v a_o perfect_a vine_n in_o respect_n of_o a_o imperfect_a for_o so_o we_o say_v he_o be_v a_o true_a man_n mean_v a_o truth_n in_o his_o word_n and_o dede_n but_o not_o in_o nature_n for_o a_o liar_n and_o falsifier_n be_v also_o a_o true_a man_n in_o nature_n even_o so_o christ_n mean_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o most_o true_a and_o perfect_a vine_n concern_v the_o sweet_a fruit_n which_o a_o vine_n ought_v to_o bring_v forth_o and_o to_o communicate_v unto_o his_o branch_n for_o the_o jew_n be_v a_o vine_n well_o plant_v by_o god_n become_v through_o sin_n a_o ââ¦oure_n vine_n and_o bring_v forth_o none_o other_o but_o wild_a grape_n but_o christ_n be_v a_o true_a a_o perfect_a a_o most_o excellent_a vine_n which_o bring_v forth_o sweet_a grape_n in_o his_o faithful_a member_n of_o yâ_z church_n thus_o do_v s._n augustine_n expound_v yâ_z word_n vera_fw-la true_a ann_n say_v that_o when_o christ_n call_v himself_o a_o true_a vine_n he_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o himself_o and_o that_o vine_n to_o which_o it_o be_v say_v 5._o how_o be_v thou_o turn_v into_o the_o bitterness_n of_o a_o strange_a vine_n euthymius_n declare_v the_o greek_a word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o signify_v 15._o either_o a_o excellent_a a_o incorruptible_a a_o spiritual_a
join_v together_o in_o the_o top_n itself_o which_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ._n for_o they_o that_o be_v one_o mystical_a house_n by_o faith_n and_o charity_n alone_o they_o be_v one_o in_o the_o fundation_n through_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o not_o yet_o one_o in_o the_o top_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o that_o fundation_n will_v 6._o not_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v a_o perfect_a house_n if_o some_o stone_n be_v raise_v thereon_o do_v not_o at_o the_o length_n meet_v real_o together_o in_o the_o top_n of_o 4._o the_o building_n which_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n through_o the_o connexion_n of_o which_o stone_n those_o also_o which_o lie_v in_o the_o low_a place_n may_v be_v say_v to_o mete_v in_o the_o top_n for_o that_o they_o be_v necessary_a and_o substancial_a part_n of_o that_o house_n which_o be_v build_v from_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o ground_n up_o to_o the_o very_o high_a top_n faith_n be_v the_o fundation_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v 11._o hope_v for_o baptism_n go_v near_o the_o top_n because_o beside_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n it_o partake_v some_o other_o grace_n procede_v not_o only_a from_o chrysos_fw-la the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o from_o his_o flesh_n in_o that_o the_o water_n according_a rom._n to_o the_o mind_n of_o s._n chrysostom_n &_o of_o leo_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o womb_n wherein_o and_o the_o word_n be_v the_o seed_n wherewith_o man_n nativit_fw-la be_v regenerate_v as_o well_o in_o body_n as_o in_o soul_n confirmation_n geve_v strength_n to_o the_o new_a building_n wherein_o the_o stone_n be_v as_o it_o be_v 4_o with_o strong_a bar_n of_o iron_n hold_v together_o 8._o but_o when_o christ_n geve_v himself_o to_o we_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n then_o be_v we_o come_v to_o the_o top_n of_o the_o building_n and_o be_v join_v real_o to_o he_o that_o be_v yâ_z end_n of_o the_o law_n for_o which_o cause_n this_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n be_v call_v of_o the_o grecian_n cone_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d perfectio_fw-la the_o end_n or_o perfitenes_n of_o our_o heavenly_a 6._o building_n this_o flesh_n be_v also_o in_o the_o fundation_n but_o by_o spiritual_a efficacy_n not_o by_o real_a union_n it_o be_v in_o baptism_n by_o the_o use_n of_o corporal_a instrument_n of_o water_n and_o the_o word_n and_o so_o by_o spiritual_a efficacy_n and_o also_o by_o mean_a of_o bodily_a instrument_n procede_v from_o the_o flesh_n by_o that_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n which_o he_o constitute_v 3._o in_o his_o body_n and_o sanctify_v the_o element_n thereof_o with_o his_o body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o perfection_n this_o flesh_n itself_o be_v present_a to_o flesh_n make_v a_o most_o perfect_a end_n of_o the_o whole_a spiritual_a building_n thus_o be_v the_o baptize_v christian_n build_v upon_o yâ_z faith_n of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o prophet_n and_o the_o faithful_a who_o receive_v christ_n body_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n be_v build_v in_o a_o high_a degree_n above_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o father_n and_o above_o the_o baptism_n of_o those_o who_o die_v before_o they_o partake_v sacramental_o christ_n flesh_n and_o see_v all_o these_o concur_v to_o make_v up_o one_o house_n the_o top_n whereof_o may_v touch_v christ_n natural_a body_n which_o he_o take_v to_o make_v the_o real_a coniââ¦nction_n with_o we_o who_o consist_v of_o body_n all_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v perfect_o one_o through_o they_o who_o be_v one_o with_o the_o rest_n in_o faith_n spirit_n and_o baptism_n be_v also_o one_o with_o christ_n flesh_n in_o truth_n of_o natural_a and_o corporal_a union_n to_o christ_n flesh_n real_o partake_v at_o his_o holy_a table_n let_v we_o once_o deny_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v real_o in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o here_o be_v no_o perfect_a build_n towards_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o no_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v be_v 5._o call_v his_o mystical_a body_n or_o flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n for_o as_o if_o eve_n have_v not_o be_v take_v real_o out_o of_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o adam_n she_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v in_o truth_n bone_n of_o his_o bone_n so_o we_o be_v not_o flesh_n of_o christ_n flesh_n in_o truth_n itself_o except_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o natural_a substance_n thereof_o be_v the_o mean_a by_o our_o natural_a coââ¦ction_n to_o it_o that_o we_o be_v frame_v &_o wrought_v into_o a_o spiritual_a man_n these_o last_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n where_o he_o touch_v how_o we_o be_v 5._o ââ¦esh_a of_o christ_n flesh_n do_v also_o lead_v we_o to_o a_o other_o notable_a example_n of_o our_o natural_a union_n which_o be_v to_o be_v make_v to_o that_o flesh_n of_o christ._n for_o when_o s_n paul_n have_v say_v that_o the_o husband_n be_v head_n of_o the_o woman_n as_o christ_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o provoke_v the_o husband_n to_o love_v their_o wife_n as_o christ_n have_v love_v his_o church_n who_o have_v love_v it_o so_o entire_o that_o he_o have_v cleanse_v it_o in_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n and_o the_o word_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v make_v himself_o a_o gloriouse_a church_n without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n behold_v baptism_n be_v a_o token_n of_o christ_n love_n but_o to_o what_o end_n that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o clean_a spouse_n to_o what_o purpose_n will_v he_o then_o come_v never_o to_o his_o wife_n and_o as_o it_o be_v be_v clouple_v with_o she_o yea_o very_o not_o for_o any_o fleshly_a pleasure_n but_o to_o nourish_v she_o by_o his_o real_a flesh_n and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n go_v forward_o say_v husband_n ought_v to_o love_v their_o wife_n as_o their_o own_o body_n he_o that_o love_v his_o wife_n love_v himself_o and_o sure_o noman_n ever_o hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n but_o he_o nourish_v and_o cherish_v it_o as_o christ_n do_v his_o church_n what_o mean_v you_o s._n paul_n be_v then_o the_o church_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n for_o your_o word_n import_v so_o much_o he_o answer_v it_o be_v so_o for_o we_o be_v member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o man_n shall_v forsake_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o shall_v be_v join_v to_o his_o own_o wife_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v two_a in_o one_o flesh_n this_o 2._o be_v a_o great_a sacrament_n or_o mystery_n but_o i_o mean_v in_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n hitherto_o s._n paul_n have_v provoke_v the_o husband_n to_o love_v and_o to_o cherish_v their_o wife_n as_o christ_n have_v love_v his_o church_n in_o cleanse_v it_o through_o baptism_n and_o as_o he_o cherish_v it_o as_o be_v member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n note_v that_o as_o the_o love_n of_o husband_n towards_o their_o wife_n be_v compare_v to_o baptisââ¦_n so_o the_o cherish_n of_o they_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o cherish_n &_o nourish_v which_o christ_n use_v towards_o his_o churââ¦_n âª_o which_o be_v know_v to_o be_v do_v after_o baptism_n for_o no_o man_n cherish_v that_o which_o be_v not_o yet_o bear_v when_o we_o be_v bear_v again_o in_o christ_n we_o be_v make_v member_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o therefore_o those_o word_n membra_fw-la sumus_fw-la corporis_fw-la eius_fw-la we_o be_v member_n of_o his_o body_n may_v be_v mean_v of_o baptism_n âª_o where_o we_o be_v make_v member_n of_o his_o my_o stical_a body_n according_a as_o s._n paul_n have_v say_v before_o sumus_fw-la inu_fw-la icem_fw-la membra_fw-la we_o be_v member_n 4._o one_o of_o a_o other_o but_o when_o he_o add_v de_fw-la carne_fw-la eius_fw-la &_o de_fw-la ossibus_fw-la eius_fw-la of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n he_o than_o speak_v not_o of_o any_o mystical_a flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o even_o of_o the_o natural_a flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o christ_n whereof_o we_o be_v make_v member_n not_o by_o faith_n and_o mystery_n alone_o as_o in_o baptism_n but_o by_o natural_a participation_n of_o they_o in_o the_o last_o supper_n so_o do_v s._n ireneus_fw-la take_v these_o word_n for_o s._n paul_n speak_v 24._o not_o say_v he_o of_o any_o spiritual_a or_o invisible_a man_n since_o a_o spirit_n have_v neither_o bone_n nor_o flesh_n but_o of_o that_o disposition_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o man_n the_o which_o consist_v of_o flesh_n of_o sinew_n of_o bone_n the_o which_o disposition_n be_v nourish_v of_o the_o chalice_n which_o be_v his_o blood_n and_o be_v increase_v of_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v his_o body_n so_o do_v s._n chrysostome_n also_o take_v these_o word_n say_v we_o be_v joan._n member_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n and_o again_o he_o have_v mingle_v himself_o with_o we_o and_o bring_v himself_o into_o
speak_v in_o a_o other_o place_n of_o the_o same_o 120._o matter_n suprà _fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la edent_fw-la pauperes_fw-la &_o saturabuntur_fw-la hîc_fw-la verò_fw-la 27_o manducaverunt_fw-la &_o adoraverunt_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la it_o be_v say_v before_o the_o poor_a shall_v eat_v and_o shall_v be_v fill_v but_o here_o it_o be_v say_v all_o the_o scotfree_a christ._n of_o the_o earth_n have_v eat_v &_o have_v adore_v for_o they_o also_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o table_n of_o christ._n and_o they_o take_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o adoration_n they_o adore_v only_o and_o be_v not_o fill_v also_o because_o they_o follow_v not_o for_o although_o they_o eat_v christ_n the_o poor_a man_n yet_o they_o disdain_v to_o be_v poor_a and_o again_o quia_fw-la deus_fw-la excitavit_fw-la eum_fw-la a_o mortuis_fw-la etc._n etc._n because_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o have_v give_v he_o a_o name_n the_o which_o be_v above_o every_o name_n that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n shall_v be_v bow_v of_o heavenly_a earthly_a and_o of_o adore_v thing_n under_o the_o earth_n they_z also_o move_v with_o the_o fame_n of_o his_o highness_n and_o with_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n which_o glory_n be_v spread_v round_o about_o in_o the_o church_n they_o come_v themselves_o to_o the_o table_n they_o eat_v and_o adore_v but_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o fill_v because_o they_o do_v not_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n righteousness_n hitherto_o s._n augustine_n who_o speak_v of_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o table_n the_o scotfree_a man_n come_v to_o the_o table_n of_o christ_n thence_o to_o eat_v his_o adore_v body_n there_o also_o they_o adore_v that_o which_o they_o take_v from_o the_o table_n and_o that_o which_o they_o eat_v and_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a but_o that_o this_o worship_v and_o adore_v whereof_o s._n augustine_n speak_v must_v belong_v to_o the_o table_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v eat_v from_o his_o table_n when_o the_o priest_n geve_v it_o to_o we_o and_o yet_o it_o may_v not_o there_o be_v right_o adore_v if_o it_o be_v not_o reaââ¦ly_o present_a upon_o the_o table_n and_o there_o it_o can_v not_o be_v present_a unless_o it_o ve_fw-la under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o only_o stand_v upon_o the_o table_n therefore_o this_o prophecy_n as_o well_o prove_v the_o adoration_n as_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a blindness_n in_o our_o new_a preacher_n that_o whereas_o the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v even_o the_o scotfree_a of_o the_o earth_n have_v eat_v and_o have_v adore_v or_o shall_v eat_v and_o shall_v adore_v for_o so_o one_o tense_n do_v stand_v for_o a_o other_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o they_o will_v have_v you_o eat_v and_o not_o adore_v to_o the_o intent_n you_o shall_v be_v more_o unkind_a thââ¦n_o those_o earthly_a scotfree_a man_n be_v ¶_o the_o adoration_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v prove_v again_o chapter_n out_o of_o the_o prophet_n david_n the_o prophet_n david_n speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o exercise_v upon_o the_o cross_n by_o conquer_a the_o devil_n 98_o and_o sin_n require_v we_o to_o go_v praise_n to_o he_o for_o it_o and_o not_o only_o to_o he_o but_o even_o to_o his_o footestole_n write_v thus_o exaltate_fw-la dominum_fw-la deum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la &_o adorate_fw-la scabellum_fw-la pedum_fw-la eius_fw-la quoniam_fw-la sanctum_fw-la est_fw-la exalte_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n and_o worship_v his_o footestole_n because_o it_o be_v holy_a the_o hebrew_n read_v because_o he_o be_v holy_a it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o christ_n in_o one_o person_n have_v two_o nature_n to_o wit_n the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o yâ_z nature_n of_o man_n david_n will_v both_o to_o be_v adore_v and_o first_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o godhead_n union_n say_v exalte_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n next_o after_o of_o his_o humane_a nature_n in_o those_o word_n adorate_fw-la scabellum_fw-la pedum_fw-la eius_fw-la worship_v his_o footestole_n for_o godly_a honour_n be_v due_a to_o his_o flesh_n also_o because_o he_o be_v holy_a that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o his_o person_n be_v the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n where_o unto_o the_o manhood_n be_v unite_v and_o through_o that_o union_n the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v worthy_a of_o godly_a honour_n the_o jew_n account_v the_o footestole_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o ark_n fotestole_n and_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n towards_o which_o they_o bow_v and_o adore_a god_n in_o their_o time_n of_o prayer_n but_o aswell_o the_o ark_n as_o the_o ark_n temple_n be_v the_o shadow_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o that_o not_o only_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a form_n of_o man_n but_o even_o as_o he_o be_v mystical_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n for_o the_o ark_n do_v foreshadow_v the_o 6._o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n as_o angelomus_n have_v note_v sacerdos_n qui_fw-la arcam_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la the_o priest_n oza_n who_o touch_v that_o ark_n with_o unaduised_a rashness_n purge_v the_o fault_n of_o his_o bold_a enterprise_n with_o death_n before_o his_o time_n wherein_o we_o must_v needs_o consider_v how_o much_o he_o syn_v body_n who_o come_v guilty_a to_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n see_v that_o devout_a priest_n be_v punish_v with_o death_n who_o with_o less_o reverence_n than_o he_o ought_v hasty_o handle_v that_o ark_n which_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n again_o the_o ark_n contain_v manna_n in_o it_o which_o be_v a_o express_a figure_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o respect_n as_o it_o be_v to_o 9_o 6._o be_v eat_v of_o we_o as_o both_o christ_n himself_o have_v declare_v in_o s._n john_n 19_o and_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n likewise_o the_o temple_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n according_a 10._o as_o himself_o say_v dissolve_v you_o this_o temple_n of_o my_o body_n and_o temple_n and_z in_o three_o day_n i_o will_v raise_v it_o up_o again_o the_o ark_n therefore_o and_o 2._o the_o temple_n be_v the_o footestole_n of_o god_n towards_o which_o yâ_z jew_o pray_v do_v signify_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v adore_v not_o only_o in_o heaven_n whether_o christ_n be_v enter_v as_o into_o the_o everlasting_a 9_o ãâã_d and_o most_o holy_a of_o holies_n but_o also_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v the_o ark_n temple_n and_o ââ¦essell_n contain_v the_o self_n same_o substance_n of_o manna_n which_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o holy_a prophet_n david_n require_v we_o to_o adore_v the_o footestole_n of_o god_n require_v we_o to_o adore_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o in_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n as_o in_o heaven_n itself_o because_o he_o that_o have_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n say_v also_o in_o his_o last_o supper_n take_v and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n do_v and_o make_v 22._o this_o thing_n for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o i_o neither_o do_v i_o make_v or_o first_o invent_v such_o interpretation_n but_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n leave_v it_o unto_o i_o save_v that_o they_o expound_v yâ_z footestole_n to_o be_v not_o only_o the_o ark_n and_o temple_n of_o ââ¦ierusalem_fw-la but_o ãâã_d also_o the_o whole_a ââ¦arth_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o godhead_n because_o esate_n say_v heaven_n be_v my_o seat_n the_o ââ¦arth_n be_v the_o settle_v of_o my_o foot_n but_o 66._o herein_o we_o may_v rest_v in_o s._n hieromes_n authority_n who_o upon_o this_o place_n write_v thus_o multae_fw-la de_fw-la scabello_fw-la opiniones_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la there_o be_v many_o opinion_n 98._o concern_v the_o ââ¦orestole_n what_o it_o shall_v be_v but_o here_o the_o prophet_n mean_v our_o lord_n body_n wherein_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o ãâã_d divine_a nature_n stand_v as_o it_o be_v on_o a_o ãâã_d how_o so_o ever_o then_o we_o interpret_v the_o fotestole_n concern_v the_o literal_a and_o firsââ¦_n meaning_n yet_o the_o natural_a flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o assumpt_v of_o the_o virgin_n be_v the_o spiritual_a truth_n whereunto_o the_o prophet_n direct_v his_o word_n that_o flesh_n where_o so_o ever_o it_o be_v be_v the_o fotestole_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v every_o where_o to_o be_v adore_v but_o as_o the_o arcke_n deserve_v a_o special_a reverence_n among_o the_o jew_n although_o it_o be_v the_o bare_a figure_n of_o christ_n flesh_n in_o so_o much_o that_o oza_n who_o touch_v it_o rash_o die_v for_o it_o even_o so_o the_o sacrament_n 6_o of_o the_o altar_n which_o
be_v both_o the_o truth_n aââ¦d_v the_o figure_n of_o christ_n visible_a body_n must_v by_o the_o force_n of_o this_o propheââ¦y_n be_v adore_v 13_o among_o all_o faithful_a christian_n therefore_o s._n ambrose_n dispute_v of_o this_o fotestole_n say_v per_fw-la scabellum_fw-la terra_fw-la intelligitur_fw-la per_fw-la terram_fw-la autem_fw-la caro_fw-la christi_fw-la quam_fw-la hodieque_fw-la in_o mysterijs_fw-la adoramus_fw-la by_o the_o fotestole_n the_o earth_n be_v fotestole_n by_o the_o earth_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o this_o day_n also_o we_o adore_v in_o the_o mystery_n mystery_n when_o he_o say_v we_o adore_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n even_o at_o his_o day_n in_o the_o mystery_n what_o other_o thing_n say_v he_o then_o we_o adore_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n at_o mass_n or_o in_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n or_o upon_o the_o altar_n or_o upon_o the_o holy_a table_n for_o all_o these_o name_n meanââ¦_n that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v worship_v after_o consecration_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n s._n augustine_n likewise_o consider_v that_o david_n will_v we_o to_o adore_v 98._o the_o footestole_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o that_o ãâã_d say_v in_o the_o person_n of_o 66._o god_n heaven_n be_v to_o i_o a_o seat_n the_o earth_n be_v my_o footestole_n &_o doubt_v how_o we_o that_o profess_v to_o adore_v one_o god_n may_v worship_v earth_n find_v at_o the_o last_o that_o christ_n take_v earth_n of_o earth_n to_o wit_n flesh_n of_o the_o walk_v virgin_n flesh_n and_o because_o christ_n walk_v in_o the_o very_a same_o flesh_n here_o and_o give_v we_o the_o very_a same_o flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v to_o salvation_n and_o gave._n no_o man_n eat_v that_o flesh_n except_o he_o first_o have_v adore_v it_o be_v find_v how_o such_o a_o footestole_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v be_v adore_v and_o how_o we_o may_v not_o only_o not_o sin_n by_o adore_v but_o how_o we_o may_v sin_n by_o not_o adore_v behold_v the_o flesh_n which_o christ_n take_v of_o yâ_z virgin_n in_o the_o same_o he_o walk_v and_o the_o same_o he_o give_v to_o be_v eat_v he_o take_v true_a flesh_n and_o real_a flesh_n he_o walk_v in_o the_o substance_n of_o natural_a flesh_n therefore_o he_o give_v we_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o same_o flesh_n to_o be_v first_o adore_v and_o then_o to_o be_v eat_v if_o you_o say_v he_o give_v it_o in_o a_o figure_n then_o he_o walk_v in_o flesh_n in_o a_o figure_n he_o take_v flesh_n in_o a_o figure_n for_o the_o same_o substance_n which_o he_o take_v and_o walk_v in_o he_o give_v we_o albeit_o he_o give_v it_o so_o as_o it_o may_v be_v most_o convenient_o eat_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n whereunto_o all_o man_n be_v most_o use_v s._n augustine_n consider_v the_o foolish_a understanding_n of_o the_o 98._o capharnait_v worthy_o say_v as_o it_o be_v to_o they_o in_o christ_n person_n you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n which_o you_o see_v nor_o drink_v that_o blood_n which_o they_o shall_v shed_v who_o shall_v crucify_v i_o sacramentum_fw-la aliquod_fw-la sacrament_n commendavi_fw-la vobis_fw-la i_o have_v commend_v a_o certain_a sacrament_n to_o you_o âª_o spiritualiter_fw-la intellectum_fw-la vivificabit_fw-la vos_fw-la be_v spiritual_o understand_v it_o will_v make_v you_o live_v et_fw-la si_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la illud_fw-la visibiliter_fw-la celebrari_fw-la oportettamen_fw-la invisibiliter_fw-la intelligi_fw-la although_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v celebrate_v visible_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v invisible_o the_o last_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n must_v agree_v with_o the_o first_o see_v and_o then_o it_o shalââ¦e_v true_a both_o that_o we_o must_v eat_v the_o self_n same_o flesh_n which_o christ_n take_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o yet_o not_o that_o body_n which_o the_o capharnait_n see_v why_o do_v not_o the_o ãâã_d see_v the_o body_n which_o christ_n take_v of_o the_o virgin_n how_o then_o must_v we_o eat_v the_o flesh_n which_o he_o take_v and_o not_o that_o body_n which_o they_o see_v if_o man_n will_v not_o affect_v blindness_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o understand_v that_o all_o corporal_a nature_n consist_v of_o a_o invisible_a substance_n and_o of_o a_o visible_a form_n the_o form_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v that_o which_o the_o capharnaite_n see_v saw_n but_o the_o substance_n oââ¦_n christ_n body_n be_v that_o which_o we_o must_v eat_v christ_n take_v not_o that_o greatness_n and_o quantity_n of_o flesh_n of_o his_o mother_n wherein_o he_o walk_v for_o his_o greatness_n increase_v take_v from_o the_o state_n of_o a_o infant_n to_o the_o state_n of_o a_o perââ¦ite_n man_n that_o 1_o increase_v quantity_n the_o capharnaite_n see_v but_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o flesh_n be_v neither_o increase_v nor_o diminish_v that_o same_o stand_a eat_v substance_n christ_n take_v of_o his_o mother_n in_o that_o he_o walk_v and_o that_o he_o give_v we_o to_o eat_v unto_o salvation_n that_o substance_n we_o how_v unto_o before_o we_o eat_v it_o but_o the_o form_n &_o shape_n of_o that_o substance_n we_o eat_v not_o for_o christ_n have_v give_v it_o we_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n &_o his_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n now_o this_o gift_n wherein_o yâ_z truth_n of_o substance_n be_v real_o give_v without_o the_o visible_a form_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o he_o sacrament_n that_o be_v it_o which_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v ed_z ding_o will_v quicken_v we_o to_o life_n enerlasting_a that_o be_v the_o understanding_n which_o be_v deny_v to_o the_o proud_a &_o stubborn_a chapharnait_n who_o 6._o will_v not_o believe_v be_v revel_v to_o the_o humble_a apostle_n who_o tarry_v 14._o with_o he_o until_o his_o last_o supper_n there_o they_o learn_v how_o the_o same_o body_n be_v give_v they_o to_o be_v eat_v which_o be_v take_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o which_o be_v betray_v for_o we_o and_o yet_o not_o that_o which_o the_o capharnite_n see_v the_o same_o in_o same_o substance_n but_o not_o the_o same_o in_o appearance_n for_o christ_n take_v bread_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_fw-ge for_fw-mi you_o take_v &_o eat_v there_o 22._o the_o apostle_n see_v that_o which_o seem_v still_o bread_n but_o under_o the_o form_n of_o the_o bread_n christ_n give_v the_o self_n same_o flesh_n wherein_o he_o walk_v in_o this_o life_n and_o he_o so_o give_v it_o that_o it_o may_v be_v adore_v not_o only_o while_o it_o be_v eat_v but_o before_o for_o no_o man_n eat_v it_o nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la adoraverit_fw-la except_o he_o adore_v it_o before_o that_o word_n before_o sheweth_z before_o that_o it_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n before_o we_o eat_v it_o and_o consequent_o yâ_z it_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o priest_n speak_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n over_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n s._n augustine_n be_v so_o full_o persuade_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n after_o consecration_n that_o he_o teach_v the_o christian_a people_n to_o adore_v it_o not_o as_o common_a flesh_n but_o as_o the_o flesh_n of_o god_n for_o who_o sake_n we_o adore_v it_o âª_o therefore_o flesh_n he_o say_v cùm_fw-la ad_fw-la terram_fw-la quamlibet_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o thou_o bow_v thyself_o or_o fall_v down_o before_o any_o earth_n look_v not_o upon_o it_o as_o earth_n but_o look_v upon_o that_o holy_a one_o who_o fotestoole_n it_o be_v which_o thou_o adore_v for_o thou_o adore_v for_o his_o sake_n s._n augustin_n call_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n earth_n because_o flesh_n be_v make_v of_o earth_n and_o christ_n take_v flesh_n of_o our_o lady_n flesh_n this_o flesh_n he_o call_v earth_n and_o for_o asmuch_o as_o he_o have_v say_v that_o no_o man_n do_v eat_v that_o flesh_n except_o he_o have_v adore_v before_o he_o show_v how_o we_o must_v adore_v very_o not_o rest_v upon_o the_o earth_n to_o wit_n upon_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n but_o look_v to_o his_o person_n in_o who_o that_o earth_n rest_v as_o if_o he_o say_v the_o footestole_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v for_o his_o sake_n that_o sit_v on_o that_o stool_n but_o now_o good_a reader_n i_o beseech_v thou_o as_o thou_o have_v care_n of_o thy_o salvation_n and_o do_v desire_n to_o be_v inform_v of_o the_o truth_n concern_v the_o adoration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n to_o ponder_v well_o these_o word_n ad_fw-la terram_fw-la quamlibet_fw-la cum_fw-la te_fw-la inclinas_fw-la atque_fw-la prosternis_fw-la when_o thou_o bow_v or_o lay_v thyself_o prostrate_a before_o any_o earth_n what_o mean_v these_o quaelibet_fw-la word_n ad_fw-la terram_fw-la quamlibet_fw-la before_o any_o earth_n have_v christ_n more_o flesh_v then_o one_o for_o by_o earth_n thou_o know_v he_o mean_v christ_n flesh_n what_o be_v it_o then_o to_o say_v before_o any_o earth_n doubtless_o before_o any_o host_n consecrate_v doubtless_o before_o any_o flesh_n
of_o christ_n make_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o be_v call_v any_o earth_n not_o because_o christ_n have_v any_o more_o than_o only_o one_o body_n and_o one_o blood_n and_o bread_n one_o earth_n which_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v but_o because_o that_o one_o earth_n be_v in_o many_o place_n after_o the_o sort_n i_o say_v before_o to_o wit_n under_o many_o form_n of_o bread_n that_o be_v it_o which_o s._n augustine_n say_v when_o thou_o bow_v thou_o or_o do_v cast_v thyself_o prostrate_a before_o any_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o what_o soever_o church_n house_n or_o place_n in_o what_o soever_o altar_n pix_n or_o table_n where_o soever_o thou_o fall_v down_o prostrate_a before_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n adore_v it_o so_o that_o thou_o remember_v the_o flesh_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v for_o the_o person_n sake_n who_o flesh_n it_o be_v by_o this_o place_n it_o be_v invincible_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n s._n of_o all_o catholic_a people_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n to_o be_v prostrate_a to_o word_n bow_v down_o and_o to_o adore_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n but_o prosternere_fw-la that_o shall_v never_o have_v be_v suffer_v in_o africa_n no_o more_o than_o now_o it_o be_v suffer_v in_o england_n except_o the_o real_a substance_n of_o christ_n flesh_n inclinaââ¦_n have_v be_v certain_o beleve_v of_o all_o man_n to_o be_v present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n therefore_o be_v thou_o assure_v as_o those_o yâ_z now_o sorbid_v thou_o to_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n do_v not_o believe_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n so_o they_o who_o will_v all_o christian_n under_o pain_n of_o sin_v to_o adore_v the_o earth_n &_o flesh_n which_o they_o receive_v before_o that_o they_o recââ¦aved_v it_o do_v undoubted_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n ââ¦lesh_n under_o the_o visible_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n this_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n which_o dure_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o this_o our_o day_n and_o yet_o dure_v in_o all_o catholic_a country_n ¶_o it_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o prophet_n that_o it_o can_v be_v no_o chapââ¦ter_n idolatry_n to_o worship_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n many_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v abhor_v which_o be_v in_o these_o our_o day_n teach_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o never_o be_v any_o thing_n so_o malicious_o invent_v so_o blasphemous_o utter_v so_o foolish_o maintain_v as_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o worship_n with_o godly_a honour_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n away_o for_o that_o say_n presuppose_v external_a idol_n not_o to_o have_v be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n it_o presuppose_v also_o that_o idolatry_n shall_v be_v maintain_v maintain_v among_o christian_n themselves_o not_o only_o in_o groââ¦es_n hill_n and_o corner_n but_o even_o open_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n by_o public_a doctrine_n and_o universal_a practice_n which_o never_o chance_v no_o not_o among_o the_o jew_n and_o which_o be_v most_o abominable_a of_o all_o it_o presuppose_v that_o christ_n who_o come_v to_o end_n and_o overthrow_v all_o idol_n and_o special_o idââ¦try_n those_o which_o be_v make_v by_o hand_n of_o man_n now_o himself_o shall_v geve_v occasion_n why_o his_o own_o people_n shall_v worship_v baker_n bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o grape_n and_o that_o this_o idolatry_n shall_v be_v commit_v by_o pretence_n of_o his_o own_o word_n yea_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v unto_o himself_o in_o his_o own_o mystery_n false_o and_o wicked_o if_o by_o any_o mean_v christ_n may_v be_v false_o adore_v can_v there_o yet_o a_o more_o lewd_a and_o foolish_a point_n be_v add_v to_o this_o opinion_n yea_o very_o they_o that_o teach_v the_o worship_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n to_o be_v idolatry_n say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o worship_a they_o teach_v also_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v antichrist_n which_o antichrist_n be_v well_o know_v to_o impugn_v by_o all_o mean_v the_o honour_n of_o christ._n and_o yet_o they_o confess_v that_o 2_o both_o only_a christ_n make_v and_o institute_v the_o same_o sacrament_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n himself_o worship_v the_o same_o thus_o at_o the_o length_n it_o come_v about_o that_o antichrist_n find_v this_o great_a mystery_n make_v by_o christ_n set_v it_o up_o to_o be_v worship_v of_o other_o and_o himself_o worship_v the_o same_o all_o together_o pretend_v the_o honour_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o intend_v thereby_o as_o they_o say_v to_o debate_v his_o honour_n who_o ever_o see_v a_o doctrine_n so_o evil_o hang_v together_o antichrist_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v adversatur_fw-la be_v a_o adversary_n that_o antichrist_n be_v to_o say_v he_o be_v one_o that_o set_v himself_o against_o christ_n and_o advamce_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v so_o that_o he_o do_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v or_o boast_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n behold_v antichrist_n set_v himself_o antichrist_n against_o christ_n and_o much_o less_o will_v he_o be_v content_a as_o the_o pope_n be_v to_o call_v himself_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n or_o servant_n of_o his_o servant_n again_o antichrist_n be_v advance_v above_o all_o that_o either_o by_o nature_n or_o by_o deceit_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v worship_v his_o pride_n be_v so_o great_a that_o he_o will_v not_o only_o disdain_v to_o bow_v to_o any_o external_a idol_n for_o that_o come_v of_o a_o superstitious_a fear_n and_o pusillanimity_n but_o also_o he_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o god_n himself_o when_o s._n paul_n say_v he_o be_v advance_v 2_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n he_o mean_v above_o all_o false_a god_n who_o be_v god_n by_o name_n and_o not_o in_o truth_n as_o juppiter_n mars_n uenns_n minerva_n be_v so_o that_o we_o be_v assure_v by_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n that_o antichrist_n shall_v set_v up_o no_o idol_n besides_o his_o own_o self_n he_o shall_v say_v himself_o to_o be_v god_n and_o shall_v show_v false_a sign_n &_o miracle_n able_a to_o deceive_v those_o wicked_a meââ¦_n who_o disdain_v the_o tichrist_n fellowship_n of_o the_o know_a church_n and_o the_o say_v of_o their_o father_n think_v themselves_o able_a to_o plant_v a_o new_a faith_n according_a to_o the_o understanding_n which_o they_o conceive_v of_o god_n word_n that_o be_v the_o chief_a way_n for_o antichrist_n to_o prevaââ¦le_v if_o the_o preach_n of_o nine_o hundred_o year_n and_o the_o say_v of_o so_o many_o christian_a country_n may_v be_v despise_v and_o consequent_o a_o new_a religion_n seek_v out_o at_o the_o devise_v whereof_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a yâ_z devil_n be_v precedent_n of_o the_o counsel_n to_o come_v to_o our_o purpose_n antichrist_n be_v advance_v by_o himself_o above_o all_o idol_n therefore_o he_o shall_v set_v up_o no_o idol_n beside_o himself_o and_o consequent_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n he_o set_v not_o up_o any_o idol_n beside_o himself_o but_o our_o adversary_n confess_v the_o pope_n to_o eucharisââ¦_n set_v up_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v adore_v of_o all_o man_n and_o himself_o to_o adore_v the_o same_o herefore_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n you_o will_v say_v he_o may_v be_v a_o limb_n of_o antichrist_n although_o he_o be_v objection_n not_o antichrist_n himself_o i_o answer_v every_o limb_n of_o antichrist_n ââ¦swere_n be_v like_o his_o head_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o limb_n antichrist_n be_v he_o that_o profess_v himself_o a_o adversary_n to_o christ_n and_o go_v about_o to_o diminish_v his_o honour_n but_o the_o pope_n profess_v himself_o to_o have_v all_o his_o whole_a honour_n of_o christ_n and_o geve_v all_o the_o whole_a honour_n he_o can_v devise_v to_o christ._n he_o worship_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n because_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n he_o reverence_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n because_o it_o be_v sign_n of_o christ._n he_o pray_v to_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n because_o they_o be_v 12_o member_n of_o christ_n be_v assign_v they_o hear_v his_o prayer_n in_o christ_n their_o head_n with_o who_o they_o make_v one_o body_n tichrist_n those_o be_v the_o limb_n of_o antichrist_n who_o can_v abide_v neither_o the_o godly_a worship_v of_o christ_n body_n nor_o the_o reverend_a use_v of_o his_o holy_a cross_n nor_o
which_o be_v receive_v at_o the_o holy_a communion_n which_o dwell_v bodily_a in_o we_o to_o be_v not_o only_o yâ_z flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o those_o word_n shall_v be_v elude_v with_o figure_n and_o sign_n but_o crament_n to_o be_v the_o substance_n and_o nature_n of_o god_n which_o nature_n be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v eat_v of_o we_o corporal_o otherwise_o then_o as_o it_o dwell_v ãâã_d in_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o eat_v corporal_o in_o the_o sacramenââ¦_n see_v the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o god_n must_v be_v adore_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o imagine_v but_o all_o yâ_z father_n give_v godly_a honour_n to_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n holy_a table_n but_o yet_o let_v we_o cor._n hear_v a_o more_o full_a witness_n s._n chrysostome_n exhort_v his_o people_n to_o come_v to_o this_o sacrament_n with_o zeal_n and_o most_o vehement_a love_n hoc_fw-la write_v thus_o hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la in_o praesepe_fw-la reveriti_fw-la sunt_fw-la magi_n etc._n etc._n the_o wise_a man_n common_o call_v the_o three_o king_n reverence_v this_o body_n in_o the_o manger_n and_o be_v man_n without_o good_a religion_n &_o barbarouse_n they_o worship_v it_o with_o fear_n and_o much_o tremble_a after_o a_o long_a journey_n take_v let_v we_o therefore_o who_o be_v the_o citizen_n of_o heaven_n at_o the_o least_o wise_a follow_v those_o barbarous_a man_n for_o when_o they_o see_v yâ_z manger_n and_o cottage_n only_o and_o not_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o thou_o now_o instruct_v see_v they_o come_v with_o most_o great_a reverence_n &_o quake_a but_o thou_o see_v that_o thing_n not_o in_o the_o manger_n but_o in_o the_o altar_n not_o a_o woman_n which_o may_v hold_v it_o in_o her_o arm_n but_o the_o priest_n present_a and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n copious_o spread_v upon_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o neither_o thou_o look_v bare_o upon_o the_o body_n as_o they_o do_v but_o thou_o know_v the_o power_n of_o it_o and_o all_o the_o order_n of_o dispense_n thing_n and_o thou_o be_v ignorant_a of_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v by_o he_o and_o thou_o have_v be_v diligent_o instruct_v in_o all_o thing_n let_v we_o be_v stir_v up_o therefore_o let_v we_o quake_v and_o let_v we_o proseââ¦e_v open_o a_o great_a denotion_n than_o those_o barbarous_a ãâã_d if_o we_o come_v bare_o and_o cold_o we_o jeopard_v our_o head_n into_o a_o more_o ââ¦ehement_a fire_n hitherto_o s._n chrysostome_n if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o refuge_n leave_v for_o our_o adversary_n they_o will_v never_o admit_v this_o place_n they_o will_v say_v in_o word_n yâ_z which_o the_o master_n of_o they_o must_v needs_o sometime_o think_v in_o hart_n they_o refuge_n will_v say_v what_o care_v we_o for_o chrysostome_n he_o be_v a_o man_n he_o may_v err_v he_o do_v err_v in_o this_o matter_n but_o now_o they_o may_v not_o flee_v to_o this_o miserable_a refuge_n for_o see_v they_o lack_v the_o gospel_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o christian_a people_n for_o nine_o hundred_o year_n together_o as_o themselves_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o they_o to_o hide_v their_o head_n in_o but_o only_o among_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n for_o this_o cause_n they_o can_v not_o reject_v s._n chrysostome_n who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a light_n of_o the_o east_n church_n his_o book_n also_o they_o can_v not_o deny_v and_o least_o of_o all_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o bless_a apostle_n what_o shift_v then_o find_v they_o to_o avoid_v this_o place_n in_o truth_n they_o can_v find_v none_o but_o they_o must_v needs_o pretend_v to_o say_v somewhat_o out_o of_o their_o common_a place_n of_o khetoricall_a figure_n yâ_z use_v whereof_o they_o can_v father_n upon_o who_o they_o listen_v s._n chrysostome_n in_o these_o word_n expressy_a teach_v as_o well_o the_o parison_n real_a presence_n as_o the_o adoration_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o altar_n he_o compare_v the_o holy_a mystery_n with_o christ_n in_o the_o form_n and_o truth_n of_o a_o child_n he_o compare_v the_o altar_n where_o upon_o the_o mystery_n stand_v with_o the_o manger_n wherein_o christ_n lie_v he_o compare_v our_o bless_a lady_n which_o sometime_o hold_v christ_n in_o her_o arm_n with_o the_o priest_n present_a at_o the_o altar_n who_o sometime_o handle_v the_o holy_a mystery_n he_o compare_v the_o three_o wise_a man_n who_o come_v out_o of_o yâ_z east_n with_o the_o christian_a people_n who_o come_v to_o hear_v mass_n he_o compare_v the_o adoration_n and_o worship_v which_o those_o three_o wise_a man_n use_v with_o the_o adoration_n and_o worship_v which_o faithful_a man_n ought_v to_o use_v at_o the_o time_n of_o oââ¦r_a lord_n supper_n he_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o place_n but_o yâ_z cause_n of_o worship_v to_o be_v great_a in_o they_o who_o come_v to_o the_o holy_a mystery_n he_o say_v by_o the_o body_n hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la in_o ãâã_d sunt_fw-la magi_n this_o body_n the_o wise_a man_n worship_v in_o the_o manger_n which_o this_o body_n sure_o whereof_o he_o say_v before_o quando_fw-la id_fw-la propositum_fw-la videris_fw-la dic_fw-la tecum_fw-la forth_o propter_fw-la hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la non_fw-la amplius_fw-la terra_fw-la &_o cinis_fw-la ego_fw-la sum_fw-la when_o thou_o see_v it_o set_v before_o they_z say_v with_o thyself_o for_o this_o body_n sake_n i_o be_o no_o long_a earth_n and_o ash_n behold_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v set_v before_o us._n uery_o of_o that_o which_o at_o mass_n time_n all_o man_n see_v upon_o the_o altar_n and_o again_o he_o say_v of_o the_o same_o ââ¦ten_v quod_fw-la etiam_fw-la nobis_fw-la exhibuit_fw-la ut_fw-la teneremus_fw-la &_o manducaremus_fw-la the_o which_o also_o he_o have_v give_v to_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v hold_v it_o and_o eat_v it_o this_o body_n then_o which_o be_v put_v before_o we_o in_o yâ_z church_n which_o be_v hold_v and_o eat_v this_o body_n the_o wise_a man_n worship_v in_o the_o manger_n if_o our_o figurative_a divine_n expound_v this_o body_n for_o the_o sign_n or_o the_o represent_v of_o this_o body_n as_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o do_v then_o the_o wise_a man_n adore_v in_o the_o manger_n the_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o if_o they_o adore_v not_o the_o sign_n but_o the_o truth_n then_o this_o body_n be_v mean_v ãâã_d this_o true_a body_n of_o christ._n and_o see_v s._n chrysostome_n say_v that_o the_o wise_a man_n adore_v this_o body_n mean_v by_o the_o pronoun_n this_o that_o which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o holy_a mystery_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o put_v it_o for_o a_o most_o know_v and_o certain_a verity_n that_o we_o have_v present_a before_o the_o time_n of_o receive_v the_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n upââ¦_n the_o altar_n and_o so_o have_v it_o present_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o adore_v it_o be_v upon_o the_o altar_n tu_fw-la verò_fw-la non_fw-la in_o praesepe_n sed_fw-la in_o altari_fw-la vides_fw-la thou_o see_v this_o body_n vides_fw-la not_o in_o the_o manger_n but_o on_o the_o altar_n lo_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o altar_n and_o not_o only_o comprehend_v by_o faith_n but_o by_o the_o mean_a of_o yâ_z form_n of_o bread_n it_o be_v seen_v ãâã_d s._n chrysostome_n bring_v four_o reason_n why_o chrystian_a people_n shall_v rather_o worship_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n at_o mass_n then_o those_o wise_a man_n do_v worship_v it_o in_o that_o homely_a cottage_n first_o because_o they_o be_v not_o godly_a man_n for_o so_o s._n chrysostom_n do_v call_v they_o because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o true_a devotion_n and_o godliness_n although_o in_o that_o act_n they_o show_v themselves_o godly_a but_o we_o be_v instruct_v in_o all_o true_a religion_n &_o therefore_o shall_v sooner_o worship_v this_o body_n of_o christ_n than_o they_o do_v second_o they_o be_v barbarous_a man_n but_o s._n chrysostome_n speak_v to_o ãâã_d who_o be_v most_o civil_a &_o least_o barbarous_a of_o all_o people_n in_o the_o world_n so_o much_o the_o rather_o they_o ought_v to_o know_v it_o to_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o worship_v the_o body_n of_o their_o maker_n three_o the_o wise_a man_n see_v christ_n in_o a_o manger_n where_o such_o thing_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o lie_v as_o must_v be_v reverence_v &_o worship_v but_o thou_o see_v this_o body_n upon_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v a_o place_n make_v for_o holy_a thing_n to_o stand_v on_o and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o ought_v we_o christian_n to_o adore_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v set_v before_o we_o upon_o the_o altar_n then_o those_o wise_a man_n do_v adore_v it_o in_o a_o manger_n they_o see_v it_o also_o in_o the_o mother_n arm_n which_o be_v a_o woman_n neither_o be_v any_o thing_n which_o a_o woman_n hold_v &_o bring_v forth_o wont_a
to_o be_v worship_v with_o godly_a honour_n see_v therefore_o thou_o see_v yâ_z pry_v present_a who_o be_v wont_a to_o handle_v godly_a thing_n it_o be_v a_o far_o more_o impiety_n for_o thou_o not_o to_o adore_v christ_n body_n at_o the_o time_n of_o mass_n when_o thou_o be_v assure_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 22._o who_o say_v to_o his_o apostle_n &_o in_o they_o to_o all_o priest_n do_v and_o make_v this_o thing_n that_o the_o holy_a ghoost_n fail_v not_o at_o the_o consecration_n to_o work_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n real_o present_a all_o this_o considere_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o any_o man_n that_o lie_v not_o witting_o and_o willing_o to_o say_v but_o that_o s._n chrysostome_n ââ¦aught_v and_o beleve_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v real_o present_a and_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v real_o adore_v upon_o the_o altar_n itself_o or_o in_o the_o 24_o priest_n hand_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v afterward_o quod_fw-la summo_fw-la honore_fw-la dignum_fw-la est_fw-la id_fw-la tibi_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la ostendam_fw-la i_o will_v show_v thou_o that_o in_o the_o earth_n which_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o high_a honour_n how_o can_v s._n chrysostome_n show_v any_o thing_n in_o earth_n worthy_a of_o the_o high_a honour_n beside_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o by_o that_o which_o be_v worthy_a of_o high_a honour_n he_o meaââ¦eth_v express_o christ_n body_n because_o it_o be_v christ_n the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o in_o say_v he_o will_v show_v it_o thou_o he_o can_v possible_o mean_v none_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o show_v which_o be_v by_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v require_v he_o to_o show_v that_o most_o high_a thing_n which_o he_o promise_v to_o show_v questionless_a he_o will_v lead_v he_o to_o yâ_z altar_n &_o there_o will_v show_v he_o that_o which_o have_v be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o priest_n and_o he_o will_v say_v unto_o he_o point_v to_o the_o mystery_n this_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v his_o blood_n for_o by_o that_o mean_v only_o be_v he_o able_a to_o perform_v his_o promise_n of_o show_v that_o thing_n which_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o high_a honour_n it_o follow_v yet_o more_o plain_o in_o s._n chrysostome_n by_o a_o other_o similitude_n as_o in_o the_o palacy_n of_o king_n say_v he_o not_o the_o wall_n not_o the_o golden_a roof_n but_o the_o king_n body_n sit_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o majesty_n be_v the_o worthy_a thing_n of_o all_o so_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o earth_n worthy_a thing_n in_o heaven_n quod_fw-la nunc_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la videndum_fw-la tibi_fw-la proponitur_fw-la the_o which_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v now_o set_v forth_o to_o thou_o in_o earth_n to_o be_v seen_v good_a lord_n what_o can_v be_v require_v more_o of_o the_o great_a papist_n in_o europe_n then_o s._n chrysostome_n say_v again_o yet_o it_o follow_v i_o show_v thou_o not_o angel_n not_o archangel_n not_o the_o heaven_n not_o the_o heaven_n of_o the_o heaven_n but_o i_o ãâã_d show_v thou_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n s._n chrysostom_n say_v he_o show_v yâ_z lord_n &_o that_o in_o earth_n &_o upon_o yâ_z altar_n &_o yet_o be_v there_o a_o figure_n to_o escape_v his_o most_o evident_a word_n in_o faith_n &_o truth_n by_o such_o figure_n they_o may_v defend_v yâ_z i_o also_o be_o of_o their_o opinion_n but_o ãâã_d wise_a man_n such_o wily_a shift_n will_v not_o prevail_v there_o be_v noman_n alive_a but_o ãâã_d he_o will_v conââ¦ue_v yâ_z word_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n as_o they_o stand_v in_o order_n he_o must_v coââ¦se_v yâ_z both_o he_o speak_v of_o yâ_z body_n of_o christ_n real_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o also_o teach_v yâ_z upon_o yâ_z very_o alââ¦ar_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v adore_v much_o more_o just_o of_o we_o christian_n than_o it_o be_v once_o adore_v in_o the_o manger_n or_o stable_n of_o the_o three_o king_n here_o will_v i_o detect_v a_o other_o shift_n of_o our_o adversary_n who_o perceave_v s._n dionysius_n s._n ambrose_n s._n augustme_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n with_o diverse_a other_o ancient_a father_n to_o be_v so_o plain_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o adoration_n have_v devise_v to_o say_v that_o those_o father_n mââ¦s_v attribute_n that_o unto_o the_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o body_n itself_o and_o therefore_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o adore_v that_o upon_o the_o altar_n they_o mean_v that_o we_o shall_v adore_v yâ_z truth_n of_o that_o thing_n the_o sign_n whereof_o stand_v upon_o the_o altar_n this_o interpretation_n be_v in_o deed_n necessary_o to_o be_v make_v of_o they_o who_o have_v determine_v not_o to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n where_o in_o it_o be_v say_v ââ¦his_fw-la be_v my_o body_n but_o i_o say_v that_o interpretation_n be_v foolish_a ââ¦dolatry_n and_o shall_v make_v all_o the_o father_n guilty_a of_o idolatry_n for_o they_o preach_v to_o the_o common_a peple_n teach_v they_o express_o that_o which_o stand_v after_o consecration_n upon_o the_o altar_n to_o be_v the_o true_a body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o must_v be_v adore_v much_o more_o of_o we_o than_o the_o visible_a body_n be_v adore_v of_o the_o wise_a man_n if_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o heretic_n shall_v be_v admit_v 2._o they_o may_v say_v the_o very_a same_o of_o christ_n incarnation_n and_o so_o expound_v what_o so_o ever_o be_v say_v in_o yâ_z bible_n or_o in_o yâ_z father_n touch_v his_o flesh_n to_o be_v mean_v of_o a_o fantastical_a appear_v of_o flesh_n but_o not_o of_o true_a flesh_n but_o now_o let_v we_o bring_v against_o these_o signifier_n a_o other_o plain_a authority_n which_o be_v by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n write_v as_o it_o be_v of_o purpose_n to_o destroy_v this_o imagine_a and_o figurative_a adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n whereof_o they_o speak_v theodoretus_n dispute_v with_o a_fw-fr eutychian_n who_o will_v christ_n 2._o now_o to_o consist_v of_o the_o only_a nature_n of_o his_o deity_n and_o not_o any_o more_o of_o the_o humane_a nature_n which_o he_o take_v of_o the_o virgin_n do_v reprove_v he_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n in_o the_o which_o sacrament_n two_o thing_n be_v find_v one_o which_o be_v seen_v and_o that_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o other_o be_v not_o seen_v but_o understand_v and_o beleve_v and_o that_o be_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n substance_n of_o christ_n that_o which_o be_v seen_v be_v say_v to_o remain_v in_o his_o former_a substance_n nature_n and_o figure_n and_o kind_a in_o his_o substance_n because_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n subsist_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o have_v their_o be_v now_o by_o themselves_o as_o they_o have_v it_o before_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o same_o form_n remain_v in_o their_o nature_n former_a nature_n because_o they_o nourish_v no_o less_o than_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n itself_o will_v have_v do_v if_o it_o have_v remain_v they_o remain_v shape_n in_o their_o former_a shape_n and_o kind_n as_o be_v thing_n that_o may_v be_v seen_v and_o touch_v as_o they_o may_v before_o theodoretus_n then_o have_v say_v thus_o much_o for_o the_o one_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n come_v also_o to_o show_v the_o other_o part_n thereof_o for_o his_o mind_n be_v to_o declare_v yâ_z as_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o thing_n in_o one_o encharist_n so_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o man_n be_v in_o one_o person_n of_o christ_n therefore_o the_o other_o nature_n beside_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v the_o real_a substance_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n 2._o of_o which_o part_n thus_o he_o speak_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d intelliguntur_fw-la autem_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la facta_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o creduntur_fw-la &_o adorantur_fw-la ut_fw-la pote_fw-la quae_fw-la illa_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la creduntur_fw-la the_o mystical_a sign_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v make_v and_o they_o be_v beleve_v and_o they_o be_v adore_v as_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v beleve_v to_o be_v note_v good_a reader_n that_o the_o mystical_a sign_n which_o theodoretus_n call_v mystica_fw-la symbola_fw-la be_v understand_v to_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o they_o be_v make_v but_o what_o be_v they_o ãâã_d ââ¦o_o be_v that_o which_o they_o be_v not_o nay_o syââ¦_n yâ_z be_v false_a understanding_n which_o falsehood_n can_v not_o be_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ._n they_o be_v then_o in_o deed_n that_o which_o they_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v what_o be_v that_o theodoreââ¦us_n
of_o christ_n who_o be_v come_v to_o his_o house_n lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o shall_v est_fw-la enter_v under_o my_o roof_n we_o thereby_o know_v that_o he_o speak_v to_o christ_n and_o call_v christ_n his_o lord_n and_o not_o only_a god_n in_o heaven_n so_o when_o we_o read_v that_o the_o receiver_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n 8._o do_v say_v at_o the_o time_n of_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o shall_v est_fw-la enter_v under_o my_o roof_n and_o that_o they_o do_v bow_v down_o adore_v &_o worship_v at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o must_v undoubted_o conclude_v that_o both_o the_o sacrament_n be_v speak_v unto_o and_o call_v lord_n and_o also_o bow_v to_o and_o adore_v thus_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o adoration_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n even_o as_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n out_o of_o the_o prophet_n out_o of_o s._n paul_n 11._o out_o of_o the_o anncient_a father_n out_o of_o the_o public_a seruire_fw-la of_o the_o primitine_a church_n and_o out_o of_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o faithful_a people_n all_o which_o proof_n i_o have_v apply_v to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v know_v thereby_o to_o be_v real_o present_a in_o that_o self_n sacrament_n which_o we_o take_v into_o our_o mouth_n and_o for_o so_o much_o as_o that_o be_v so_o every_o faithful_a man_n ought_v to_o believe_v most_o constant_o the_o say_v real_a presence_n and_o to_o detest_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n as_o a_o most_o perniciouse_a heresy_n ¶_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n under_o chapter_n the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n if_o every_o man_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v authority_n in_o ãâã_d his_o own_o art_n &_o faculty_n if_o when_o we_o build_v we_o call_v a_o carpenter_n to_o counsel_n and_o when_o we_o make_v garden_n a_o gardener_n how_o much_o more_o must_v we_o esteem_v the_o holy_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v not_o only_o cunning_a by_o long_a labour_n bestow_v ââ¦pon_o the_o science_n of_o divinity_n but_o also_o have_v so_o virtuous_o use_v themselves_o that_o they_o have_v be_v abundant_o instruct_v in_o all_o knowledge_n by_o marnailons_a inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o name_n be_v so_o great_a that_o the_o very_a heretic_n can_v not_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v holy_a saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o they_o pretend_v to_o have_v the_o first_o syx_n hundred_o year_n on_o their_o side_n it_o be_v then_o a_o good_a sure_a way_n to_o work_v with_o the_o advice_n of_o those_o ancient_a father_n who_o saying_n because_o i_o have_v particular_o allege_v and_o examine_v in_o every_o article_n and_o chapter_n of_o my_o former_a book_n as_o occasion_n suffer_v i_o think_v good_a not_o to_o prosecââ¦_n they_o now_o again_o at_o large_a but_o rather_o to_o show_v brief_o by_o what_o general_a chapiter_n a_o man_n may_v be_v undouted_o assure_v of_o their_o belefe_v and_o doctrine_n first_o very_o many_o father_n speak_v of_o christ_n word_n or_o dede_n when_o aââ¦ter_a bread_n take_v and_o thank_v give_v he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n allege_v the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n to_o defend_v the_o verity_n ãâã_d of_o those_o dede_n and_o word_n therefore_o the_o same_o father_n beleve_v those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o be_v true_a in_o so_o wonderful_a a_o manner_n as_o they_o sound_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n and_o see_v they_o mean_v according_a to_o their_o most_o usual_a sound_n that_o this_o which_o be_v point_v unto_o though_o it_o seem_v still_o bread_n be_v notwithstanding_o yâ_z substance_n of_o christ_n body_n we_o ought_v to_o think_v that_o those_o father_n beleve_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n otherwise_o they_o will_v never_o have_v allege_v his_o godhead_n or_o almighty_a power_n and_o omnipotency_n for_o the_o institute_n of_o a_o figure_n and_o sign_n of_o his_o own_o body_n since_o for_o the_o institution_n of_o sign_n and_o figure_n such_o a_o authority_n 3_o may_v have_v serve_v as_o god_n give_v to_o moses_n who_o yet_o be_v but_o the_o feruant_fw-la of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o not_o almighty_a god_n s._n ireneus_fw-la how_o can_v they_o be_v sure_a the_o bread_n whereon_o thanks_n 34._o be_v give_v to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o their_o lord_n &_o the_o chalice_n of_o his_o blood_n if_o they_o say_v not_o he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o maker_n of_o the_o world_n s._n ireneus_fw-la be_v so_o sure_a that_o christ_n through_o his_o divine_a power_n make_v the_o bread_n wherein_o thanks_n be_v give_v his_o own_o body_n that_o if_o the_o godhead_n be_v deny_v which_o shall_v work_v that_o presence_n no_o man_n can_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o yet_o he_o may_v have_v be_v sure_a of_o a_o figurative_a presence_n though_o moses_n have_v be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o christ_n s._n cyprian_n that_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n give_v to_o the_o disciple_n domin_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n what_o need_v omnipotency_n be_v allege_v for_o a_o fact_n that_o be_v not_o supernatural_a s._n hilary_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n say_v by_o the_o profession_n trinitat_fw-la of_o our_o lord_n it_o be_v true_o flesh_n and_o true_o blood_n be_v not_o this_o thing_n the_o truth_n âª_o it_o may_v in_o deed_n chance_v not_o to_o be_v true_a to_o they_o who_o deny_v icsus_n christ_n to_o be_v true_a god_n as_o who_o shall_v say_v if_o his_o godhead_n may_v stand_v his_o flesh_n must_v needs_o be_v true_o present_a s._n basilius_n to_o show_v yâ_z these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n make_v 172._o full_a persuasion_n allege_v out_o of_o s._n john_n the_o glory_n or_o godhead_n and_o also_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n because_o except_o he_o be_v both_o true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n this_o be_v my_o body_n shall_v not_o make_v full_a 1._o persuasion_n since_o if_o he_o be_v not_o man_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v a_o body_n whereof_o those_o word_n may_v be_v verify_v if_o he_o be_v not_o god_n we_o may_v doubt_v how_o he_o be_v able_a to_o make_v his_o word_n true_a but_o see_v he_o be_v god_n and_o man_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n 5._o s._n ambrose_n our_o lord_n jesus_n himself_o cry_v this_o be_v my_o body_n he_o have_v say_v and_o it_o be_v make_v s._n chrysostome_n o_o miracle_n he_o have_v sit_v above_o &_o caet_fw-la and_o again_o let_v we_o every_o where_o geve_v credit_n unto_o his_o word_n special_o in_o the_o mystery_n eusebius_n emissenus_fw-la let_v the_o very_a power_n 3._o of_o he_o that_o consecrate_v strengthen_v thou_o s._n cyrillus_n of_o alexandria_n see_v god_n work_v let_v we_o not_o ask_v 5._o pasch._n how_o damascene_fw-la we_o know_v no_o more_o but_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 13_o be_v true_a strengthfull_a almighty_a but_o the_o manner_n be_v inscrutable_a no_o wise_a man_n require_v we_o earnest_o to_o believe_v the_o word_n 4._o which_o himself_o do_v think_v to_o be_v figurative_a and_o parabolicall_a but_o 14._o he_o rather_o shall_v bid_v we_o beware_v that_o we_o mistake_v they_o not_o as_z gen._n s._n chrysostome_n upon_o those_o word_n god_n repent_v cry_v out_o 22._o see_v a_o gross_a word_n not_o that_o god_n repent_v god_n forbid_v but_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o man_n likewise_o s._n 4_o augustine_n say_v in_o respect_n of_o those_o word_n john_n baptist_n be_v elias_n our_o lord_n speak_v figurative_o but_o s._n john_n say_v i_o 17_o be_o not_o elias_n answer_v proper_o 1._o if_o now_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v figurative_a we_o shall_v have_v ben'e_o warn_v by_o the_o watchman_n of_o god_n to_o beware_v of_o they_o and_o not_o require_v d_z to_o believe_v they_o as_o now_o we_o be_v require_v yea_o we_o be_v so_o require_v to_o believe_v they_o that_o it_o be_v wonderful_a fides_fw-la to_o see_v and_o to_o consyd_v ere_fw-we how_o earnest_o the_o doctor_n speak_v in_o that_o behalf_n s_o basilius_n the_o certainty_n of_o our_o lord_n word_n who_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v geu_fw-fr en_fw-fr for_o you_o make_v this_o thing_n ãâã_d for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o i_o engender_v full_a persuasion_n sure_o figurative_a word_n can_v not_o make_v full_a persuasion_n because_o then selue_o be_v imperfite_a as_o lackin_n g_o their_o proper_a signification_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a virtue_n of_o word_n whereby_o they_o shall_v full_o inform_v us._n for_o no_o figurative_a speech_n be_v so_o plain_a as_o a_o proper_a speech_n be_v
they_o therefore_o in_o this_o behalf_n we_o be_v clear_a as_o who_o never_o depart_v from_o the_o apostle_n nor_o from_o their_o ãâã_d âª_o but_o your_o depart_n be_v know_v i_o ãâã_d that_o it_o ãâã_d ãâã_d berengarius_fw-la about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1000_o i_o can_v tell_v when_o 1000_o ãâã_d renew_v the_o same_o heresy_n when_o luther_n when_o zwinglius_fw-la 1400._o begin_v who_o know_v not_o where_o the_o church_n be_v whence_o they_o 1517._o 1522._o depââ¦rted_v to_o wit_n in_o italy_n in_o france_n in_o spain_n in_o germany_n &_o so_o forth_o i_o can_v tell_v the_o counsel_n wherein_o it_o have_v be_v condemn_v at_o ãâã_d at_o uercel_n at_o tours_n in_o the_o great_a council_n of_o lateran_n at_o ââ¦iemia_fw-la in_o feance_n at_o basill_n at_o constance_n at_o florence_n at_o trent_n all_o thing_n be_v know_v so_o manifest_o concern_v the_o begiun_n and_o procede_v of_o the_o sacramentary_n that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v to_o couclude_v our_o faith_n be_v ãâã_d by_o the_o testimony_n of_o yâ_z church_n which_o in_o all_o age_n have_v beleve_v yâ_z real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o so_o much_o that_o s._n hilary_n say_v there_o be_v no_o place_n leave_v of_o trin._n dout_v of_o the_o verity_n of_o christ_n flesh_n &_o blood_n why_o so_o nunââ¦_n enim_fw-la &_o ipsius_fw-la domini_fw-la professione_n &_o fide_fw-la nostra_fw-la verè_fw-la ãâã_d est_fw-la ãâã_d church_n verè_fw-la sanguis_fw-la est_fw-la âª_o for_o now_o both_o by_o the_o profession_n of_o our_o lord_n himself_o &_o by_o our_o faith_n it_o be_v flesh_n in_o deed_n and_o blood_n in_o deed_n lo_o by_o our_o lord_n profession_n and_o by_o our_o faith_n s._n hilary_n confess_v that_o all_o christian_n beleve_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o cjroââ¦tes_n body_n and_o blood_n whereof_o he_o there_o speak_v be_v his_o flesh_n in_o deed_n and_o his_o blood_n in_o deed_n for_o he_o have_v speak_v before_o of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v call_v also_o a_o mystcrie_n and_o our_o lord_n meat_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o flesh_n to_o be_v communicate_v to_o we_o which_o sacrament_n be_v christ_n flesh_n in_o deed_n and_o be_v receive_v make_v the_o same_o flesh_n natural_o and_o corporal_o to_o dwell_v in_o us._n this_o be_v not_o only_o the_o mind_n of_o s._n hilary_n but_o he_o say_v it_o be_v truth_n the_o profession_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n which_o two_o groââ¦ids_n be_v so_o sure_a that_o no_o place_n of_o dout_v be_v leave_v for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ââ¦hurch_n do_v expound_v declare_v &_o witness_n how_o christ_n our_o lord_n mean_v when_o he_o say_v my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n in_o deed_n this_o faith_n can_v not_o be_v vain_a or_o void_a for_o by_o it_o we_o overcomme_v the_o world_n the_o devyl_n and_o hell_n gate_n by_o it_o we_o know_v the_o difference_n 5._o between_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o these_o i_o be_o the_o door_n 16._o the_o vine_n the_o way_n the_o rock_n be_v christ_n john_n baptist_n be_v elias_n and_o speech_n such_o like_a for_o no_o man_n teach_v in_o any_o age_n neither_o christian_a people_n do_v at_o time_n believe_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o material_a door_n vine_n or_o way_n neither_o that_o any_o rock_n be_v turn_v into_o christ_n neither_o that_o john_n baptist_n be_v elias_n in_o person_n i'faith_o always_o do_v understand_v these_o proposition_n and_o such_o like_a to_o be_v a_o phrase_n of_o speak_v without_o any_o effect_n of_o work_v any_o far_a thing_n but_o when_o a_o lawful_a priest_n say_v upon_o bread_n at_o the_o altar_n this_o be_v my_o body_n then_o no_o faithââ¦ul_a man_n ever_o doubt_v but_o there_o be_v wrought_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o so_o our_o father_n and_o great_a grandfather_n deliver_v to_o we_o that_o belefe_v certain_o a_o sure_a rule_n to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o 13._o god_n than_o faith_n be_v never_o be_v hear_v of_o for_o it_o be_v the_o life_n and_o graââ¦_n 8_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v give_v into_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o knowledge_n to_o every_o good_a belever_n which_o direct_v he_o to_o all_o truth_n s._n augustine_n show_v that_o the_o manichee_n think_v the_o visible_a 34._o son_n to_o be_v christ_n although_o he_o may_v by_o many_o mean_n have_v impugn_a that_o error_n yet_o he_o special_o choose_v to_o say_v catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la recta_fw-la fides_fw-la improbat_fw-la tale_n commentum_fw-la diabolicam_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la esse_fw-la cognoscit_fw-la credendo_fw-la the_o right_a faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n disprove_v that_o fable_n and_o know_v it_o by_o beleve_v to_o be_v a_o deââ¦ylish_a doctrine_n even_o so_o by_o beleve_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n to_o be_v christ_n true_a flesh_n we_o know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacramentary_n to_o be_v a_o fable_n and_o a_o heresy_n epiphanius_n write_v of_o purpose_n against_o figurative_a and_o allegorical_a interpretatious_a geve_v likewise_o a_o most_o clear_a witness_n of_o anco_fw-la the_o belefe_v of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n and_o before_o he_o for_o dispute_v what_o it_o be_v for_o man_n to_o be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n he_o shewith_o at_o the_o last_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v once_o it_o be_v true_a because_o god_n through_o grace_n have_v give_v man_n that_o image_n though_o we_o can_v not_o tell_v wherein_o it_o stand_v and_o for_o example_n he_o bring_v how_o christ_n take_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n bread_n and_o wine_n and_o when_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n ãâã_d epiphanius_n name_v not_o these_o thing_n because_o the_o ãâã_d shall_v not_o by_o his_o book_n understand_v our_o mystery_n &_o consequent_o he_o show_v that_o the_o thing_n consecrate_v be_v not_o like_a neither_o to_o the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n nor_o to_o his_o godhead_n for_o it_o be_v of_o a_o shape_n and_o to_o look_v unto_o a_o dead_a or_o unsensible_a thing_n yet_o christ_n by_o grace_n have_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n et_fw-la nemo_fw-la non_fw-la fidem_fw-la habet_fw-la sermoni_fw-la qui_fw-la ââ¦nim_fw-la non_fw-la credit_n esse_fw-la ipsum_fw-la verum_fw-la sicut_fw-la beleve_v ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la be_v excidit_fw-la à _fw-la gratia_fw-la &_o salute_v and_o every_o man_n beleve_v the_o say_n for_o who_o so_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o say_n as_o himself_o say_v it_o he_o be_v fall_v from_o grace_n and_o salvation_n if_o the_o word_n &_o say_n be_v this_o be_v my_o body_n &_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n if_o every_o man_n believe_v the_o say_n if_o he_o that_o beleve_v not_o the_o saying_n to_o be_v true_a and_o so_o to_o be_v true_a even_o as_o christ_n speak_v it_o as_o he_o sound_v it_o as_o he_o utter_v it_o if_o he_o that_o beleve_v not_o these_o thing_n be_v fall_v from_o grace_n and_o salvation_n who_o will_v now_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n and_o not_o the_o truth_n thereof_o and_o than_o he_o must_v say_v likewise_o that_o in_o deed_n we_o be_v not_o make_v according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n every_o man_n in_o the_o time_n of_o epiphanius_n do_v believe_v not_o only_o yâ_z truth_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n in_o heaven_n nor_o only_o the_o dwell_n thereof_o in_o we_o by_o faith_n but_o every_o man_n do_v beleââ¦e_v this_o self_n say_v this_o speech_n and_o this_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n beleve_v if_o this_o say_n must_v be_v beleve_v it_o must_v be_v true_a if_o the_o speech_n itself_o be_v true_a the_o thing_n thereby_o signify_v be_v true_a but_o the_o word_n do_v signify_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n for_o his_o body_n be_v a_o substance_n therefore_o it_o be_v true_a yâ_z this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o if_o it_o be_v still_o bread_n it_o be_v not_o so_o for_o material_a bread_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n therefore_o it_o be_v so_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n that_o it_o be_v not_o bread_n or_o wine_n which_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n as_o the_o sacramentary_n teach_v in_o this_o say_n this_o be_v my_o body_n no_o bread_n be_v name_v no_o sign_n no_o figure_n ââ¦ut_o only_o the_o self_n body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v one_o certain_a substance_n therefore_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o epiphanius_n and_o always_o before_o do_v believe_v the_o thing_n point_v unto_o in_o those_o word_n to_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n for_o how_o so_o ever_o it_o seem_v unsensible_a as_o also_o it_o be_v not_o see_v how_o we_o be_v make_v according_a to_o yâ_z image_n of_o god_n yet_o yâ_z say_n be_v beleve_v even_o
as_o christ_n say_v it_o sicut_fw-la ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la as_o himself_o say_v it_o it_o without_o gloss_v without_o addition_n without_o figure_n orparable_n even_o as_o christ_n speak_v it_o so_o it_o be_v beleve_v and_o beleve_v of_o every_o man_n and_o who_o so_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o be_v reckon_v a_o damn_a person_n without_o grace_n without_o salvation_n without_o life_n everlasting_a thus_o have_v we_o hear_v two_o notable_a witness_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o one_o a_o latin_a s._n hilarius_n the_o other_o a_o graecian_n epiphanius_n but_o now_o i_o will_v bring_v forth_o not_o as_o before_o the_o old_a father_n bear_v witness_n of_o the_o belefe_v of_o the_o people_n but_o i_o will_v bring_v forth_o the_o whole_a people_n itself_o yea_o the_o people_n of_o the_o primatine_a church_n you_o shall_v hear_v all_o the_o citizen_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n through_o out_o the_o world_n witness_v with_o one_o voice_n in_o one_o word_n their_o most_o constant_a faith_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n amen_o be_v a_o hebrew_n word_n which_o partly_o wish_v and_o partly_o affirm_v signify_v as_o it_o be_v at_o once_o be_v it_o so_o and_o it_o be_v so_o it_o amen_n signify_v be_v it_o so_o when_o it_o be_v join_v with_o prayer_n and_o petition_n it_o signify_v it_o be_v so_o when_o it_o follow_v any_o part_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n which_o be_v already_o pronounce_v or_o affirm_v thence_o we_o read_v so_o oft_o in_o holy_a scripture_n amen_o amen_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o which_o be_v to_o ââ¦iturgies_n say_v very_o very_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n s._n justin_n the_o martyr_n s._n clement_n s._n cyrill_n of_o hicrusalem_n s._n basil_n s._n ambrose_n and_o s._n chrysostom_n do_v witness_n that_o the_o people_n use_v at_o mass_n time_n to_o answer_v amen_n which_o thing_n they_o do_v special_o twice_o once_o at_o the_o consecration_n as_o well_o of_o the_o body_n as_o of_o the_o blood_n and_o again_o at_o the_o time_n of_o communion_n at_o the_o consecration_n the_o priest_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n pronounce_v most_o determinate_o over_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o over_o wine_n this_o be_v my_o bloood_a therefore_o when_o the_o people_n answer_v to_o those_o bless_a say_n amen_n they_o affirm_v the_o same_o that_o be_v affirm_v as_o though_o they_o say_v with_o one_o voice_n it_o be_v very_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v very_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n whereof_o you_o speak_v and_o lest_o you_o shall_v think_v this_o comment_n to_o be_v of_o my_o make_n s._n ambrose_n expound_v yâ_z same_o word_n before_o i_o say_v ipse_fw-la clamat_fw-la 9_o dominus_fw-la jesus_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la our_o lord_n jesus_n himself_o cry_v this_o be_v my_o body_n he_z calleeh_o the_o cry_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o his_o minister_n cry_v so_o in_o his_o name_n for_o of_o that_o cry_n he_o speak_v as_o it_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o word_n follow_v well_o our_o lord_n jesus_n himself_o cry_v out_o this_o be_v my_o body_n before_o the_o blessing_n of_o yâ_z heavenly_a word_n it_o be_v name_v another_o kind_n after_o consecration_n that_o body_n be_v signify_v himself_o call_v it_o his_o own_o blood_n before_o consecration_n it_o be_v call_v a_o other_o thing_n after_o consecration_n it_o be_v call_v blood_n and_o thou_o say_v amen_o that_o be_v to_o say_v amen_n as_o s._n ambrose_n himself_o expound_v it_o verum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v true_a beleve_v that_o the_o mouth_n speak_v let_v the_o inward_a mind_n confelse_a that_o the_o speech_n sound_v let_v the_o hart_n think_v hitherto_o s._n ambrose_n who_o will_v not_o bid_v the_o people_n think_v that_o which_o the_o speech_n sound_v if_o the_o speech_n be_v figurative_a for_o a_o figurative_a speech_n sound_v otherwise_o than_o we_o ought_v to_o think_v thereof_o as_o when_o we_o say_v god_n be_v sorry_a christ_n be_v make_v sin_n the_o rok_n be_v christ._n as_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n for_o the_o people_n to_o say_v amen_o straight_o upon_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n whereby_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o work_n of_o the_o priest_n even_o so_o be_v it_o also_o the_o custom_n apostol_n that_o when_o the_o time_n of_o communion_n come_v as_o s._n clement_n and_o diââ¦erse_v other_o do_v witness_n the_o bishop_n shall_v geve_v the_o oblation_n 20._o to_o the_o people_n say_v âª_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o yâ_z take_v it_o shall_v say_v amen_o it_o be_v true_a and_o yâ_z deacon_n when_o he_o deliver_v catech._n yâ_z chalice_n do_v say_v sanguis_fw-la christi_fw-la calix_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la âª_o yâ_z blood_n of_o christ_n ambr._n yâ_z chalice_n of_o life_n &_o he_o that_o drink_v say_v amen_o so_o it_o be_v or_o that_o be_v true_a 5_o to_o which_o custom_n be_v in_o use_n at_o his_o time_n s._n ambrose_n allude_v write_v thus_o dicit_fw-la tibi_fw-la sacerdos_n corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la dicis_fw-la 5_o amen_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la verum_fw-la quod_fw-la confitetur_fw-la lingua_fw-la teneat_fw-la affectus_fw-la the_o priest_n say_v to_o thou_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o thou_o say_v amen_o that_o be_v true_a that_o which_o thy_o tongue_n confess_v let_v thy_o hart_n keep_v but_o what_o speak_v i_o of_o s._n ambrose_n will_v the_o apostle_n have_v make_v all_o the_o people_n to_o cry_v amen_o to_o that_o which_o have_v not_o be_v so_o as_o the_o word_n do_v sound_a will_v they_o have_v make_v the_o simple_a man_n to_o witââ¦esse_v their_o belefe_v to_o such_o word_n as_o need_v a_o far_a comment_n or_o interpretation_n it_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v think_v yea_o to_o be_v most_o assure_o beleve_v that_o they_o ordain_v that_o custom_n to_o send_v all_o man_n may_v know_v that_o the_o thing_n consecrate_v upon_o the_o altar_n be_v in_o deed_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n s._n augustine_n bear_v witness_n to_o the_o same_o custom_n say_v faust._n habet_fw-la magnam_fw-la vocem_fw-la christi_fw-la sanguis_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la cùm_fw-la eo_fw-la accepto_fw-la ab_fw-la 10._o omnibus_fw-la gentibus_fw-la respondetur_fw-la amen_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v a_o great_a voice_n in_o earth_n when_o after_o it_o be_v take_v all_o nation_n answer_v amen_o haec_fw-la est_fw-la clara_fw-la vox_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la quam_fw-la sauguis_fw-la ipse_fw-la exprimit_fw-la ex_fw-la ore_fw-la fidelium_fw-la eodem_fw-la sanguine_fw-la redemptorum_fw-la this_o be_v the_o clear_a voice_n of_o the_o blood_n the_o which_o voice_n the_o blood_n itself_o force_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v redeem_v with_o the_o same_o blood_n mensis_fw-la pope_n leo_n the_o great_a agree_v with_o s._n clement_n s._n ambrose_n and_o s._n augustine_n sic_fw-la sacrae_fw-la mensae_fw-la communicare_fw-la debetis_fw-la &_o caeââ¦_n you_o ought_v so_o to_o communicate_v of_o the_o holy_a table_n that_o you_o doubt_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o yâ_z thing_n be_v take_v in_o the_o mouth_n which_o be_v beleve_v in_o faith_n and_o amen_o be_v in_o vain_a answer_v of_o they_o who_o dispute_n against_o that_o in_o which_o be_v receive_v this_o place_n declare_v that_o some_o disputation_n be_v move_v by_o some_o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o manicheus_fw-la who_o live_v in_o sacrament_n rome_n under_o leo_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n for_o see_v the_o manichee_n beleve_v not_o christ_n to_o have_v a_o true_a body_n at_o all_o they_o may_v well_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n but_o that_o holy_a bishop_n bid_v the_o people_n not_o doubt_v thereof_o show_v that_o we_o do_v not_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n only_o by_o faith_n but_o also_o by_o mouth_n now_o because_o leo_n set_v the_o receive_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n by_o mouth_n against_o the_o receive_n thereof_o work_n by_o faith_n only_o we_o may_v conjecture_v that_o heretic_n even_o in_o those_o day_n be_v of_o the_o mind_n that_o their_o offspring_n be_v now_o of_o very_o to_o draw_v as_o much_o truth_n from_o christ_n work_n as_o may_v be_v and_o to_o set_v all_o thing_n upon_o faith_n spirit_n and_o understanding_n but_o leo_n prove_v his_o doctrine_n by_o the_o general_a custom_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n âª_o wherein_o the_o people_n answer_v amen_o do_v in_o open_a word_n witness_v themselves_o to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v true_a which_o the_o priest_n say_v concern_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n now_o because_o some_o of_o they_o who_o use_v to_o say_v amen_o dispute_v whether_o the_o substance_n and_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v present_a in_o the_o mouth_n of_o
and_o find_v a_o man_n in_o figure_n not_o in_o substance_n that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o in_o flesh_n thus_o do_v the_o marcionite_n reason_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n itself_o to_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v reason_n not_o true_a man_n as_o m._n jewel_n now_o because_o the_o father_n name_n the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n will_v disprove_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o what_o answer_v ââ¦rtullian_n quasi_fw-la non_fw-la &_o figura_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la as_o though_o the_o figure_n and_o likeness_n and_o shape_n be_v not_o also_o join_v to_o the_o substance_n so_o say_v we_o the_o figure_n whereof_o we_o dispute_v be_v join_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n so_o that_o yâ_z body_n &_o sign_n of_o the_o bread_n make_v both_o but_o one_o perfect_a sacrament_n or_o mystical_a figure_n and_o that_o i_o will_v prove_v yet_o more_o plain_o out_o of_o this_o very_a marc._n place_n of_o tertullian_n who_o speak_v most_o literal_o of_o bread_n as_o it_o be_v a_o old_a figure_n of_o christ_n body_n whereof_o in_o hieremie_n it_o be_v say_v let_v we_o put_v the_o word_n of_o the_o ââ¦rosse_a into_o his_o bread_n to_o wit_n upon_o 11._o his_o body_n christ_n they_o fulfil_v the_o old_a figure_n fecit_fw-la panem_fw-la corpus_fw-la body_n suum_fw-la make_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n as_o tertullian_n say_v if_o he_o do_v so_o it_o can_v not_o tarry_v bread_n any_o long_o for_o as_o air_n be_v once_o make_v fire_n tarry_v no_o more_o air_n so_o can_v not_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v make_v christ_n body_n be_v any_o long_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n this_o ground_n be_v put_v which_o be_v most_o true_a and_o it_o be_v express_v in_o tertullian_n figure_n himself_o go_v you_o forward_o and_o say_v this_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n as_o long_o as_o you_o will_v yet_o the_o ground_n of_o that_o figure_n can_v not_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n since_o it_o be_v make_v already_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n itself_o be_v make_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o mystical_o contain_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n be_v that_o figure_n of_o christ_n himself_o walk_v visible_o and_o suffer_a death_n where_o of_o tertullian_n speak_v by_o this_o mean_a the_o word_n be_v fasten_v into_o his_o bread_n as_o hieremie_n say_v because_o his_o bread_n and_o his_o body_n be_v all_o one_o jewel_n after_o consecration_n say_v s._n ambrose_n the_o hody_n of_o christ_n 9_o be_v signify_v san._n s._n ambrose_n do_v speak_v of_o that_o signification_n which_o be_v ãâã_d make_v while_o the_o priest_n pronounce_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n our_o lord_n jesus_n himself_o say_v s._n ambrose_n cry_v out_o this_o be_v my_o body_n before_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o heavenly_a word_n it_o be_v name_v a_o other_o kind_n after_o consecration_n the_o body_n be_v signify_v the_o which_o place_n well_o understand_v do_v utter_o overthrow_v your_o figuratine_a opimon_n for_o s._n ambrose_n press_v upon_o the_o signification_n óf_n these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n the_o tur_fw-la body_n say_v he_o be_v signify_v the_o blood_n be_v name_v by_o mouth_n and_o this_o signification_n be_v make_v when_o christ_n or_o his_o minister_n do_v consecrate_v by_o these_o heavenly_a word_n now_o immediate_o before_o he_o say_v quid_fw-la dicimus_fw-la de_fw-la ipsa_fw-la consecratione_fw-la divina_fw-la ubi_fw-la verba_fw-la ipsa_fw-la domini_fw-la saluatoris_fw-la operantur_fw-la what_o say_v we_o of_o the_o self_n consecration_n of_o god_n where_o the_o self_n word_n of_o yâ_z lord_n our_o saviour_n do_v work_n now_o put_v together_o m._n jewel_n the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n do_v signify_v his_o body_n &_o blood_n and_z yâ_z self_n word_n do_v work_v &_o very_o themselves_o can_v work_v none_o other_o thing_n than_o they_o signify_v therefore_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o do_v signify_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n do_v work_n and_o make_v the_o same_o body_n and_o blood_n that_o be_v the_o signification_n dissembler_n whereof_o s._n ambrose_n speak_v the_o which_o his_o meaning_n when_o you_o dissemble_v you_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v a_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n iu._n i_o be_o oppress_v with_o the_o multitude_n of_o witness_n untruth_n san._n as_o for_o these_o witness_n that_o say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o figure_n witness_n be_v no_o witness_n to_o your_o belefe_v because_o they_o prove_v your_o intent_n as_o well_o as_o if_o a_o man_n will_v prove_v by_o solenââ¦e_a witness_n that_o i_o have_v no_o soul_n because_o i_o have_v a_o body_n for_o whereas_o a_o sacrament_n consist_v 23._o of_o two_o part_n of_o a_o ââ¦uisible_a grace_n and_o of_o a_o visible_a sign_n &_o whereas_o the_o invisible_a grace_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n make_v present_a to_o unite_v we_o to_o he_o and_o the_o visible_a sign_n thereof_o be_v the_o form_n of_o bread_n whosoever_o name_v that_o sacrament_n a_o sign_n or_o a_o figure_n whether_o he_o mean_v both_o the_o grace_n and_o the_o sign_n or_o the_o sign_n alone_o certain_o he_o nââ¦er_v mean_v to_o deny_v the_o substaââ¦ciall_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n iu._n it_o be_v a_o bondage_n and_o death_n of_o the_o soul_n say_v s._n augustine_n to_o take_v the_o sign_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v san._n it_o be_v more_o a_o miserable_a bondage_n and_o death_n to_o exponud_a the_o thing_n themselves_o for_o the_o sign_n as_o you_o do_v s._n augustine_n mean_v doct_n of_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o sign_n when_o ââ¦ither_o the_o thing_n that_o appear_v 5._o to_o be_v signify_v be_v not_o at_o all_o true_a according_a to_o the_o letter_n as_o when_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v angry_a or_o to_o repent_v or_o else_o when_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v absent_a in_o substance_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o old_a sacrifice_n 39_o which_o yet_o the_o jew_n esteem_v as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v the_o truth_n as_o therefore_o he_o that_o be_v athirst_a if_o he_o come_v to_o the_o yvie_n bush_n itself_o &_o go_v no_o further_o he_o shall_v thereby_o never_o the_o more_o be_v fill_v with_o drink_n so_o if_o a_o man_n come_v to_o a_o unproper_a or_o to_o a_o bare_a sign_n he_o be_v miserable_o deceive_v as_o those_o be_v who_o come_v to_o you_o for_o holy_a order_n who_o be_v not_o yourselves_o lauful_o ordain_v bishope_n but_o as_o if_o a_o glass_n of_o wine_n stand_v in_o the_o window_n to_o signify_v what_o kind_n of_o wine_n be_v to_o be_v sell_v he_o that_o come_v to_o that_o sign_n may_v quench_v his_o thirst_n because_o the_o substance_n which_o be_v signify_v to_o be_v sell_v be_v also_o there_o contain_v so_o he_o that_o come_v to_o yâ_z holy_a sign_n institute_v by_o christ_n he_o shall_v have_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o sign_n real_o present_a and_o real_o give_v to_o he_o he_o that_o come_v to_o baptism_n be_v in_o deed_n bear_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o that_o sacrament_n and_o ââ¦e_v that_o come_v to_o our_o lord_n table_n shall_v ââ¦ate_v by_o his_o mouth_n therein_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n real_o present_a ¶_o that_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o naked_a and_o bare_a figure_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacramentary_n harding_n the_o sacramentary_n hold_v opinion_n that_o chapter_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o in_o a_o figure_n sign_n or_o token_n only_o jewel_n m._n harding_n unjust_o report_v of_o us._n san._n i_o must_v say_v to_o you_o in_o this_o case_n m._n jewel_n as_o s._n ãâã_d say_v 10._o to_o the_o arrian_n who_o call_v christ_n dominum_fw-la the_o lord_n but_o yet_o untruth_n deny_v he_o to_o be_v god_n dominum_fw-la licet_fw-la nuncupes_fw-la dominum_fw-la tamen_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la dicis_fw-la quia_fw-la tibi_fw-la ex_fw-la communi_fw-la genere_fw-la potius_fw-la &_o familiari_fw-la tri._n nomine_fw-la quâm_fw-la ex_fw-la natura_fw-la sit_fw-la dominus_fw-la albeit_o you_o name_v he_o lord_n yet_o you_o mean_v he_o not_o to_o be_v the_o lord_n because_o he_o be_v a_o lord_n to_o you_o rather_o by_o a_o common_a kind_n and_o a_o familiar_a name_n then_o by_o nature_n even_o so_o pretend_v what_o honourable_a opinion_n or_o doctrine_n you_o listen_v of_o christ_n supper_n as_o long_o as_o by_o nature_n and_o substance_n you_o think_v not_o that_o external_a gift_n to_o be_v his_o body_n which_o himself_o call_v so_o you_o rather_o ãâã_d it_o by_o a_o better_a name_n then_o mean_v it_o to_o be_v any_o better_a thing_n than_o a_o bare_a sign_n and_o figure_n ebion_n although_o he_o deny_v christ_n godhead_n yet_o as_o epiphanius_n 30_o tell_v he_o
affirm_v he_o to_o rule_v angel_n and_o all_o that_o ever_o be_v make_v by_o god_n and_o his_o scholar_n call_v he_o a_o prophet_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o notwithstanding_o for_o so_o much_o as_o they_o beleve_v ãâã_d not_o to_o be_v god_n by_o nature_n the_o catholics_n never_o doubt_v man_n to_o say_v that_o they_o teach_v he_o to_o be_v nudum_fw-la hominem_fw-la a_o naked_a and_o bare_a man_n right_o so_o whatsoever_o holiness_n be_v annex_v to_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v it_o the_o sign_n of_o never_o so_o great_a a_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n be_v it_o call_v never_o so_o much_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n yet_o if_o it_o remain_v still_o in_o the_o former_a substance_n if_o the_o truth_n which_o it_o be_v appoint_v to_o signify_v be_v absent_a it_o be_v bare_a bread_n and_o bare_a wine_n token_n &_o a_o bare_a token_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n amend_v your_o belefe_v m._n juell_n if_o you_o will_v have_v we_o to_o amend_v our_o term_n jewel_n we_o feed_v not_o the_o people_n with_o bare_a figure_n san._n the_o question_n be_v not_o how_o you_o feed_v the_o people_n by_o your_o doctrine_n untruth_n but_o what_o sign_n you_o teach_v the_o sacrament_n itself_o ãâã_d be_v whether_o it_o be_v such_o a_o sign_n as_o have_v present_a in_o a_o secret_a manner_n the_o truth_n signify_v thereby_o or_o else_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o a_o truth_n absent_a in_o substance_n for_o two_o kind_n of_o sign_n there_o be_v one_o which_o sign_n by_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o own_o substance_n consider_v and_o well_o understand_v do_v signify_v a_o other_o manner_n of_o truth_n belong_v to_o itself_o sign_n as_o when_o a_o loaf_n of_o bread_n be_v true_a bread_n in_o substance_n be_v set_v to_o signify_v true_a bread_n also_o but_o yet_o in_o that_o respect_n as_o bread_n be_v there_o to_o be_v buy_v &_o sell_v a_o other_o sign_n there_o be_v where_o the_o truth_n signify_v be_v absent_a in_o substance_n as_o when_o a_o ivy_n bush_n do_v signify_v wine_n to_o be_v sold._n this_o late_a kind_n of_o sign_n or_o figure_n be_v utter_o sign_n naked_a bare_a and_o without_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v signify_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o of_o these_o two_o kind_n of_o sign_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n the_o catholic_n say_v the_o best_a and_o rich_a kind_n of_o sign_n be_v there_o because_o there_o be_v christ_n body_n 11_o realy_a present_a to_o signify_v and_o as_o it_o be_v by_o seal_n to_o witness_v his_o own_o death_n and_o passion_n you_o teach_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v still_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o our_o sign_n be_v more_o worthy_a of_o christ_n godhead_n and_o more_o proper_o a_o sign_n or_o a_o seal_n in_o truth_n of_o nature_n then_o you_o for_o as_o s._n hilary_n and_o s._n cyrill_n teach_v signaculorum_fw-la ea_fw-la natura_fw-la trinit_fw-la est_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la such_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o sign_n or_o of_o seal_n that_o they_o set_v forth_o the_o whole_a form_n of_o the_o kind_n of_o thing_n print_v in_o they_o 29._o and_o have_v no_o less_o in_o themselves_o than_o those_o thing_n have_v whence_o they_o be_v seal_v after_o this_o sort_n god_n the_o father_n sign_v christ_n and_o christ_n thereby_o be_v the_o form_n the_o print_n the_o sign_n the_o figure_n the_o 6._o image_n of_o his_o father_n but_o as_o s._n hilary_n show_v imago_fw-la authoris_fw-la trinit_fw-la &_o veritas_fw-la he_o be_v the_o image_n of_o he_o who_o he_o represent_v &_o also_o the_o truth_n i_o warrant_v you_o m._n jewel_n you_o feed_v the_o people_n with_o no_o doctrine_n of_o any_o such_o sign_n or_o seal_v present_a in_o christ_n supper_n for_o you_o say_v afterward_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v a_o erathly_a thing_n &_o therefore_o a_o figure_n i_o pray_v you_o can_v bread_n be_v other_o than_o a_o bare_a figure_n if_o it_o ââ¦il_v remain_v earthly_a and_o corruptible_a i_o say_v further_o to_o you_o m._n jewel_n and_o yeââ¦_n bear_v no_o false_a witness_n at_o all_o that_o your_o ãâã_d be_v more_o bare_a shadow_n then_o everwere_v any_o even_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o they_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a do_v in_o appearance_n of_o true_a flesh_n and_o in_o true_a blood_n shed_v foreshewe_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o shall_v die_v for_o us._n melchisedech_n likewise_o have_v beside_o his_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o real_a body_n of_o abraham_n present_a who_o he_o offer_v to_o god_n and_o in_o he_o 14._o 3._o jesus_n christ_n his_o seed_n but_o you_o have_v bare_a bread_n and_o bare_a wine_n without_o any_o real_a flesh_n at_o all_o either_o present_a or_o offer_v must_v needs_o 4._o have_v a_o naked_a sign_n and_o a_o bare_a figure_n such_o as_o only_a cain_n have_v and_o his_o brood_n iu._n we_o teach_v that_o in_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n christ_n be_v set_v before_o we_o even_o as_o he_o be_v crucify_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o therein_o we_o may_v behold_v remission_n of_o sin_n san._n admit_v you_o ââ¦ache_v so_o then_o be_v your_o sermon_n better_o than_o your_o sacrament_n for_o a_o man_n may_v look_v long_a inowgh_n upon_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n before_o he_o can_v pick_v out_o of_o their_o earthly_a nature_n bare_a christ_n crucify_v but_o if_o that_o bless_a belefe_v be_v maintain_v according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o after_o consecration_n worship_v the_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n they_o the_o token_n which_o contain_v the_o true_a body_n that_o diââ¦d_v for_o we_o in_o it_o be_v no_o bare_a token_n but_o the_o truth_n itself_o in_o substance_n and_o a_o token_n of_o the_o visible_a manner_n thereof_o iu._n we_o teach_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v very_o give_v to_o we_o and_o that_o untruth_n we_o very_o eat_v it_o and_o live_v by_o it_o and_o be_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n san._n how_o well_o you_o teach_v it_o the_o thing_n itself_o will_v try_v âª_o but_o all_o this_o prove_v not_o that_o your_o sacrament_n have_v ever_o the_o more_o in_o it_o unless_o you_o say_v that_o you_o receive_v all_o this_o under_o yâ_z form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n a_o goodly_a matter_n your_o word_n in_o preach_v to_o hear_v ãâã_d the_o which_o infidel_n may_v be_v admit_v shall_v be_v better_a than_o the_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ._n how_o we_o be_v flesh_n of_o christ_n flesh_n i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o five_o book_n the_o five_o chapter_n iu._n yet_o we_o ââ¦av_v not_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v do_v ââ¦way_o or_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v let_v down_o from_o hââ¦uen_n or_o make_v real_o present_a san._n that_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o your_o sacrament_n be_v still_o bare_a &_o naked_a for_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o you_o talk_v oââ¦_n be_v tell_v to_o man_n ear_n but_o nothing_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o sââ¦ents_n as_o for_o your_o nick_n name_v of_o thing_n as_o of_o do_v away_o bread_n in_o steed_n of_o change_v &_o of_o let_v down_o christ_n body_n from_o heaââ¦en_n we_o must_v pardon_v you_o therein_o it_o be_v your_o grace_n to_o rail_v or_o rather_o the_o lack_n of_o grace_n in_o you_o we_o teach_v bread_n to_o be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n through_o his_o power_n iu._n he_o must_v mount_v on_o high_a say_v chrysostome_n who_o so_o will_v ãâã_d reach_v to_o that_o body_n 24._o san._n you_o overreach_v yourself_o when_o you_o turn_v accedere_fw-la to_o reach_v âª_o it_o be_v to_o come_v unto_o &_o not_o to_o reach_v for_o s._n chrysostom_n speak_v of_o come_v to_o the_o holy_a visible_a table_n which_o stand_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o mean_v that_o who_o so_o come_v to_o receive_v thenââ¦_n the_o holy_a meat_n he_o must_v in_o good_a faith_n &_o life_n climme_v up_o to_o heaven_n and_o not_o that_o he_o shall_v go_v thither_o to_o receive_v the_o mystery_n ipsa_fw-la chrys._n namque_fw-la mensa_fw-la for_o the_o very_a table_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o meat_n upon_o 24._o the_o table_n be_v our_o salvation_n and_o life_n and_o again_o this_o ãâã_d make_v that_o while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o life_n earth_n may_v we_o heaven_n to_o us._n iu._n send_v up_o thy_o faith_n say_v augustine_n and_o thou_o have_v take_v he_o 50._o san._n the_o place_n be_v by_o you_o abuse_v and_o draw_v from_o a_o misbeleve_a jew_n to_o who_o it_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o christian_a ãâã_d see_v good_a reader_n my_o second_o book_n xxix_o chapter_n iu._n in_o deed_n the_o bread_n thaââ¦_n we_o receive_v with_o our_o bodily_a mouth_n ãâã_d be_v a_o earthly_a thing_n &_o therefore_o a_o figure_n as_o the_o water_n in_o ãâã_d san._n the_o water_n in_o baptism_n be_v no_o figure_n
be_v the_o godhead_n to_o be_v eat_v of_o man_n real_o while_o man_n eat_v that_o flesh_n wherein_o the_o godhead_n corporal_o dwell_v you_o teach_v the_o godhead_n to_o be_v eat_v by_o faith_n alone_o as_o it_o be_v eat_v before_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n and_o none_o otherwise_o 2._o jewel_n christ_n body_n be_v meat_n of_o the_o mind_n not_o of_o the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d s._n cyprian_n san._n i_o find_v no_o such_o word_n in_o s._n ãâã_d ãâã_d it_o who_o soever_o do_v speak_v these_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o meat_n he_o speak_v of_o be_v not_o material_a bread_n for_o then_o it_o shall_v be_v meat_n of_o the_o belly_n but_o it_o be_v only_o the_o bread_n of_o god_n and_o flesh_n of_o christ._n which_o in_o ãâã_d be_v not_o ãâã_d to_o fill_v the_o belly_n but_o rather_o to_o tame_v it_o and_o to_o make_v we_o more_o temperate_a and_o chaste_a ââ¦truth_n iu._n believe_v and_o thou_o have_v eat_v say_v s._n augustine_n of_o christ_n bless_a body_n san._n thou_o have_v eat_v by_o faith_n but_o not_o yet_o in_o sacrament_n those_o word_n be_v speak_v of_o spiritual_a and_z nor_o of_o sacramental_a eat_n therefore_o do_v you_o ãâã_d to_o apply_v they_o to_o yâ_z sacrament_n albeit_o faith_n be_v necessary_a also_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n worthy_o 13._o jewel_n it_o be_v better_a to_o use_v the_o word_n figure_n than_o the_o word_n real_o ãâã_d corporal_o san._n it_o be_v better_a to_o use_v the_o word_n body_n flesh_n blood_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n than_o the_o word_n figure_n which_o be_v use_v of_o the_o father_n only_a to_o show_v in_o what_o sort_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n bââ¦t_v not_o to_o change_v yâ_z word_n of_o scripture_n flesh_n body_n blood_n into_o other_o word_n figure_n sign_n token_n god_n forebid_v yâ_z man_n shall_v unplace_v god_n word_n but_o they_o add_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n other_o word_n to_o expound_v that_o this_o be_v not_o christ_n visible_a body_n but_o the_o ãâã_d thereof_o because_o it_o be_v the_o substance_n thereof_o under_o a_o other_o form_n âª_o but_o you_o m._n jewel_n be_v coââ¦tent_a to_o forget_v the_o word_n of_o god_n at_o this_o time_n and_o to_o name_v the_o father_n be_v they_o then_o above_o the_o word_n of_o god_n how_o long_o will_v you_o halt_v come_v home_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o yâ_z gospel_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o m._n harding_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o evangeliste_n and_o out_o of_o s._n paul_n and_o you_o wander_v in_o ãâã_d and_o seek_v phrase_n of_o speech_n have_v not_o allege_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n ãâã_d that_o effect_n of_o the_o sacramental_a presence_n not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o syllable_n so_o well_o you_o love_v the_o gospel_n whereof_o you_o talk_v so_o much_o untruth_n iu._n the_o old_a father_n use_v not_o these_o word_n corporal_o substantial_o in_o case_n of_o be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n san._n it_o be_v a_o impudent_a mouth_n which_o so_o speak_v i_o will_v construe_v the_o father_n word_n to_o you_o in_o due_a place_n ¶_o m._n juell_n have_v not_o reply_v well_o touch_v the_o 6._o chapter_n ãâã_d of_o s._n john_n but_o have_v abuse_v as_o well_o the_o gospel_n as_o diverse_a chapter_n authority_n of_o the_o father_n harding_n the_o promise_n of_o geve_v the_o flesh_n which_o division_n christ_n will_v geve_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n be_v only_o perform_v in_o the_o supper_n prove_v the_o same_o very_a substance_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o supper_n which_o be_v offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o jewel_n this_o principle_n be_v false_a in_o itself_o untruth_n san._n it_o be_v a_o true_a principle_n as_o it_o shall_v appear_v afterward_o jewel_n it_o be_v full_a of_o dangerous_a doctrine_n and_o may_v lead_v to_o despeââ¦tion_n untruth_n saunder_n it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o you_o because_o it_o show_v that_o you_o must_v either_o subââ¦cribe_v or_o despeire_n but_o otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o dangerous_a untruth_n jewel_n m._n harding_n suppose_v no_o man_n may_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o in_o the_o sacrament_n san._n you_o misrââ¦port_v the_o meaning_n of_o d._n harding_n who_o deni_v not_o but_o that_o christ_n flesh_n may_v be_v eat_v spiritual_o both_o by_o faith_n as_o the_o just_a patriarch_n and_o prophââ¦s_n have_v already_o eat_v it_o and_o also_o by_o baptism_n according_a to_o the_o which_o way_n those_o have_v eat_v it_o 6._o who_o christ_n before_o this_o talk_n make_v at_o capharnaum_n have_v baptize_v 4._o by_o the_o mean_a of_o his_o disciple_n which_o two_o wayââ¦s_n notwithsââ¦anding_v ââ¦ue_v for_o so_o much_o as_o christ_n promââ¦h_v at_o capharââ¦m_n to_o gââ¦ne_v his_o ââ¦she_fw-mi afterward_o to_o be_v eat_v that_o giste_n must_v differ_v both_o from_o eat_v by_o faith_n and_o by_o baptism_n and_o therefore_o d._n harding_n worthy_o say_v it_o be_v only_o perform_v in_o yâ_z last_o supper_n the_o which_o way_n of_o geve_v his_o flesh_n be_v only_o to_o come_v and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o spiritual_a but_o also_o real_a jewel_n the_o word_n be_v plain_a and_o general_a unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n untruth_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o san._n it_o be_v not_o say_v in_o s._n john_n habebitis_fw-la nullam_fw-la vitam_fw-la you_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n but_o non_fw-la habebitis_fw-la vitam_fw-la you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o i_o think_v it_o escape_v you_o without_o malice_n but_o yet_o it_o chance_v not_o well_o to_o put_v the_o negative_a to_o the_o noun_n which_o shall_v have_v be_v join_v to_o the_o verb_n christ_n mean_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v have_v life_n who_o be_v of_o discretion_n to_o prove_v himself_o refuse_v to_o ãâã_d the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n iu._n see_v christian_a child_n receive_v not_o the_o sacrament_n by_o m._n untruth_n harding_n it_o will_v follow_v they_o have_v no_o life_n san._n it_o will_v follow_v that_o they_o have_v not_o in_o themselves_o the_o flesh_n of_o life_n as_o s._n cyrillus_n expound_v these_o word_n non_fw-la ââ¦bitis_fw-la vitam_fw-la 13._o id_fw-la est_fw-la carnem_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o flesh_n of_o life_n in_o vobis_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la corpore_fw-la vestro_fw-la in_o you_o that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o your_o body_n but_o you_o make_v a_o untrue_a sequel_n thereof_o to_o say_v they_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n at_o all_o for_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v again_o in_o baptism_n have_v the_o life_n of_o spiritual_a birth_n which_o suffice_v he_o if_o he_o die_v before_o the_o year_n of_o discretion_n but_o afterward_o he_o be_v ââ¦und_v to_o comââ¦_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o spiritual_a liââ¦e_n to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o life_n which_o be_v the_o supper_n of_o christ._n untruth_n jewel_n christ_n geve_v his_o body_n not_o only_o in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o m._n harding_n imagine_v but_o at_o all_o time_n to_o the_o faithful_a san._n you_o ãâã_d a_o pleasure_n to_o ãâã_d upon_o d._n harding_n without_o a_o plain_a song_n d._n harding_n grant_v that_o christ_n gââ¦th_v himself_o by_o faith_n and_o ãâã_d but_o geve_v not_o his_o flesh_n by_o sacramââ¦nt_n and_o 13_o natural_a participation_n which_o as_o s._n cyrill_n say_v be_v obtain_v by_o partake_v the_o mystical_a blessing_n but_o only_o in_o the_o supper_n jewel_n s._n ambrose_n say_v christ_n geve_v this_o brââ¦ade_n to_o all_o man_n 118._o daily_o and_o at_o all_o time_n san._n s._n ambrose_n may_v well_o mean_a either_o of_o the_o gift_n which_o be_v make_v in_o spirit_n to_o they_o that_o believe_v &_o love_v god_n or_o in_o sacrament_n to_o they_o that_o come_v to_o the_o holy_a table_n which_o be_v always_o ãâã_d for_o good_a man_n for_o he_o teach_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n to_o be_v our_o 4._o supersubstancial_a and_o daily_a bread_n and_o will_v man_n daily_o to_o come_v unto_o it_o jewel_n then_o it_o be_v false_a that_o christ_n perforââ¦_n ãâã_d promise_n and_o untruth_n geve_v his_o body_n only_o at_o the_o ministratââ¦_n of_o the_o sacrament_n saunder_n it_o be_v a_o unhonest_a thing_n thus_o to_o misreporte_n d._n hardings_n meaning_n you_o mingle_v the_o perform_n of_o one_o certain_a promise_n of_o christ_n make_v in_o s._n john_n with_o geââ¦g_v his_o body_n any_o way_n at_o al._n d._n harding_n speak_v not_o of_o every_o geve_v his_o body_n but_o of_o yâ_z geve_v wherein_o he_o perform_v only_o that_o promise_v make_v in_o s._n ihon._n whereafter_o yâ_z promise_v of_o geve_v he_o say_v his_o flesh_n be_v very_o meat_n 6._o &_o his_o blood_n very_o drink_v
geve_v whereas_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o yet_o deliver_v but_o be_v only_o commend_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o word_n unto_o the_o jew_n when_o christ_n say_v the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v geve_v be_v my_o flesh_n 2._o iââ¦_n commendare_fw-la be_v latin_a to_o geve_v yet_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v translate_v i_o have_v give_v 3._o for_o vivificabit_fw-la m._n jewel_n read_v vivificat_fw-la it_o do_v geve_v life_n for_o it_o shall_v geve_v life_n he_o be_v ââ¦oth_o to_o have_v any_o commendation_n past_a or_o any_o geve_v of_o life_n to_o come_v for_o he_o will_v so_o understand_v christ_n word_n that_o the_o gift_n &_o the_o quicken_a may_v be_v present_a lest_o it_o shall_v apperteyn_v to_o the_o supper_n whereas_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o gift_n be_v past_a in_o those_o word_n i_o will_v geve_v and_o the_o geve_v of_o life_n to_o come_v very_o because_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v then_o geve_v life_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v receive_v these_o be_v miserable_a shift_n to_o save_v yourself_o from_o subscribe_v iu._n we_o have_v a_o spiritual_a mouth_n a_o spiritual_a taste_n eye_n ear_n as_o untruthe_n basill_n leo_n origen_n tertulliá_n say_v christ_n be_v to_o be_v digest_v by_o faith_n he_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o mind_n not_o of_o the_o belli_fw-la to_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o be_v to_o eat_v the_o live_a bread_n therefore_o christ_n meaning_n be_v spiritual_a and_o not_o real_a san._n what_o gross_a ignorance_n be_v this_o to_o think_v that_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n hinder_v my_o spiritual_a mouth_n reason_n taste_n ear_n eye_n faith_n or_o mind_n all_o these_o must_v go_v together_o christ_n take_v his_o body_n to_o bring_v to_o our_o body_n the_o meat_n whereof_o our_o soul_n may_v spiritual_o eat_v it_o be_v the_o fond_a kind_n of_o reason_v in_o the_o world_n by_o one_o truth_n to_o deny_v a_o other_o see_v both_o stand_n together_o be_v my_o faith_n the_o less_o because_o christ_n be_v bodily_a seen_v in_o earth_n how_o be_v then_o my_o spiritual_a feed_v the_o worse_o because_o the_o food_n of_o life_n be_v in_o my_o mouth_n do_v not_o tertullian_n say_v the_o flesh_n car_fw-fr be_v feed_v with_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o send_v the_o soul_n may_v be_v make_v fat_a of_o god_n 4._o iu._n m._n harding_n will_v say_v eat_v with_o mouth_n and_o grind_n with_o untruthe_n tooth_n be_v a_o work_n spiritual_fw-la and_o so_o he_o be_v a_o good_a proctor_n for_o the_o ca_o pharnaite_n san_n no_o that_o hââ¦_n will_v not_o say_v except_o the_o meat_n be_v so_o eat_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o eat_v it_o be_v so_o clean_a and_o spiritual_a that_o although_o it_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n yet_o the_o ââ¦aith_n both_o may_v and_o do_v work_v upon_o it_o by_o adoration_n and_o participation_n as_o it_o chance_v in_o christ_n supper_n and_o therefore_o christ_n say_v work_v the_o meat_n which_o perish_v 6._o not_o which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v geve_v you_o and_o he_o mean_v work_v it_o by_o soul_n by_o beleve_v and_o in_o body_n by_o eat_v and_o the_o prophet_n david_n say_v they_o have_v eat_v and_o worship_v this_o 21._o understanding_n neither_o yâ_z capharnaite_n have_v nor_o the_o sacrmentary_n have_v &_o therefore_o they_o grind_v now_o common_a bread_n with_o their_o tooth_n whereââ¦_n they_o shall_v bitter_o gnash_v if_o they_o repent_v not_o yâ_z soon_o jewel_n chrysostom_n will_v not_o suffer_v this_o evasion_n who_o say_v to_o understand_v joan._n carnal_o be_v to_o understand_v plain_o as_o the_o thing_n be_v utter_v 47_o ãâã_d and_o to_o think_v upon_o nothing_o else_o san._n we_o understand_v not_o so_o for_o we_o see_v the_o form_n of_o bread_n think_v upon_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v under_o it_o therefore_o s._n chrysostom_n be_v not_o against_o our_o evasion_n jewel_n s._n augustine_n say_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o figure_n or_o manner_n doct_n of_o speech_n 16_o san._n what_o you_o mean_v by_o your_o manner_n of_o speech_n i_o can_v not_o ãâã_d tell_v s._n augustine_n use_v not_o those_o word_n but_o except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v in_o deed_n a_o figure_n and_o the_o speak_v thereof_o be_v figurative_a because_o it_o be_v not_o mean_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v visible_o eat_v as_o flesh_n be_v eat_v at_o common_a table_n but_o yet_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v real_o eat_v albeit_o the_o manner_n of_o eat_v be_v figu_n rative_a as_o we_o know_v and_o therefore_o when_o christ_n have_v consecrate_v the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o speech_n be_v not_o figurative_a because_o as_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o body_n be_v to_o be_v eat_v so_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o eat_v it_o be_v determine_v and_o theââ¦_n all_o be_v plain_a to_o good_a believer_n but_o not_o to_o judas_n and_o his_o companion_n who_o believe_v no_o more_o than_o they_o see_v bodily_a s._n augustine_n then_o call_v those_o word_n except_o you_o eat_v my_o flesh_n figurative_a refer_v the_o figure_n to_o the_o manner_n of_o eat_v but_o not_o to_o the_o substance_n which_o be_v to_o be_v eat_v for_o else_o if_o by_o no_o mean_a the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v eat_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v eat_v by_o faith_n but_o if_o it_o may_v be_v so_o eat_v it_o may_v be_v eat_v by_o mouth_n also_o in_o that_o pure_a manner_n as_o it_o be_v give_v us._n jewel_n the_o figure_n command_v we_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n translate_n passion_n san._n it_o have_v be_v more_o true_o translate_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o communicate_v with_o christ_n passion_n communicare_fw-la be_v to_o partake_v in_o the_o full_a manner_n that_o may_v be_v and_o how_o can_v you_o possible_o communicate_v better_o or_o more_o full_o with_o christ_n passion_n then_o to_o eat_v worthy_o the_o self_n body_n that_o suffer_v whereof_o s._n paul_n say_v 11._o how_o oft_o so_o ever_o you_o eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v the_o chalice_n of_o our_o lord_n you_o shall_v show_v his_o death_n until_o he_o come_v that_o be_v the_o communicate_v whereof_o s._n augustine_n speak_v jewel_n and_o with_o comfort_n and_o profit_n lie_v up_o in_o our_o memory_n that_o christ_n have_v suffer_v death_n for_o us._n san._n the_o perfect_a lay_n of_o this_o matter_n in_o our_o memory_n be_v with_o 22._o penance_n &_o love_n to_o eat_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v make_v for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o christ._n thence_o come_v power_n to_o live_v through_o or_o for_o christ_n so_o real_o as_o he_o live_v through_o or_o for_o his_o father_n with_o who_o he_o be_v one_o thing_n and_o nature_n of_o this_o whole_a say_n of_o s._n augustine_n i_o have_v entreat_v more_o full_o in_o my_o 3._o b._n the._n fourteen_o chapter_n jewel_n this_o therefore_o be_v christ_n meaning_n and_o the_o very_a eat_n untruthe_n of_o his_o flesh_n san._n not_o this_o which_o you_o mean_v but_o this_o it_o be_v m._n jewel_n as_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o the_o whole_a man_n must_v eat_v as_o well_o in_o body_n as_o in_o soul_n because_o the_o whole_a be_v take_v and_o assumpt_v of_o christ_n the_o whole_a be_v incorporate_v by_o baptism_n the_o whole_a redeem_v by_o death_n and_o the_o whole_a shall_v be_v crown_v with_o glory_n therefore_o the_o true_a eat_n be_v to_o eat_v that_o meat_n which_o of_o itself_o consist_v of_o body_n soul_n and_o godhead_n to_o eat_v it_o i_o say_v in_o body_n soul_n and_o spirit_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o jewel_n the_o capharnaite_n understand_v christ_n gross_o of_o éate_v 5._o with_o tooth_n that_o which_o christ_n speak_v spiritual_o and_o so_o will_v m._n untruthe_n harding_n teach_v the_o people_n san._n d._n harding_n ãâã_d no_o more_o than_o he_o take_v of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o evangelist_n it_o be_v no_o grosie_n thing_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n to_o eat_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n the_o capharnaite_n go_v no_o far_o than_o to_o their_o tooth_n and_o belly_n but_o we_o make_v the_o tooth_n to_o serve_v the_o mind_n also_o that_o of_o origenes_n s._n dierom_n s._n augustine_n make_v not_o against_o us._n iu._n tertullian_n say_v the_o capharnaite_n think_v his_o speachââ¦_n be_v 6._o hard_a and_o intolerable_a as_o though_o he_o have_v determine_v to_o geve_v they_o untruthe_n his_o flesh_n very_o and_o in_o deed_n to_o be_v eat_v with_o their_o mouth_n therein_o say_v tertullian_n stand_v their_o erroure_n san._n you_o know_v they_o think_v not_o of_o eat_v it_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n for_o s._n augustine_n say_v in_o christ_n person_n quis_fw-la modus_fw-la cypria_n sit_fw-la manducandi_fw-la istum_fw-la panem_fw-la ignoratis_fw-la you_o know_v not_o what_o way_n there_o be_v of_o eat_v this_o bread_n therefore_o the_o
omnipotency_n alone_o as_o you_o caââ¦ill_v ¶_o whether_o the_o catholics_n or_o sacramentary_n expound_v viij_o chapter_n more_o unproper_o or_o inconuenient_o the_o word_n belong_v to_o christ_n supper_n division_n harding_n because_o these_o place_n report_v that_o christ_n give_v at_o his_o supper_n his_o very_a body_n the_o father_n say_v it_o be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n untruthââ¦_n jewel_n a_o thing_n be_v take_v to_o make_v prouf_a which_o be_v doubtful_a and_o the_o antecedent_n be_v unprove_v sand._n say_v not_o christ_n take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n say_v not_o the_o evangelist_n that_o he_o give_v unto_o his_o apostle_n how_o then_o be_v the_o antecedent_n unprove_v jewel_n the_o father_n call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o figure_n a_o token_n a_o sign_n ij_o untruthe_n a_o image_n &_o caet_fw-la therefore_o christ_n word_n may_v be_v take_v with_o a_o metaphor_n trope_n or_o figure_n san._n it_o stand_v well_o together_o to_o be_v a_o sign_n and_o the_o truth_n as_o christ_n be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o also_o god_n the_o high_a 2._o every_o sign_n or_o image_n be_v the_o less_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o therefore_o the_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n differ_v in_o form_n but_o not_o in_o substance_n from_o christ_n himself_o and_o so_o albeit_o the_o sacra_fw-la mean_v be_v a_o figure_n yet_o the_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v not_o tropââ¦call_a or_o unproper_a jewel_n even_o duns_n see_v that_o follow_v the_o bare_a letter_n we_o must_v doubtful_a needs_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n itself_o be_v christ_n body_n san._n think_v you_o any_o man_n do_v believe_v you_o without_o allegiââ¦g_v the_o place_n who_o have_v abuse_v so_o many_o father_n already_o or_o ââ¦row_v you_o we_o spend_v so_o much_o time_n in_o read_v duns_n that_o we_o know_v all_o that_o be_v in_o he_o jewel_n so_o the_o word_n stand_v this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n untruthe_n san._n where_o stand_v they_o so_o be_v it_o write_v in_o any_o place_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n and_o yet_o you_o say_v the_o word_n stand_v so_o i_o think_v it_o be_v so_o in_o your_o gospel_n but_o sure_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o we_o jewel_n they_z saââ¦_n this_o mean_v not_o this_o bread_n but_o one_o certain_a untruthe_n thing_n in_o general_n san._n i_o have_v show_v how_o it_o be_v take_v in_o my_o 4._o book_n in_o the_o 4._o 5._o and._n 6._o chapter_n it_o can_v not_o signify_v bread_n by_o any_o mean_n neither_o do_v it_o only_o signify_v in_o general_a as_o you_o say_v but_o it_o signify_v that_o which_o be_v contain_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n jewel_n est_fw-la they_o expound_v erit_fw-la it_o shall_v be_v untruthe_n san._n it_o be_v a_o shameful_a pleasure_n that_o this_o man_n have_v in_o falsehood_n for_o we_o believe_v that_o christ_n take_v this_o word_n est_fw-fr is_z to_o consecrate_v his_o chryso_n body_n withal_o because_o of_o all_o word_n it_o signify_v a_o most_o present_a pop_n be_v of_o a_o thing_n and_o for_o asmuch_o ââ¦s_n god_n work_v in_o a_o moment_n antioc_n or_o at_o the_o instant_n of_o his_o word_n he_o choose_v to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n thec_fw-la forth_o with_o make_v it_o so_o as_z s._n chrysostom_n &_o gregory_n nyssen_n affirm_v but_o he_o will_v not_o say_v this_o shall_v be_v my_o body_n which_o have_v be_v a_o promise_n only_o and_o not_o the_o work_n or_o make_v of_o the_o mystery_n hoc_fw-la jewel_n erit_fw-la they_o expound_v the_o substance_n of_o this_o uncertain_a general_a untruthe_n one_o thing_n shall_v be_v change_v san._n these_o interpretation_n be_v false_a neither_o be_v the_o substance_n uncertein_a which_o be_v change_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v and_o that_o because_o christ_n affirm_v that_o which_o be_v bread_n before_o he_o speak_v at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o speech_n to_o be_v his_o body_n to_o who_o voice_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n geve_v place_n to_o what_o he_o listen_v jewel_n be_v give_v they_o expound_v shall_v be_v give_v ãâã_d san._n what_o a_o vain_a tale_n be_v this_o see_v we_o upon_o the_o present_a gist_n shââ¦w_v a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n even_o preââ¦ently_o make_v and_o therefore_o we_o urge_v always_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o although_o it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v and_o both_o be_v true_a together_o the_o one_o in_o the_o supper_n concern_v the_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n the_o other_o on_o the_o cross_n concern_v the_o bloody_a sacrifice_n but_o yet_o against_o heretic_n we_o urge_v most_o the_o present_a gift_n this_o man_n by_o mock_v we_o seem_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o give_v at_o all_o for_o at_o the_o supper_n he_o will_v not_o grant_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o he_o mock_v at_o datur_fw-la for_o dabitur_fw-la yet_o if_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o cross_n it_o must_v be_v so_o expound_v of_o himself_o it_o be_v give_v that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o shall_v be_v give_v it_o be_v break_v be_v in_o the_o same_o condition_n with_o be_v give_v jewel_n do_v you_o this_o they_o expound_v sacrifice_v you_o this_o untruthe_n san._n nay_o sir_n they_o have_v first_o control_v your_o english_a as_o imperfect_a though_o not_o false_a afterward_o will_v have_v hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la also_o to_o signify_v make_v this_o thing_n to_o wit_n make_v my_o body_n the_o make_n of_o which_o sacrifice_a substance_n must_v needs_o be_v always_o a_o sacrifice_n i_o have_v speak_v hereof_o in_o my_o iiij_o book_n the._n xiij_o chapter_n jewel_n this_o bread_n they_o expound_v this_o that_o be_v bread_n doutful_a san._n you_o shall_v name_v the_o place_n where_o we_o so_o expound_v it_o for_o according_a to_o the_o circumstance_n it_o may_v be_v so_o take_v but_o much_o rather_o we_o take_v it_o for_o this_o food_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n after_o consecration_n jewel_n these_o verb_n he_o take_v he_o bless_v he_o break_v he_o give_v stand_v ãâã_d together_o and_o rule_v one_o case_n san._n they_o stand_v together_o in_o order_n of_o writing_n but_o not_o in_o order_n of_o do_v for_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n before_o he_o have_v break_v s._n paul_n will_v not_o have_v say_v the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v the_o communicate_v of_o christ_n body_n for_o it_o come_v 10._o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o it_o be_v the_o communicate_v of_o christ_n body_n if_o then_o the_o word_n of_o ãâã_d be_v speak_v before_o the_o break_n what_o wonder_v you_o ãâã_d the_o thing_n that_o be_v take_v be_v change_v we_o change_v the_o construction_n of_o those_o verb_n which_o follow_v the_o change_n jewel_n he_o take_v bread_n he_o bless_v it_o away_o untruthe_n san._n you_o jest_n but_o in_o deed_n we_o teach_v not_o the_o bread_n to_o be_v annihilate_v or_o do_v away_o but_o to_o be_v change_v into_o a_o better_a substance_n blessing_n for_o blessing_n bestow_v upon_o a_o creature_n be_v the_o abetter_n of_o it_o which_o be_v not_o do_v without_o some_o change_n now_o if_o the_o thing_n pronounce_v at_o the_o time_n of_o blessing_n by_o god_n be_v a_o other_o substance_n the_o former_a nature_n by_o blessing_n be_v then_o change_v in_o substance_n god_n bless_v i_o from_o such_o a_o man_n who_o scoââ¦th_v at_o the_o holy_a mystery_n jewel_n he_o break_v the_o accident_n san._n that_o be_v true_a because_o there_o be_v none_o other_o thing_n leave_v after_o consecration_n to_o be_v break_v and_o that_o you_o will_v confess_v if_o you_o think_v christ_n to_o have_v use_v a_o proper_a kind_n of_o speech_n which_o always_o you_o ought_v to_o think_v if_o it_o may_v possible_o be_v defend_v as_o it_o may_v and_o must_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n so_o that_o the_o chief_a question_n be_v of_o those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o rest_n must_v be_v rule_v by_o they_o jewel_n he_o give_v his_o body_n san._n we_o believe_v it_o a_o meet_a gift_n for_o christ_n then_o to_o geve_v common_a bread_n jewel_n upon_o these_o few_o word_n of_o christ_n thus_o many_o figure_n and_o untruthe_n more_o they_o have_v imagine_v sand._n be_v it_o not_o ãâã_d say_v of_o you_o upon_o these_o few_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o though_o all_o these_o be_v christ_n own_o word_n whereas_o the_o four_o verb_n be_v all_o write_v of_o the_o evangelist_n but_o never_o a_o one_o of_o they_o speak_v by_o christ._n which_o thing_n s._n ambrose_n also_o have_v note_v but_o d._n harding_n speak_v only_o of_o christ_n word_n wherein_o he_o ãâã_d his_o body_n in_o all_o which_o you_o have_v yet_o find_v never_o a_o figure_n for_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o make_v this_o thing_n be_v all_o proper_a word_n and_o
miraculouse_a 26._o you_o expound_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n for_o eat_v 26._o that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o not_o eat_v or_o resuse_v to_o eat_v for_o you_o 1ââ¦_n teach_v evil_a man_n not_o to_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v against_o s._n paul_n 27._o you_o will_v not_o have_v christ_n supper_n to_o be_v a_o external_a sacrifice_n 27._o sacrifice_n but_o to_o be_v worse_o in_o that_o point_n then_o the_o jewish_a or_o idolatours_n altar_n and_o table_n who_o both_o do_v sacrifice_n and_o also_o s._n paul_n compare_v 10_o christ_n table_n with_o they_o 28._o you_o so_o expound_v the_o show_n of_o christ_n death_n by_o eat_v 28._o death_n bread_n a_o figure_n of_o he_o that_o you_o rather_o show_v he_o not_o to_o be_v true_o dead_a because_o your_o figure_n be_v yet_o empty_a &_o void_a which_o can_v never_o prove_v christ_n death_n true_o pass_v 29._o you_o expound_v the_o not_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o christ_n 29._o body_n eat_v and_o other_o meat_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o you_o will_v not_o have_v ââ¦ting_n the_o body_n present_a wherein_o the_o difference_n be_v to_o be_v make_v 30._o you_o deny_v our_o union_n with_o christ_n flesh_n by_o corporal_a participation_n 30._o union_n which_o s._n paul_n teach_v by_o the_o example_n of_o adam_n &_o eve_n ãâã_d be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n 31._o whereas_o s._n pavia_n say_v christ_n to_o be_v so_o much_o better_a than_o 31._o blood_n angel_n by_o how_o much_o he_o have_v a_o more_o excellent_a name_n they_o they_o you_o regard_v not_o yâ_z name_n body_n &_o blood_n give_v to_o yâ_z mystery_n of_o christ_n but_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v still_o that_o they_o be_v before_o and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v that_o excellent_a substance_n which_o they_o be_v name_v to_o be_v 32._o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n so_o great_a and_o oft_o mention_v be_v make_v of_o 32._o blood_n christ_n supper_n as_o there_o be_v yet_o no_o promise_n can_v be_v find_v make_v to_o he_o who_o eat_v material_a bread_n and_o drink_v wine_n but_o all_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v for_o eatinge_v christ_n flesh_n and_o drink_v worthy_o his_o blood_n therefore_o you_o affirm_v bread_n to_o be_v eat_v and_o wine_n to_o be_v drunken_a in_o christ_n supper_n beside_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 33._o although_o david_n prophesy_v of_o cate_v and_o adore_v yet_o you_o 33._o 21._o will_v grant_v no_o such_o meat_n to_o be_v give_fw-ge to_o we_o which_o may_v be_v external_a lie_n adore_v 34._o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o prophet_n teach_v that_o by_o christ_n 34._o 9_o come_v all_o external_a idolatry_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o yet_o you_o fear_v 13._o not_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n own_o sacrament_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v itself_o a_o idol_n which_o be_v leave_v with_o we_o to_o keep_v we_o from_o all_o idolatry_n 35._o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v as_o to_o save_v so_o to_o feed_v the_o whole_a man_n 35._o why_o then_o deny_v you_o the_o food_n of_o life_n to_o our_o body_n affirm_v they_o to_o eat_v common_a bread_n and_o to_o drink_v common_a wine_n while_o the_o soul_n be_v feed_v by_o faith_n with_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 36._o if_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n we_o feed_v upon_o christ_n by_o faith_n 36._o alone_o why_o be_v that_o sacrament_n call_v a_o supper_n more_o them_z baptism_n where_o also_o we_o must_v feed_v on_o christ_n by_o faith_n 37._o see_v a_o figure_n may_v also_o be_v the_o truth_n itself_o whereof_o it_o be_v the_o 37._o 1_o figure_n as_o christ_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o his_o father_n and_o yet_o the_o same_o substance_n what_o reason_n have_v you_o why_o you_o will_v rather_o detract_v this_o hoââ¦our_n from_o christ_n sacrament_n then_o geve_v the_o same_o unto_o it_o 38._o 38._o christ_n be_v equal_a with_o his_o father_n make_v promise_n to_o we_o of_o his_o 6._o ââ¦ne_a flesh_n which_o his_o father_n have_v geââ¦en_o why_o then_o deny_v you_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v as_o real_a to_o we_o as_o his_o father_n give_v he_o real_a flesh_n 39_o how_o teach_v you_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v spirit_n &_o life_n 39_o 6._o to_o be_v notwithstanding_o figurative_a and_o consequent_o dead_a and_o void_a of_o all_o life_n or_o strength_n 40._o because_o yâ_z word_n of_o god_n who_o be_v only_o able_a to_o be_v feed_v upon_o 40._o 77._o by_o faith_n and_o so_o be_v the_o food_n of_o angel_n or_o soul_n will_v be_v also_o the_o meat_n of_o man_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o body_n it_o take_v flesh_n aââ¦d_v at_o his_o supper_n say_v to_o we_o take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o yet_o you_o make_v he_o still_o to_o be_v only_o the_o meat_n of_o the_o mind_n whereby_o we_o be_v exclude_v from_o have_v god_n corporal_o in_o we_o through_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n 41._o to_o conclude_v whereas_o you_o find_v flesh_n body_n blood_n join_v with_o ãâã_d eat_v drink_v taking_z partake_a geve_v break_v distribute_v communicate_v dââ¦udicating_v you_o expound_v all_o those_o word_n figurativelie_o as_o though_o god_n by_o so_o many_o way_n repeat_v those_o word_n have_v not_o strengthen_v the_o common_a and_o proper_a signification_n of_o they_o let_v this_o suffice_v for_o this_o time_n to_o show_v that_o you_o observe_v nor_o gender_n nor_o number_n nor_o nominative_a case_n nor_o verb_n nor_o antecedent_n nor_o relative_a nor_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o maker_n of_o the_o supper_n nor_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o the_o state_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o gospel_n nor_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n nor_o the_o ââ¦ulfilling_n of_o the_o old_a law_n nor_o the_o oft_o repete_v of_o the_o matter_n belong_v to_o christ_n supper_n but_o only_o to_o serve_v the_o eye_n and_o the_o sense_n deny_v all_o the_o marvelous_a 110._o work_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n yâ_z remembrance_n of_o all_o which_o this_o one_o mystery_n be_v affirm_v to_o be_v ââ¦rag_v no_o more_o m._n jewel_n of_o our_o figurative_a exposition_n since_o you_o have_v thus_o err_v in_o grammar_n in_o logic_n in_o divinity_n in_o truth_n in_o faith_n in_o common_a sense_n iu._n if_o in_o these_o word_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n levit._n you_o follow_v the_o letter_n it_o kill_v san._n to_o follow_v yâ_z letter_n be_v to_o take_v word_n as_o they_o sound_v to_o a_o inââ¦del_n as_o to_o have_v flesh_n tear_v in_o to_o piece_n and_o so_o eat_v but_o he_o that_o take_v they_o as_o christ_n in_o his_o supper_n by_o his_o fact_n do_v expound_v they_o do_v follow_v yâ_z spirit_n and_o not_o the_o letter_n ¶_o a_o notable_a place_n of_o s._n augustine_n corrupt_v by_o ix_o chapter_n m._n jewel_n ivel._n s._n augustine_n say_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n after_o iij._n a_o certain_a phrase_n or_o manner_n or_o trope_n or_o ââ¦igure_n of_o speech_n be_v the_o 23._o body_n of_o christ._n untruth_n saunder_n this_o place_n be_v wicked_o abuse_v because_o it_o be_v naked_o allege_v and_o false_o english_v whereas_o it_o depend_v whole_o upon_o the_o word_n go_v before_o which_o be_v these_o nónne_fw-fr semel_fw-la immolatus_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o se_fw-la ipso_fw-la &_o tamen_fw-la in_o sacramento_n &_o caet_fw-la be_v not_o pulorum_fw-la christ_n once_o offer_v up_o in_o himself_o and_o yet_o in_o the_o sacrament_n he_o be_v offer_v up_o for_o the_o people_n not_o only_o at_o every_o feast_n of_o easter_n but_o every_o day_n neither_o sure_o do_v he_o lie_v who_o be_v demand_v eum_n responderit_fw-la immolari_fw-la do_v answer_n that_o he_o be_v offer_v up_o for_o if_o the_o sacrament_n have_v not_o a_o certain_a likeness_n of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v the_o sacrament_n they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o sacrament_n out_o of_o this_o likeness_n they_o take_v also_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n then selue_o as_o therefore_o according_a to_o a_o certain_a ââ¦anner_n the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n be_v faith_n in_o these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n it_o be_v to_o be_v seen_v evident_o that_o he_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o thing_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o that_o thing_n the_o thing_n therefore_o itself_o must_v be_v first_o knoweââ¦_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v see_v how_o the_o sacrament_n thereof_o be_v both_o like_a unââ¦_n it_o and_o take_v the_o name_n thereof_o the_o thing_n itself_o in_o ouââ¦_n question_n be_v jesus_n christ_n &_o not_o only_o thing_n so_o but_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n neither_o only_o true_a in_o substance_n but_o even_o
true_a in_o shape_n in_o form_n in_o quantity_n and_o quality_n christ_n be_v make_v man_n in_o deed_n bear_v in_o deed_n he_o grow_v and_o walk_v upon_o the_o earth_n in_o deed_n according_a to_o the_o true_a and_o visible_a nature_n and_o form_n of_o man_n he_o suffer_v death_n in_o the_o same_o form_n and_o do_v shed_v his_o blood_n apart_o from_o his_o flesh_n now_o mark_v when_o it_o please_v he_o to_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n he_o will_v have_v all_o these_o thing_n beleve_v of_o we_o remember_v of_o we_o and_o follow_v as_o our_o weakness_n through_o his_o grace_n may_v suffer_v in_o consideration_n whereof_o he_o iustitute_v a_o sacrament_n of_o his_o own_o sacrament_n body_n and_o blood_n of_o which_o body_n of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v take_v &_o which_o be_v but_o one_o the_o first_o point_n of_o this_o sacrament_n must_v be_v say_v s._n augustine_n that_o it_o have_v a_o certain_a likeness_n or_o similitude_n with_o christ_n own_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o consequent_o that_o likeness_n shall_v make_v it_o to_o have_v the_o name_n itself_o what_o be_v the_o likeness_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n between_o thing_n it_o and_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n seek_v as_o long_o as_o you_o be_v able_a m._n jewel_n prie_fw-fr and_o serche_n never_o so_o entire_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o likeness_n to_o be_v in_o this_o point_n special_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n not_o have_v any_o outward_a image_n make_v of_o they_o be_v make_v present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o other_o thing_n &_o be_v so_o make_v present_a that_o thereby_o all_o the_o high_a mystery_n of_o christ_n visible_a body_n be_v mystical_o set_v before_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o true_a belever_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v make_v man_n by_o turn_v nation_n some_o of_o the_o pure_a blood_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n into_o his_o own_o flesh_n 2._o and_o blood_n and_o that_o be_v do_v without_o the_o seed_n of_o man_n by_o the_o 14._o virtue_n of_o the_o word_n and_o power_n of_o the_o whole_a trinity_n through_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o archangel_n gabriel_n even_o so_o the_o pure_a creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v make_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o they_o not_o by_o generation_n &_o corruption_n but_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o thing_n yâ_z who_o will_v trinity_n work_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o christ._n 2._o christ_n thus_o bear_v and_o have_v walk_v in_o his_o flesh_n come_v to_o die_v passion_n upon_o the_o cross_n where_o his_o blood_n be_v divide_v from_o his_o flesh_n the_o 11_o soul_n from_o the_o body_n but_o the_o godhead_n tarry_v still_o with_o both_o right_n so_o this_o sacrament_n have_v the_o body_n consecrate_v under_o one_o kind_n the_o blood_n under_o a_o other_o kind_n and_o they_o be_v adore_v of_o the_o saithfull_a a_o part_n yet_o the_o person_n which_o be_v one_o whereunto_o they_o be_v unite_v and_o the_o godhead_n in_o that_o person_n cause_v the_o two_o part_n to_o make_v but_o euseb._n one_o sacrament_n and_o the_o whole_a to_o be_v under_o each_o kind_n 5._o thus_o the_o likeness_n which_o be_v not_o in_o form_n but_o in_o substance_n and_o pascha_fw-la in_o the_o consecration_n of_o true_a faith_n between_o christ_n himself_o and_o this_o ment_fw-mi sacrament_n make_v this_o sacrament_n to_o be_v call_v his_o body_n &_o blood_n although_o in_o all_o respect_n it_o be_v not_o so_o upon_o which_o ground_n s._n hierom_n say_v dupliciter_fw-la sanguis_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o caro_fw-la intelligitur_fw-la etc._n etc._n ephes._n the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v understand_v two_o way_n either_o 1._o that_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a whereof_o himself_o say_v my_o flesh_n be_v true_o meat_n and_o my_o blood_n be_v true_o drink_v and_o except_o you_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v everlasting_a life_n or_o else_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v cru_fw-fr cify_v and_o the_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v with_o the_o spear_n of_o the_o soldier_n thus_o have_v we_o one_o flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o substance_n considere_v &_o flesh_n understand_v two_o way_n and_o that_o not_o false_o understand_v as_o the_o sacramentary_n imagine_v but_o true_o and_o in_o deed_n for_o a_o false_a understanding_n be_v hate_v of_o god_n this_o difference_n and_o this_o likeness_n be_v also_o note_v in_o the_o present_a word_n of_o s._n augustin_n when_o he_o say_v christ_n be_v once_o offer_v in_o himself_o note_v the_o word_n in_o himself_o to_o wit_n in_o his_o visible_a shape_n form_n and_o truth_n as_o well_o of_o substance_n as_o of_o quantity_n the_o same_o christ_n be_v daily_o offer_v in_o a_o sacrament_n be_v not_o these_o s._n augustine_n word_n âª_o christ_n be_v offer_v in_o himself_o &_o christ_n be_v offer_v in_o a_o sacrament_n be_v it_o not_o all_o one_o christ_n or_o be_v christ_n divide_v no_o no_o all_o be_v one_o substance_n but_o the_o mââ¦ner_n be_v not_o all_o one_o and_o far_a note_n very_o dyligent_o good_a reader_n that_o of_o the_o ââ¦lation_n two_o immolation_n or_o offering_n the_o one_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o other_o the_o one_o be_v the_o sign_n token_n figure_n sacrament_n of_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o the_o one_o be_v but_o once_o do_v because_o it_o be_v yâ_z great_a immolation_n 10._o which_o absolute_o fulfil_v all_o the_o law_n &_o prophet_n and_o it_o be_v make_v upon_o the_o crosse._n the_o other_o be_v make_v in_o the_o sacrament_n 11._o show_v keep_v preserve_v and_o appli_v daily_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o one_o oblation_n but_o christ_n be_v always_o one_o in_o both_o now_o this_o likeness_n of_o the_o incarnation_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n make_v and_o represent_v to_o the_o faithful_a by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n cause_v it_o to_o be_v call_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n conclude_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n according_a to_o a_o certain_a 23._o manner_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n m._n jewel_n english_v these_o word_n according_a to_o his_o manner_n false_o corrupt_o and_o ignorant_o he_o turn_v secundum_fw-la quendam_fw-la modum_fw-la after_o a_o certain_a phrase_n or_o moduââ¦_n manner_n or_o trope_n or_o figure_n of_o speech_n true_a it_o be_v that_o modus_fw-la do_v signify_v a_o manner_n or_o mean_a again_o it_o may_v be_v sometime_o yâ_z the_o manner_n be_v tropical_a or_o figurative_a but_o now_o it_o be_v not_o so_o mean_v and_o that_o be_v prove_v two_o way_n first_o because_o s._n augustine_n say_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o a_o certain_a manner_n est_fw-la sti_fw-la be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n he_o say_v not_o only_o it_o be_v call_v the_o body_n after_o a_o certain_a manner_n but_o it_o be_v the_o body_n therefore_o the_o manner_n that_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o thing_n itself_o in_o the_o substance_n thereof_o and_o not_o only_o in_o the_o phrase_n or_o trope_n or_o figure_n of_o speech_n as_o m._n jewel_n will_v have_v it_o again_o the_o name_n which_o the_o sacrament_n take_v be_v give_v as_o s._n augustine_n say_v according_a to_o a_o likeness_n which_o be_v between_o the_o thing_n sacrament_n and_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o likeness_n than_o must_v be_v first_o in_o the_o sacrament_n real_o and_o afterward_o in_o respect_n of_o priority_n of_o nature_n though_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o time_n the_o name_n be_v give_v see_v then_o the_o likeness_n of_o thing_n go_v before_o the_o likeness_n of_o name_n when_o s._n augustine_n say_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o a_o certain_a manner_n that_o manner_n must_v respect_v the_o likeness_n of_o the_o thing_n before_o it_o respect_n the_o likeness_n of_o name_n therefore_o m._n jewel_n have_v err_v altogether_o in_o translate_n translation_n modum_fw-la a_o phrase_n or_o manner_n of_o speech_n but_o first_o he_o shall_v have_v seek_v wherein_o the_o thing_n be_v like_a for_o in_o deed_n the_o likeness_n in_o dinerse_a thing_n be_v diverse_a in_o one_o thing_n it_o be_v in_o substance_n as_o god_n the_o father_n and_o his_o son_n be_v like_o equal_a and_o one_o in_o substance_n yet_o because_o there_o be_v some_o difference_n in_o that_o they_o be_v diverse_a person_n 10._o the_o son_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o his_o father_n substance_n according_a 1_o to_o a_o certain_a manner_n to_o wit_n as_o he_o be_v a_o diverse_a person_n but_o not_o as_o a_o diverse_a substance_n in_o other_o thing_n the_o substance_n may_v differ_v also_o 10_o as_o the_o rock_n and_o christ_n and_o
the_o quality_n alone_o may_v be_v like_a as_o when_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o vine_n the_o door_n the_o way_n but_o to_o conclude_v 15_o with_o this_o place_n of_o s._n augustine_n he_o say_v the_o holy_a sign_n which_o be_v like_a unto_o the_o truth_n take_v also_o the_o name_n of_o the_o truth_n &_o he_o bring_v that_o rule_n to_o show_v that_o a_o child_n baptize_v may_v well_o be_v call_v ââ¦aithfull_a because_o although_o he_o believe_v not_o actual_o yet_o he_o have_v faith_n in_o yâ_z he_o have_v baptism_n which_o iââ¦_n the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n for_o say_v s._n augustine_n sacramentum_fw-la fidei_fw-la quodammodo_fw-la fides_fw-la est_fw-la the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n after_o a_o certain_a manner_n be_v faith_n he_o say_v not_o only_o it_o be_v call_v faith_n after_o a_o certain_a phrase_n of_o speech_n as_o m._n juell_n will_v have_v it_o but_o it_o be_v faith_n after_o a_o certain_a manner_n of_o be_v and_o not_o only_o of_o speak_v and_o that_o be_v or_o truth_n which_o yâ_z infant_n have_v ââ¦eceaved_v be_v so_o great_a that_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o s._n augustine_n 23._o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v of_o strength_n to_o defend_v he_o from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o from_o everlasting_a damnation_n and_o judge_v you_o m._n jewel_n that_o to_o be_v only_o a_o name_n &_o not_o a_o truth_n which_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v the_o child_n to_o salvation_n it_o be_v faith_n and_o it_o be_v not_o faith_n as_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v christ_n body_n and_o not_o christ_n ââ¦ody_n it_o be_v not_o faith_n in_o actual_a consent_n of_o the_o will_v it_o be_v faith_n in_o the_o virtue_n of_o that_o power_n which_o the_o sacrament_n print_v in_o the_o fidei_fw-la soul_n of_o the_o iufant_n it_o be_v the_o habit_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o the_o act_n even_o so_o the_o sacrament_n of_o yâ_z altar_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o not_o the_o outward_a form_n thereof_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o not_o the_o shape_n thereof_o the_o name_n therefore_o of_o faith_n be_v give_v to_o yâ_z child_n in_o respect_n of_o a_o truth_n which_o by_o baptism_n be_v wrought_v in_o the_o child_n although_o it_o be_v not_o all_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v requisite_a to_o actual_a beleve_v and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v present_a although_o it_o be_v not_o visible_o present_v according_a to_o all_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o true_a natural_a man_n body_n ¶_o of_o the_o signification_n of_o adverbe_n x._o chapter_n harding_n by_o these_o word_n real_o substantial_o &_o come_v the_o father_n mean_v only_o a_o truth_n of_o be_v &_o iiij_o not_o a_o mean_a of_o be_v after_o carnal_a or_o natural_a wise_a jewel_n all_o adverbe_n take_v of_o noun_n signify_v ever_o more_o a_o quality_n untruth_n and_o never_o the_o substance_n saunder_n a_o adverbe_n have_v his_o name_n because_o it_o be_v join_v to_o the_o aduerbium_fw-la verb_n and_o it_o do_v make_v plain_a and_o fill_v up_o the_o signification_n thereof_o so_o that_o if_o the_o verb_n whereunto_o it_o be_v join_v do_v signify_v the_o substance_n 1._o of_o a_o thing_n the_o adverbe_n make_v it_o to_o signify_v the_o same_o substance_n more_o perfect_o as_o when_o the_o king_n nabuchodonosor_n say_v to_o daniel_n 2._o verè_fw-la deus_fw-la vester_fw-ge deus_fw-la deorum_fw-la est_fw-la your_o god_n be_v very_o the_o god_n of_o god_n the_o adverb_n very_o do_v not_o signify_v a_o quality_n as_o m._n jewel_n report_v but_o it_o do_v affirm_v most_o vehement_o the_o substance_n of_o one_o god_n above_o all_o other_o god_n or_o judge_n &_o ruler_n and_o when_o the_o centurion_n say_v this_o man_n be_v very_o the_o son_n of_o 27._o god_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v mean_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o ââ¦alitie_n at_o all_o but_o only_o in_o substance_n now_o concern_v that_o some_o adverbe_n be_v take_v of_o noun_n it_o noun_n be_v to_o be_v know_v yâ_z if_o they_o be_v take_v of_o such_o noun_n as_o import_v rather_o a_o similitude_n of_o a_o substance_n than_o a_o real_a truth_n thereof_o in_o that_o case_n m._n juel_n resolution_n will_v serve_v that_o they_o shall_v signify_v the_o manner_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o thing_n as_o virilter_n do_v signify_v manly_a because_o it_o come_v of_o virilis_fw-la which_o signify_v manlike_a and_o it_o come_v of_o vir_fw-la which_o do_v signify_v rather_o the_o sex_n than_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o man_n but_o when_o the_o noun_n do_v signify_v the_o substance_n itself_o the_o adverbe_n derive_v of_o they_o must_v needs_o draw_v with_o thââ¦_n the_o signification_n of_o the_o same_o substance_n as_o corporalis_fw-la carnalis_fw-la substantialis_fw-la and_o naturalis_fw-la be_v noun_n which_o signify_v a_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o body_n the_o flesh_n the_o substance_n the_o nature_n of_o yâ_z whereof_o we_o speak_v and_o the_o adverbe_n come_v of_o they_o of_o necessitiââ¦_n must_v signify_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o nature_n whereof_o we_o entreat_v but_o whether_o it_o shall_v signify_v the_o quality_n also_o with_o the_o truth_n that_o depend_v of_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o hand_n for_o example_n christ_n walk_v corporal_o upon_o the_o water_n that_o say_v must_v be_v understand_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o man_n body_n but_o not_o in_o any_o such_o accustom_a manner_n as_o other_o man_n body_n be_v wont_a to_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n for_o there_o be_v no_o such_o manner_n of_o walk_v at_o all_o and_o whereas_o the_o adverbe_n must_v be_v refer_v whole_o to_o the_o verb_n who_o signification_n it_o make_v perfect_a that_o say_v must_v be_v this_o resolve_v christ_n bodily_a walk_v upon_o the_o water_n be_v a_o deus_fw-la true_a walk_v concern_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o do_v walk_v notwithstanding_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o walk_n do_v exceed_v the_o quality_n of_o a_o mere_a ââ¦atural_a body_n thus_o the_o adverbe_n shall_v signify_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o body_n walk_v and_o yet_o not_o the_o manner_n of_o walk_v belong_v to_o a_o natural_a and_o true_a body_n even_o so_o when_o syrill_n write_v that_o christ_n dwell_v corporal_o 13._o also_o in_o we_o and_o not_o only_o by_o right_a faith_n and_o charity_n the_o meaning_n of_o he_o shall_v be_v that_o christ_n in_o the_o true_a substance_n of_o his_o body_n dwell_v in_o we_o although_o he_o dwell_v not_o in_o we_o after_o such_o manner_n as_o other_o natural_a body_n of_o man_n dwell_v in_o the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v thus_o m._n jewel_n be_v cast_v in_o his_o grammar_n also_o whereof_o he_o iââ¦iteth_v d._n harding_n but_o to_o send_v his_o ignorance_n or_o malice_n may_v appear_v yâ_z better_o i_o beseech_v the_o discrete_a reader_n to_o consider_v the_o odds_n between_o d._n harding_n and_o m._n jewel_n d._n harding_n say_v when_o the_o father_n teach_v christ_n to_o be_v in_o we_o carnal_o corporal_o or_o natural_o for_o all_o these_o term_n s._n hilary_n &_o s._n cyrill_n have_v than_o they_o mean_v that_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o by_o the_o true_a substance_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o not_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o common_a flesh_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v any_o where_o this_o say_n of_o d._n harding_n be_v so_o true_a yâ_z he_o never_o think_v it_o nedeful_a to_o proââ¦e_v it_o yet_o m._n juell_n say_v yâ_z the_o father_n must_v mean_v that_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o after_o a_o corporal_a carnal_a &_o natural_a manner_n &_o not_o in_o substance_n for_o he_o say_v adverb_n take_v of_o noun_n signify_v evermore_o yâ_z quality_n &_o never_o yâ_z substance_n adverb_n well_o how_o think_v you_o then_o m._n jewel_n be_v christ_n after_o a_o carnal_a sort_n in_o we_o or_o no_o it_o be_v well_o seen_v by_o your_o work_n yâ_z you_o think_v nothing_o less_o for_o he_o yâ_z graââ¦teth_v the_o manner_n of_o body_n or_o flesh_n much_o more_o shall_v grant_v if_o he_o be_v wise_a the_o nature_n &_o substance_n thereof_o because_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o the_o quality_n or_o manner_n of_o flesh_n shall_v be_v without_o the_o truth_n of_o flesh_n sith_o no_o quality_n ordinary_o consist_v substance_n of_o itself_o but_o only_o rest_v in_o the_o substance_n of_o that_o thing_n who_o quality_n it_o be_v but_o a_o substance_n may_v be_v without_o quality_n as_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n be_v without_o all_o manner_n of_o accident_n now_o d._n harding_n affirm_v at_o the_o lest_o wise_a the_o truth_n of_o body_n and_o of_o flesh_n to_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o father_n without_o the_o common_a quality_n quality_n thereof_o which_o thing_n may_v right_v well_o be_v so_o m._n jewel_n will_v have_v their_o say_n mean_v
albeit_o he_o be_v spiritual_o the_o true_a vine_n and_o the_o true_a manna_n for_o see_v he_o be_v not_o these_o thing_n real_o they_o can_v not_o be_v say_v of_o he_o real_o but_o he_o be_v man_n in_o deed_n and_o therefore_o offer_v in_o deed_n kill_v in_o deed_n bury_v in_o deed_n and_o eat_v in_o deed_n for_o now_o as_o we_o believe_v the_o real_a death_n of_o he_o so_o must_v we_o believe_v the_o real_a ââ¦ting_n of_o he_o because_o the_o truth_n belong_v to_o each_o of_o they_o be_v to_o be_v take_v according_a to_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o man_n which_o he_o take_v and_o as_o it_o be_v mete_v for_o he_o to_o be_v kill_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o man_n so_o he_o will_v be_v eat_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o bread_n 26._o iu._n s._n augustine_n utter_o remove_v the_o natural_a office_n of_o the_o body_n what_o prepare_v thou_o thy_o tooth_n believe_v and_o thou_o have_v eat_v beleve_v in_o he_o be_v the_o eat_n of_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n san._n you_o be_v one_o of_o yâ_z most_o impudent_a man_n that_o ever_o any_o creature_n have_v to_o do_v withal_o s._n augustine_n speak_v these_o word_n to_o the_o faithless_a jew_n with_o who_o christ_n talk_v at_o capharnaum_n who_o gape_v for_o bodily_a meat_n and_o belly_n cheer_n now_o when_o christ_n have_v say_v work_v the_o meat_n which_o tarry_v to_o life_n everlasting_a s._n augustine_n 6._o say_v to_o the_o jew_n who_o seek_v to_o have_v his_o belly_n fill_v what_o prepare_v thou_o thy_o tooth_n m._n jewel_n know_v that_o when_o catholic_n come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n they_o whet_v not_o their_o tooth_n as_o if_o they_o come_v to_o a_o carnal_a banquet_n but_o they_o believe_v &_o eat_v first_o by_o beleve_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v afterward_o eat_v by_o mouth_n worthy_o and_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n confess_v we_o to_o receive_v christ_n by_o mouth_n also_o but_o by_o a_o faithful_a mouth_n &_o not_o by_o a_o glotoââ¦ouse_n mouth_n his_o word_n be_v hominem_fw-la christum_n jesum_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la prophetarum_fw-la fideli_fw-la cord_n atque_fw-la ore_fw-la suscipimus_fw-la we_o do_v receive_v with_o a_o faithful_a hart_n and_o mouth_n the_o man_n jesus_n christ_n geve_v his_o flesh_n unto_o we_o to_o be_v eat_v and_o his_o blood_n to_o be_v drink_v although_o it_o may_v seem_v more_o horriââ¦le_a to_o eat_v man_n flesh_n they_o to_o kill_v it_o &_o drink_v man_n blood_n then_o to_o shed_v it_o when_o s._n augustine_n say_v we_o receive_v christ_n with_o a_o faithful_a mouth_n he_o show_v that_o ââ¦his_n meaning_n be_v not_o to_o remove_v utter_o the_o natural_a office_n of_o the_o body_n as_o m._n juell_n most_o impudent_o say_v but_o he_o mean_v we_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n for_o to_o satisfy_v our_o bodily_a hunger_n but_o with_o a_o faithful_a heart_n and_o mouth_n where_o if_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o real_a drink_n by_o mouth_n he_o will_v never_o have_v say_v it_o be_v more_o horrible_a to_o drink_v man_n blood_n then_o to_o shed_v it_o but_o now_o although_o it_o be_v so_o horrible_a to_o drink_v man_n blood_n in_o that_o corruptible_a sort_n which_o mortal_a blood_n have_v yet_o christ_n blood_n be_v give_v to_o we_o in_o a_o miraculonse_n manner_n without_o corruption_n or_o loathsomeness_n and_o be_v receive_v even_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a but_o i_o can_v not_o so_o leave_v you_o m._n jewel_n do_v s._n augustine_n utter_o remove_v the_o office_n of_o the_o mouth_n say_v he_o not_o that_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n it_o please_v the_o holy_a ghost_n ut_fw-la prius_fw-la in_o os_fw-la christiani_fw-la corpus_fw-la dominicum_fw-la intraret_fw-la quà m_fw-la caeteri_fw-la 118._o cibi_fw-la that_o our_o lord_n body_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o christian_n man_n before_o other_o meat_n and_o yet_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o body_n remove_v and_o that_o uttter_o remove_v where_o be_v m._n juell_n your_o mind_n your_o wit_n your_o sense_n where_o be_v your_o care_n of_o god_n regard_n to_o your_o good_a name_n or_o the_o fear_n to_o abuse_v the_o holy_a mystery_n harding_n buceââ¦_n teach_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v division_n true_o and_o substantial_o present_a exhibit_v and_o take_v iu._n hitherto_o m._n harding_n have_v allege_v nor_o ancient_a doctor_n untruth_n nor_o old_a council_n san._n as_o though_o we_o have_v not_o dispute_v this_o long_a time_n of_o yâ_z nicene_n councââ¦l_o where_o 318._o ancient_a father_n be_v gather_v together_o iu._n what_o reason_n lead_v he_o to_o yield_v to_o the_o other_o side_n for_o quietnessake_v 2._o i_o remit_v unto_o god_n haeret._n san._n in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o weight_n he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v yield_v for_o quictnes_n sake_n since_o s._n paul_n resist_v s._n peter_n for_o a_o matter_n of_o much_o less_o importance_n as_o wherein_o they_o rather_o disagree_v in_o fact_n then_o in_o doctrine_n as_o tertullian_n witness_v iu._n if_o m._n harding_n have_v find_v any_o other_o doctor_n he_o will_v not_o ãâã_d have_v make_v his_o entry_n with_o bucer_n san._n beside_o the_o nicene_n council_n which_o you_o have_v hear_v already_o you_o shall_v hear_v other_o doctor_n anon_o iu._n the_o council_n of_o the_o eight_o cardinal_n at_o rome_n may_v rather_o ââ¦ntruth_n have_v be_v scoff_v at_o than_o this_o brotherly_a conference_n san._n the_o cardinal_n seek_v not_o a_o new_a faith_n as_o bucer_n and_o luther_n do_v but_o the_o purge_n of_o old_a fault_n they_o come_v not_o together_o to_o set_v forth_o a_o new_a doctrine_n but_o to_o amend_v the_o life_n of_o evil_a man_n tertullian_n say_v well_o hllic_fw-la &_o scripturarum_fw-la &_o expositionum_fw-la adulteratio_fw-la prescript_n deputanda_fw-la est_fw-la ubi_fw-la diversitas_fw-la invenitur_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la there_o the_o counterfeit_n both_o of_o the_o scripture_n &_o of_o yâ_z exposition_n be_v to_o be_v assign_v where_o yâ_z diversity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v find_v such_o diversity_n be_v between_o the_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n but_o not_o between_o the_o catholics_n untruth_n jewel_n if_o we_o compare_v voice_n they_o of_o wittemberge_n be_v more_o in_o number_n saunder_n nay_o sir_n all_o the_o catholic_a nation_n of_o christendom_n communicate_v with_o the_o cardinal_n but_o your_o doctrine_n be_v then_o scant_o sixteen_o year_n old_a and_o have_v never_o a_o city_n town_n or_o village_n in_o the_o world_n that_o whole_o communicate_v with_o it_o at_o that_o day_n the_o ãâã_d number_n must_v not_o be_v try_v by_o the_o man_n gather_v in_o a_o house_n together_o but_o by_o the_o man_n agre_v in_o the_o church_n together_o for_o yâ_z who_o will_v church_n be_v one_o house_n oââ¦_n god_n jewel_n if_o we_o compare_v knowledge_n they_o be_v better_o learn_v untruth_n san._n of_o new_a spring_v teacher_n ãâã_d say_v omnes_fw-la tument_fw-la prescript_n ââ¦mnes_fw-la scientiam_fw-la pollicentur_fw-la al_n of_o they_o do_v swell_v with_o pride_n and_o every_o one_o do_v promise_v knowledge_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n nemo_fw-la sapiens_fw-la nisi_fw-la fidelis_fw-la no_o man_n be_v wise_a ãâã_d ãâã_d faithful_a the_o cardinal_n therefore_o be_v faithful_a be_v also_o ââ¦etter_o learn_v than_o your_o man_n of_o wittemberge_n again_o tertullian_n show_v that_o certain_a man_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v why_o do_v this_o woman_n or_o that_o man_n be_v most_o faithful_a most_o wise_a most_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n go_v into_o thaââ¦_n side_n that_o be_v to_o say_v hold_v this_o or_o that_o new_a opinion_n but_o he_o answer_v they_o be_v neither_o to_o be_v count_v wise_a nor_o faithful_a nor_o man_n of_o practice_n who_o heresy_n can_v change_v therefore_o those_o that_o camââ¦_n together_o at_o wittemberge_n see_v they_o change_v their_o old_a faith_n &_o soughââ¦_n out_o a_o new_a they_o can_v not_o be_v learn_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v but_o otherwise_o also_o think_v you_o m._n jewel_n that_o any_o wise_a man_n will_v grant_v you_o that_o luther_n and_o bucer_n with_o their_o companion_n be_v better_o learn_v they_o contarenus_n sadoletus_n polus_n and_o theatinus_n with_o their_o fellow_n be_v it_o enough_o for_o you_o to_o have_v say_v it_o in_o bare_a word_n without_o any_o proufe_v at_o all_o jewel_n if_o we_o compare_v purpose_n they_o seek_v peace_n in_o truth_n and_o ââ¦utruth_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n saunder_n call_v you_o that_o peace_n when_o they_o divide_v germany_n from_o the_o rest_n of_o christendom_n you_o be_v of_o those_o who_o will_v cure_v the_o sore_n 6._o of_o the_o people_n by_o uââ¦ine_a word_n say_v to_o they_o peace_n peace_n when_o as_o in_o deed_n there_o be_v no_o peace_n jewel_n if_o we_o compare_v issue_n god_n have_v bless_v their_o do_n and_o untruth_n give_v force_n unto_o his_o word_n saunder_n touch_v your_o case_n tertullian_n say_v deverbi_fw-la administratione_fw-la prescript_n etc._n
bone_n but_o not_o thereby_o real_o dwell_v in_o our_o body_n which_o belong_v to_o our_o person_n jewel_n in_o that_o sense_n s._n john_n say_v the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o ãâã_d dwell_v in_o us._n san._n in_o what_o sense_n whether_o that_o christ_n body_n by_o his_o nativity_n dwell_v substantial_o in_o our_o body_n for_o so_o you_o say_v but_o s._n 1._o john_n say_v not_o so_o god_n give_v man_n power_n to_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o such_o as_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n &_o to_o such_o as_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o when_o s._n john_n have_v say_v we_o have_v power_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n if_o we_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n he_o consirm_v that_o power_n give_v to_o we_o say_v and_o yâ_z word_n be_v make_v flesh_n &_o have_v dwell_v ãâã_d us._n therefore_o ââ¦oan_n say_v s._n chrysostom_n he_o have_v dwell_v in_o we_o that_o it_o may_v be_v lauful_a to_o come_v to_o himself_o &_o to_o speak_v &_o to_o be_v cââ¦uersant_a bold_o with_o he_o he_o be_v not_o in_o our_o body_n real_o straight_o upon_o the_o incarnation_n but_o when_o he_o dwell_v ãâã_d our_o nature_n when_o he_o be_v a_o trúe_a man_n as_o we_o be_v then_o may_v we_o come_v to_o he_o priusipsu_fw-la verbum_fw-la voluit_fw-la joan._n nasci_fw-la ex_fw-la homine_fw-la ut_fw-la tu_fw-la securius_fw-la nascereris_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la the_o word_n will_v first_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o woman_n to_o thââ¦d_a ãâã_d may_v be_v bear_v of_o god_n without_o fear_n jewel_n therefore_o christ_n call_v himself_o the_o vine_n and_o we_o the_o untruthe_n branch_n san._n it_o be_v untrue_o say_v ãâã_d jewel_n for_o albeit_o christ_n by_o his_o humane_a birth_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o ãâã_d of_o the_o vine_n for_o his_o own_o part_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o to_o we_o the_o vine_n nor_o we_o be_v not_o the_o branch_n ãâã_d 15._o we_o be_v graff_v into_o christ_n which_o be_v do_v by_o say_v and_o baptism_n s._n augustine_n say_v he_o be_v make_v man_n that_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n shall_v 80._o be_v a_o vine_n in_o he_o whereof_o we_o that_o be_v man_n may_v be_v also_o the_o branch_n if_o his_o only_a birth_n have_v make_v we_o branch_n what_o need_v a_o new_a birth_n in_o baptism_n when_o s._n ââ¦yrill_n will_v show_v that_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o humane_a 13._o nature_n be_v the_o vine_n which_o thing_n the_o arrian_n deny_v he_o go_v not_o for_o the_o matter_n to_o christ_n birth_n only_o for_o then_o judas_n and_o ââ¦ain_o have_v be_v branch_n but_o he_o go_v to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o depend_v of_o christ_n flesh_n as_o branch_n do_v of_o the_o vine_n 4._o jewel_n s._n paul_n call_v christ_n the_o head_n and_o we_o the_o body_n san._n s._n paul_n speak_v of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n and_o you_o shall_v prove_v that_o his_o natural_a body_n be_v real_o in_o our_o body_n now_o if_o to_o make_v his_o body_n to_o dwell_v real_o in_o our_o body_n more_o than_o his_o birth_n be_v necessary_a it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o m._n jewel_n with_o such_o vain_a brag_n have_v hitherto_o say_v that_o his_o body_n by_o ââ¦is_n nativity_n dwell_v real_o or_o substantial_o or_o natural_o in_o our_o body_n but_o only_o that_o he_o dwell_v in_o we_o to_o wit_n in_o our_o nature_n be_v make_v emanuel_n nobiscum_fw-la deus_fw-la god_n with_o man_n but_o thereby_o christ_n dwell_v 1._o but_o in_o one_o body_n real_o to_o wit_n in_o that_o which_o he_o make_v to_o himself_o out_o of_o the_o virgin_n most_o pure_a blood_n wherefore_o s._n cyrillus_n say_v ãâã_d habitavit_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la in_o templo_fw-la uno_fw-la quod_fw-la propter_fw-la nos_fw-la &_o de_fw-la nobis_fw-la sibi_fw-la condidit_fw-la ut_fw-la omnes_fw-la in_o seipso_fw-la habens_fw-la in_o uno_fw-la corpore_fw-la patri_fw-la reconciliaret_fw-la the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v dwell_v in_o we_o or_o among_o natural_a we_o in_o one_o temple_n yâ_z which_o he_o make_v to_o himself_o for_o our_o sake_n and_o out_o of_o we_o that_o have_v all_o in_o himself_o he_o may_v reconcile_v they_o 2._o to_o the_o fathââ¦_n in_o one_o body_n one_o thing_n m._n jewel_n i_o must_v put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o you_o ãâã_d that_o christ_n body_n may_v not_o be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o which_o doubtless_o you_o mean_v of_o his_o natural_a body_n and_o his_o body_n be_v by_o no_o mean_n more_o natural_a then_o by_o the_o nativity_n thereof_o but_o you_o say_v now_o that_o christ_n body_n by_o his_o nativity_n dwell_v real_o substan_v cial_o and_o fleshly_a in_o our_o body_n and_o certain_o our_o body_n dwell_v doctrine_n in_o many_o place_n therefore_o you_o be_v against_o your_o own_o doctrine_n as_o who_o confess_v christ_n body_n by_o his_o nativity_n to_o dwell_v natural_o in_o all_o our_o body_n which_o be_v not_o only_o in_o many_o place_n of_o yâ_z earth_n but_o a_o great_a number_n also_o be_v under_o the_o earth_n in_o all_o which_o christ_n body_n according_a to_o your_o doctrine_n must_v dwell_v corporal_o and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v in_o many_o place_n together_o ¶_o whether_o christ_n body_n dwell_v in_o our_o body_n by_o faith_n xvij_o real_o or_o no._n chapter_n ivel._n towch_v faith_n s._n paul_n say_v christ_n by_o faith_n dwell_v in_o 3_o our_o heart_n san._n the_o word_n hart_n in_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o always_o signify_v that_o fleshly_a part_n of_o a_o man_n body_n common_o so_o call_v but_o s._n paul_n mean_v that_o christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o mind_n and_o will_n by_o faith_n and_o charity_n which_o be_v make_v very_o plain_a by_o the_o word_n 3_o go_v before_o secundum_fw-la interiorem_fw-la hominem_fw-la according_a to_o the_o inner_a man_n therefore_o no_o dwell_n of_o christ_n body_n real_o or_o substantial_o in_o our_o body_n be_v prove_v by_o this_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n except_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v no_o real_a and_o substantial_a body_n of_o his_o own_o for_o if_o be_v be_v a_o real_a substance_n what_o mean_v m._n jewel_n to_o affirm_v it_o dwell_v real_o and_o substantial_o where_o the_o real_a substance_n thereof_o it_o not_o if_o it_o be_v a_o real_a dwell_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o heresy_n our_o body_n in_o that_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o yet_o christ_n have_v but_o one_o real_a and_o substantial_a body_n by_o m._n juel_n phrase_n of_o speech_n that_o body_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v dwell_v real_o in_o yâ_z virgin_n ââ¦omb_n in_o that_o she_o only_o beleve_v in_o christ._n and_o by_o such_o worthy_a interpretation_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o incarnation_n be_v utter_o take_v away_o jewel_n s._n peter_n say_v hereby_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a 1._o nature_n san._n those_o word_n general_o pertein_a to_o all_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o special_o to_o yâ_z incarnation_n of_o christ_n whereby_o we_o communicate_v most_o perfect_o if_o yet_o we_o be_v faithsull_n with_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n for_o when_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n who_o be_v man_n with_o we_o and_o god_n with_o his_o father_n than_o we_o communicate_v with_o his_o manhood_n communicate_v also_o with_o the_o godhead_n which_o dwell_v corporal_o in_o christ._n but_o that_o communicate_v may_v be_v make_v either_o by_o faith_n or_o baptism_n and_o other_o sacrament_n and_o as_o the_o godhead_n dwelââ¦eth_v incomparable_o more_o excellent_o in_o christ_n own_o body_n ââ¦then_v it_o do_v in_o any_o other_o thing_n which_o depend_v thereof_o so_o the_o union_n with_o his_o nature_n be_v make_v far_o better_a by_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o eucharist_n with_o faith_n and_o baptism_n join_v together_o then_o by_o one_o or_o two_o of_o they_o alone_o and_o that_o this_o place_n of_o s._n peter_n do_v pertein_a to_o the_o communicate_v of_o christ_n flesh_n in_o the_o sacrament_n also_o cyrillus_n of_o ââ¦ierusalem_fw-la do_v witness_v write_v thus_o under_o the_o 4_o form_n of_o bread_n the_o body_n be_v give_v and_o under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n the_o blood_n be_v give_v etc._n etc._n and_o so_o we_o shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o 1._o divine_a nature_n as_o s._n peter_n say_v now_o m._n jewel_n have_v most_o improper_o place_v this_o testimony_n in_o the_o second_o kind_n of_o christ_n dwelling_n in_o we_o since_o it_o appertain_v to_o all_o four_o way_n general_o but_o most_o especial_o to_o that_o communion_n or_o join_v which_o be_v make_v by_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n tral_n jewel_n so_o say_v ignatius_n by_o his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n that_o untruthe_n be_v by_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o same_o we_o be_v make_v the_o member_n of_o his_o body_n san._n s._n ignatius_n in_o two_o place_n oââ¦_n that_o epistle_n speak_v of_o tââ¦allianos_fw-la such_o a_o matter_n as_o m._n jewel_n will_v
in_o which_o word_n yâ_z great_a weight_n of_o his_o iudgeââ¦ent_n rest_v for_o he_o intend_v not_o to_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n contain_v and_o geve_v grace_n but_o he_o say_v they_o contain_v it_o not_o essââ¦ntially_o as_o a_o veââ¦el_n contain_v water_n or_o as_o a_o box_n hold_v a_o medicine_n which_o notwithstanding_o he_o show_v two_o other_o way_n how_o they_o contain_v grace_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o to_o what_o end_n allege_v you_o bonaventure_n if_o not_o to_o disprove_v yâ_z real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o say_v you_o though_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o our_o body_n real_o it_o will_v not_o therefore_o be_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n &_o how_o be_v tââ¦at_o prove_v forsooth_o by_o s._n bonaventure_n do_v he_o then_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n though_o it_o be_v real_o in_o we_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o rââ¦allie_o in_o the_o sacrament_n do_v he_o mean_v any_o such_o thing_n you_o shall_v now_o 1._o hear_v his_o own_o word_n in_o the_o same_o very_a place_n concerââ¦ing_v the_o con_fw-mi ference_n of_o the_o eucharist_n with_o other_o sacrament_n in_o illo_fw-la sacramento_n 3._o est_fw-la transubstantiatio_fw-la vnde_fw-la illud_fw-la quod_fw-la significatur_fw-la ibi_fw-la vera_fw-la est_fw-la substantia_fw-la quam_fw-la congruit_fw-la esse_fw-la per_fw-la se._n in_o that_o sacrament_n there_o be_v ãâã_d whereby_o that_o thing_n which_o be_v signify_v there_o be_v a_o true_a substance_n which_o substance_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v by_o itself_o ¶_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v real_o in_o the_o xxi_o sacrament_n by_o s._n chrysostoms_n word_n chapter_n harding_n by_o this_o sacrament_n say_v chrysostom_n christ_n reduce_v we_o as_o it_o be_v into_o one_o lump_n with_o himself_o and_o that_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o but_o he_o make_v we_o his_o own_o body_n in_o very_a deed_n re_fw-mi ipsa_fw-la which_o be_v no_o other_o to_o say_v then_o real_o so_o jewel_n this_o place_n will_v have_v stand_v m._n harding_n in_o better_a stead_n if_o chrysostom_n have_v say_v christ_n mingle_v his_o body_n with_o the_o sacrament_n and_o drive_v himself_o and_o it_o into_o one_o lump_n san._n if_o the_o sacââ¦ament_n of_o christ_n supper_n be_v a_o thing_n so_o distinct_a from_o christ_n body_n as_o christ_n body_n be_v distinct_a from_o we_o s._n chrysostom_n may_v have_v say_v perhaps_o that_o christ_n mingle_v himself_o with_o the_o sacrament_n but_o now_o it_o be_v a_o great_a ignorance_n that_o m._n jewel_n mark_v not_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n to_o be_v of_o itself_o the_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n therefore_o to_o say_v christ_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v mingle_v with_o himself_o s._n chrysostom_n be_v wise_a than_o to_o say_v so_o but_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n mingle_v himself_o real_o with_o we_o who_o worthy_o receive_v that_o sacrament_n jewel_n neither_o will_n m._n harding_n say_v that_o christ_n mingle_v himself_o untruth_n with_o we_o simple_o and_o without_o figure_n whereof_o it_o follow_v that_o much_o less_o it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o sacrament_n san._n this_o be_v a_o fine_a kind_n of_o rhetoric_n to_o make_v d._n harding_n believe_v he_o will_v not_o say_v that_o which_o he_o do_v say_v he_o mean_v that_o christ_n own_o real_a body_n be_v join_v to_o our_o body_n and_o that_o simple_o concern_v the_o substance_n thereof_o and_o without_o any_o figure_n of_o rhetoric_n or_o of_o grammar_n but_o not_o without_o a_o mystical_a figure_n because_o it_o be_v give_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o whereof_o that_o you_o infer_v upon_o your_o false_a surmise_n be_v ââ¦louse_a unsensible_a and_o fond_a jewel_n it_o be_v a_o vehement_a and_o a_o hot_a kind_n of_o speech_n such_o as_o chrysostom_n untruth_n be_v most_o delight_v with_o san._n to_o speak_v without_o sport_v it_o be_v so_o hot_a that_o if_o you_o amend_v not_o your_o opinion_n it_o may_v help_v to_o promote_v you_o to_o the_o ãâã_d of_o hell_n but_o to_o good_a faithful_a man_n it_o be_v a_o mild_a and_o calm_a say_n jewel_n it_o be_v a_o speech_n far_o pass_v the_o common_a sense_n and_o course_n untruth_n of_o truth_n san._n i_o think_v you_o will_v bring_v it_o to_o a_o phrase_n or_o figure_n of_o speech_n but_o he_o ãâã_d it_o for_o a_o truth_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o ãâã_d jewel_n himself_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o correct_v and_o qualify_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o same_o speech_n by_o these_o word_n ut_fw-la ita_fw-la dicam_fw-la which_o be_v ãâã_d it_o be_v or_z if_o i_o may_v be_v bold_a so_o to_o say_v san._n you_o stand_v altogether_o upon_o phrase_n and_o ãâã_d but_o s._n chrysostom_n mean_v not_o to_o correct_v or_o qualify_v the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o teach_v concern_v christ_n real_a join_v with_o us._n but_o only_o he_o show_v himself_o in_o teach_v it_o to_o ãâã_d or_o rather_o to_o allude_v to_o a_o similitude_n s._n and_o metaphor_n at_o the_o use_n whereof_o he_o stay_v somewhat_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v at_o large_a even_o as_o many_o grain_n of_o corn_n be_v by_o use_v the_o baker_n bring_v into_o one_o lump_n of_o dough_n right_o so_o christ_n and_o they_o that_o do_v communicate_v be_v make_v all_o one_o with_o christ_n and_o ãâã_d with_o he_o in_o this_o sacrament_n now_o because_o this_o similitude_n be_v not_o set_v forth_o at_o large_a but_o brief_o allude_v unto_o therefore_o s._n chrysostom_n say_v ut_fw-la ita_fw-la dicam_fw-la that_o i_o may_v so_o say_v to_o wit_n that_o i_o may_v at_o this_o time_n use_v this_o allusion_n and_o this_o briefsimilitude_n so_o that_o the_o correction_n be_v refer_v only_o to_o the_o word_n massa_n which_o be_v a_o lump_n of_o dough_n or_o of_o any_o like_a thing_n and_o not_o to_o the_o correction_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v maintain_v both_o by_o s._n chrysostom_n and_o other_o without_o any_o correction_n or_o qualifi_v he_o write_v upon_o s._n john_n that_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o eat_v my_o 46_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n tarry_v in_o i_o to_o show_v cum_fw-la ipso_fw-la se_fw-la admisceri_fw-la that_o himself_o be_v mingle_v with_o he_o again_o he_o say_v joan._n it_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o meat_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o 45_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v turn_v into_o that_o flesh_n not_o only_o by_o love_n but_o by_o the_o thing_n itself_o again_o cum_fw-la suum_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la when_o christ_n will_v show_v ãâã_d his_o love_n towards_o we_o he_o mingle_v himself_o with_o we_o through_o his_o body_n and_o he_o bring_v himself_z into_o one_o with_o we_o to_o the_o end_n the_o body_n shall_v be_v unite_v with_o the_o head_n many_o like_a word_n he_o have_v in_o his_o sermon_n to_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o which_o he_o never_o 61._o use_v the_o phrase_n ut_fw-la ita_fw-la dicam_fw-la that_o i_o may_v so_o say_v because_o he_o use_v not_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o lump_n of_o dough_n whereunto_o that_o correction_n perteyn_v yea_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v if_o even_o in_o this_o place_n greke_n s._n chrysostom_n use_v no_o such_o qualify_a nor_o say_v not_o ut_fw-la ita_fw-la dicam_fw-la for_o albeit_o the_o latin_a text_n read_v so_o yet_o the_o edition_n of_o parise_n do_v wiââ¦nesse_n that_o his_o greek_a word_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d seipsum_fw-la miscet_fw-la nobis_fw-la he_o mingle_v himself_o with_o us._n where_o be_v now_o m._n juel_n discrete_a phrase_n where_o be_v his_o corrââ¦ction_n his_o qualify_a of_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o speech_n to_o be_v short_a where_o be_v his_o answer_n jewel_n in_o such_o phrase_n anacletus_fw-la say_v the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a untruth_n ghost_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o oil_n san._n merciful_a god_n whither_o will_v not_o this_o man_n run_v for_o phrase_n he_z now_o appele_v to_o a_o pope_n who_o epistle_n he_o esteme_v as_o much_o as_o his_o show_n sole_a only_a meaning_n to_o make_v some_o not_o of_o the_o wisââ¦_n sort_n to_o believe_v yâ_z he_o have_v answer_v well_o when_o he_o have_v write_v somewhat_o although_o himself_o believe_v not_o that_o which_o he_o write_v do_v you_o believe_v this_o very_a sentence_n m._n jewel_n which_o you_o allege_v how_o say_v you_o be_v the_o iââ¦isible_a power_n of_o the_o holy_a oil_n ghost_n mingle_v with_o the_o oil_n if_o you_o think_v so_o you_o will_v use_v holy_a oil_n more_o than_o you_o do_v one_o thing_n i_o must_v tell_v you_o which_o i_o have_v almost_o forget_v it_o be_v not_o in_o anacletus_fw-la in_fw-la oleo_fw-la in_o yâ_z oil_n as_o you_o name_v it_o but_o sancto_fw-la chrismati_fw-la to_o the_o holy_a chrism_n it_o father_n be_v not_o
real_o &_o substanciallie_o for_o as_o the_o word_n be_v make_v fleshââ¦_n real_o so_o we_o take_v real_o the_o word_n be_v flesh_n in_o our_o lord_n meat_n the_o word_n be_v not_o make_v flesh_n only_o by_o our_o faith_n but_o in_o truth_n of_o his_o substance_n therefore_o we_o take_v the_o word_n be_v flesh_n not_o by_o our_o faith_n only_o but_o in_o truth_n of_o his_o substance_n if_o m._n juell_n will_v have_v we_o receive_v christ_n body_n very_o and_o yet_o by_o faith_n only_o it_o must_v be_v make_v flesh_n very_o and_o yet_o by_o faith_n only_o ivel_n it_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o hart_n âª_o hunger_n thou_o within_o thirst_v thou_o within_o san._n if_o christ_n be_v in_o his_o divine_a nature_n take_v real_a flesh_n and_o yet_o may_v be_v hunger_v within_o &_o be_v much_o yâ_z better_o to_o we_o bread_n of_o yâ_z hart_n untruth_n by_o natural_a flesh_n right_o so_o it_o be_v extreme_a madness_n to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o christ_n body_n genen_fw-la under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n be_v therefore_o the_o less_o hunger_v within_o or_o the_o less_o the_o bread_n and_o food_n of_o the_o hart_n jewel_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v receive_v in_o spirit_n be_v receive_v in_o deed_n untruth_n san._n if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v corporal_o as_o well_o as_o in_o spirit_n as_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n than_o it_o be_v false_a and_o foolish_a to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v receive_v in_o deed_n when_o the_o outward_a deed_n lack_v this_o man_n will_v clothe_v the_o naked_a and_o feed_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n and_o yet_o he_o say_v it_o be_v do_v in_o deed_n albeit_o they_o die_v for_o cold_a spiritual_a receive_v be_v true_a and_o good_a when_o it_o shulder_v not_o out_o real_a receive_n as_o spiritual_a resurrection_n be_v good_a &_o true_a but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o all_o yâ_z truth_n of_o resurrection_n s._n bernard_n be_v already_o answer_v and_o s._n cyril_n 344._o untruth_n jewel_n it_o be_v a_o holy_a mystery_n and_o a_o heavenly_a action_n force_v our_o mind_n up_o into_o heaven_n and_o there_o teach_v we_o to_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o outward_o by_o the_o service_n of_o our_o body_n san._n be_v not_o verè_fw-la sumimus_fw-la we_o very_o take_v speak_v of_o take_v by_o the_o service_n of_o our_o body_n can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o mean_v again_o 30._o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o sentence_n that_o christ_n have_v mingle_v the_o nature_n under_o of_o his_o flesh_n to_o the_o nature_n of_o everlastingness_n under_o a_o sacrament_n of_o his_o flesh_n to_o be_v communicate_v unto_o us._n mark_v these_o word_n m._n jewel_n which_o you_o pass_v over_o as_o if_o you_o have_v be_v utter_o blind_a the_o nature_n of_o christ_n flesh_n be_v i_o trow_v real_a it_o be_v communicate_v sub._n to_o we_o under_o a_o sacrament_n know_v you_o not_o that_o sub_fw-la be_v under_o be_v not_o the_o sacrament_n receive_v by_o the_o service_n of_o our_o body_n do_v 323._o not_o yourself_o graââ¦nt_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v take_v by_o mouth_n if_o then_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n flesh_n be_v under_o a_o sacrament_n when_o the_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o service_n of_o our_o body_n the_o nature_n of_o christ_n flesh_n be_v receive_v by_o our_o body_n &_o not_o by_o faith_n alone_o untruth_n iu._n the_o truth_n hereof_o stand_v not_o in_o any_o real_a presence_n but_o as_o hilarius_n say_v in_o a_o mystery_n which_o be_v in_o a_o sacrament_n san_n whereas_o s._n hilarius_n say_v we_o receive_v very_o the_o flesh_n of_o 31._o ãâã_d his_o body_n under_o a_o mystery_n you_o report_v he_o to_o say_v in_o a_o mystery_n be_v that_o no_o false_a deal_n well_o he_o say_v we_o receive_v christ_n flesh_n under_o a_o mystery_n and_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n a_o mystery_n be_v a_o sacrament_n therefore_o we_o receive_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n body_n under_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o sacrament_n deliver_v in_o the_o last_o 33._o supper_n be_v by_o your_o confession_n also_o outward_a and_o common_o call_v a_o figure_n therefore_o we_o very_o receive_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n body_n under_o a_o outward_a figure_n and_o the_o outward_a figure_n be_v know_v by_o our_o eye_n to_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o bread_n therefore_o under_o the_o figure_n of_o bread_n we_o receive_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n body_n albeit_o by_o the_o figure_n you_o mean_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n jewel_n our_o regeneration_n in_o baptism_n in_o a_o certain_a bodily_a sort_n untruthe_n teach_v we_o the_o purgation_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o dionysius_n say_v so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n san._n can_v you_o have_v the_o mind_n better_a tanght_n by_o a_o outward_a action_n then_o if_o you_o eat_v the_o same_o flesh_n in_o body_n which_o we_o do_v eat_v in_o faith_n be_v it_o possible_a to_o have_v a_o great_a comformitie_n a_o more_o vehement_a figure_v and_o lively_o express_v of_o all_o truth_n and_o albeit_o i_o have_v show_v difference_n before_o between_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n yet_o omit_v yâ_z i_o will_v now_o say_v ãâã_d s._n augustin_n then_o yâ_z body_n &_o blood_n 2._o of_o christ_n shall_v be_v lise_fw-fr to_o every_o man_n if_z yâ_z thing_n which_o be_v visible_o take_v in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v eat_v in_o the_o truth_n spiritual_o and_o be_v drunken_a spiritual_o m._n jewel_n will_v have_v one_o thing_n ouââ¦wardly_o take_v and_o a_o other_o thing_n eat_v inward_o but_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o must_v be_v eat_v in_o the_o truth_n itself_o spiritual_o which_o be_v visible_o take_v in_o the_o sacrament_n jewel_n although_o christ_n be_v not_o bodily_a ââ¦resent_n yet_o that_o do_v not_o untruthe_n hinder_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n san._n the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n must_v needs_o be_v hinder_v when_o it_o be_v absent_a for_o it_o can_v be_v no_o mystery_n without_o the_o substance_n thereof_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n be_v the_o natural_a substance_n ââ¦2_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o sacrament_n therefore_o s._n ââ¦ilarie_o say_v the_o natural_a propriety_n by_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o perfect_a unity_n of_o this_o place_n i_o have_v often_o time_n speak_v and_o i_o will_v glad_o hear_v m._n juel_n mind_n in_o it_o for_o than_o shall_v i_o be_v sure_a to_o know_v how_o i_o may_v dispute_v against_o he_o i_o can_v not_o construe_v it_o otherwise_o then_o thus_o naturalis_fw-la proprietas_fw-la the_o natural_a propriety_n proprietas_fw-la which_o be_v to_o say_v the_o natural_a substance_n &_o he_o mean_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n for_o s._n hilary_n use_v the_o ward_n proprietas_fw-la very_o much_o and_o oft_o for_o the_o substance_n or_o personal_a be_v of_o god_n or_o of_o christ._n well_o then_o christ_n natural_a substance_n per_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la by_o or_o through_o the_o sacrament_n est_fw-la is_z sacramentum_fw-la the_o sacrament_n name_v perfectae_fw-la unitatis_fw-la of_o perfect_a unity_n the_o substance_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o sacrament_n by_o or_o through_o the_o sacrament_n these_o word_n can_v have_v none_o other_o literal_a meaning_n but_o this_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n through_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n wherein_o unity_n be_v figure_v and_o under_o which_o it_o be_v by_o that_o mean_a i_o say_v it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o perfect_a unity_n how_o can_v else_o the_o natural_a substance_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o itself_o alone_a it_o can_v be_v no_o holy_a sign_n but_o by_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n it_o may_v be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o m._n juell_n can_v not_o find_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o all_o s._n hilary_n moreover_o s._n hilary_n make_v a_o preface_n that_o we_o must_v not_o 33._o 6._o speak_v otherwise_o in_o god_n matter_n than_o we_o have_v learn_v of_o he_o who_o say_v my_o flesh_n be_v very_o meat_n &_o yâ_z there_o be_v no_o place_n of_o dout_v of_o yâ_z truth_n of_o flesh_n &_o blood_n conclude_v thus_o for_o now_o both_o by_o verè_fw-la the_o profession_n of_o our_o lord_n himself_o and_o by_o our_o faith_n it_o be_v flesh_n in_o deed_n and_o blood_n in_o deed_n answer_v i_o pray_v you_o m._n jewel_n what_o be_v flesh_n in_o deed_n what_o be_v the_o nominatine_a case_n to_o est_z be_v i_o know_v deed_n none_o other_o beside_o the_o word_n sacramentum_fw-la the_o sacrament_n or_o some_o like_a word_n which_o do_v import_v the_o sacrament_n as_o to_o say_v that_o which_o the_o faithful_a receive_v at_o christ_n supper_n for_o of_o that_o thing_n s._n hilary_n now_o speakethe_v that_o then_o be_v very_o flesh_n and_o that_o be_v mean_v by_o s._n hilary_n of_o a_o outward_a thig_n for_o he_o say_v immediate_o haec_fw-la accepta_fw-la these_o thing_n take_v and_o drink_v do_v bring_v
patron_n of_o his_o own_o son_n shall_v not_o m._n jewel_n be_v swete_o reward_v for_o this_o gear_n if_o he_o die_v in_o this_o excessive_a opinion_n hear_v i_o pray_v you_o what_o s._n hilary_n say_v of_o his_o own_o doctrine_n in_o this_o very_a book_n cura_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la ut_fw-la primum_fw-la it_o be_v our_o care_n first_o to_o teach_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v holy_a and_o perfect_a and_o sound_n and_o that_o our_o talk_n not_o wander_v by_o certain_a by_o turn_n &_o wind_n book_n and_o sudden_o appear_v out_o of_o not_o haunt_v and_o creep_v hole_n shall_v rather_o show_v then_o seek_v the_o truth_n thus_o do_v he_o profess_v to_o teach_v perfect_a and_o sound_a thing_n and_o undouted_a truth_n which_o m._n juell_n call_v excessive_a because_o they_o exceed_v the_o cumpasse_n of_o his_o heresy_n &_o contain_v yâ_z catholic_a truth_n and_o when_o s._n hilary_n come_v to_o yâ_z very_o matter_n whereof_o we_o speak_v at_o this_o time_n he_o do_v not_o only_o say_v it_o be_v sound_a perfice_fw-la holy_a and_o true_a doctrine_n but_o he_o say_v he_o learn_v it_o of_o christ_n himself_o even_o concern_v this_o very_a point_n that_o the_o natural_a verity_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o for_o that_o he_o say_v my_o flesh_n be_v very_o meat_n but_o all_o the_o father_n all_o the_o scripture_n which_o resist_v m._n juel_n doct_n fancy_n be_v hot_a violent_a excesââ¦ive_v &_o as_o s._n augustine_n most_o true_o 10._o faith_n if_o the_o opinion_n of_o any_o error_n have_v first_o possess_v the_o mind_n whatsoever_o the_o scripture_n affirm_v otherwise_o figuratum_fw-la homines_fw-la arbitrantur_fw-la man_n think_v it_o figurative_a ¶_o that_o the_o place_n of_o ãâã_d ââ¦erteineth_v to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n supper_n harding_n gregory_n nyssene_n speak_v of_o the_o bread_n chapter_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n say_v by_o what_o mean_a shall_v a_o bodiless_n thing_n be_v make_v meat_n to_o a_o moysis_n body_n jewel_n gregory_n nyssene_n be_v new_o set_v abroad_o with_o sundry_a corruption_n untruthe_n san._n if_o this_o vain_a fable_n may_v be_v admit_v every_o man_n shall_v be_v corrupt_v when_o it_o please_v you_o if_o he_o be_v corrupt_v he_o be_v corrupt_v by_o your_o faction_n for_o his_o work_n have_v be_v no_o where_o so_o full_o print_v as_o at_o bale_n call_v in_o latin_a basilea_n which_o be_v a_o city_n of_o your_o profession_n 3._o moreover_o you_o very_o oft_o bring_v his_o authority_n and_o how_o be_v you_o sure_a that_o he_o be_v not_o corrupt_v at_o all_o in_o those_o place_n which_o you_o allege_v 4._o yea_o farther_z you_o allege_v for_o your_o purpose_n this_o very_a treatise_n and_o this_o very_a side_n of_o the_o leaf_n whence_o d._n harding_n take_v this_o authority_n and_o that_o as_o well_o before_o the_o word_n bring_v by_o d._n harding_n as_o after_o jewel_n he_o speak_v not_o one_o word_n neither_o of_o christ_n natural_a untruthe_n dwelling_n in_o us._n 2._o nor_o of_o the_o sacrament_n san._n out_o upon_o this_o impudence_n m._n jewel_n you_o have_v take_v upon_o you_o the_o forehead_n of_o a_o harlot_n &_o be_v without_o all_o fear_n shame_n or_o hoââ¦estie_n do_v not_o gregory_n nyssene_n speak_v in_o that_o place_n one_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o speak_n of_o moses_n life_n by_o occasion_n thereof_o come_v to_o show_v the_o wander_a of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n moysis_n in_o the_o desert_n where_o he_o say_v ââ¦fter_o that_o they_o have_v drink_v of_o yâ_z stone_n all_o nourishment_n which_o they_o have_v bring_v out_o of_o egypt_n fail_v they_o manna_n and_o a_o simple_a meat_n to_o look_v unto_o but_o diââ¦erse_a iââ¦_n taste_v be_v rain_v down_o to_o they_o which_o thing_n do_v signify_v say_v he_o that_o we_o must_v cleanse_v our_o mind_n by_o say_v by_o baptism_n by_o traââ¦aile_n by_o all_o virtue_n by_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o that_o all_o aegiptiaââ¦al_n kind_n of_o liââ¦ing_n to_o wit_n all_o the_o multitude_n of_o sin_n fail_v we_o we_o must_v receive_v ââ¦oelestem_fw-la cibum_fw-la quem_fw-la nulla_fw-la nobis_fw-la satio_fw-la agriculturae_fw-la artibus_fw-la meat_n produxit_fw-la the_o heavenly_a meat_n which_o not_o sow_v have_v by_o the_o art_n of_o plough_v bring_v forth_o unto_o us._n but_o it_o be_v bread_n prepare_v for_o we_o without_o seed_n without_o plough_v without_o any_o other_o work_n of_o man_n that_o bread_n flow_v from_o above_o be_v find_v in_o the_o earth_n hitherto_o he_o have_v say_v that_o we_o have_v a_o true_a manna_n which_o we_o must_v receive_v and_o how_o i_o pray_v you_o but_o as_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v receive_v their_o manna_n and_o than_o we_o must_v receive_v it_o by_o mouth_n as_o they_o do_v receive_v their_o manna_n by_o mouth_n but_o what_o be_v our_o manna_n forsooth_o a_o meat_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n as_o the_o old_a manna_n do_v a_o meat_n not_o get_v out_o of_o the_o ground_n but_o rainig_v from_o heaven_n what_o rain_v be_v that_o the_o incarnation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o take_v flesh_n of_o the_o virgin_n without_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o seed_n of_o man_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n man_n among_o man_n no_o say_v the_o heretic_n ualentinus_fw-la for_o example_n or_o manicheus_fw-la christ_n take_v no_o true_a flesh_n of_o yâ_z virgin_n yes_o say_v gregorius_n nissen_n panis_n enim_fw-la et_fw-la caet_fw-la for_o the_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n talk_n which_o be_v the_o true_a meat_n which_o be_v obscure_o signify_v by_o this_o history_n of_o manna_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n bodiless_a thus_o much_o he_o say_v against_o the_o heretic_n who_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n well_o go_v forth_o sir_n i_o pray_v you_o for_o the_o heretic_n will_v not_o admit_v your_o bare_a word_n prove_v that_o which_o you_o say_v quo_fw-la enim_fw-la pacto_fw-la res_fw-la incorporea_fw-la corpori_fw-la cibus_fw-la fiet_fw-la for_o by_o what_o mean_a shall_v a_o thing_n which_o lack_v a_o body_n be_v make_v meat_n unto_o the_o body_n here_o gregory_n point_n nyssen_n presuppoââ¦eth_v that_o christ_n incarnate_v be_v make_v meat_n unto_o our_o body_n because_o he_o be_v our_o true_a manna_n but_o say_v he_o yâ_z can_v not_o be_v so_o if_o christ_n have_v no_o true_a flesh_n for_o a_o thing_n without_o a_o body_n can_v not_o be_v make_v meat_n unto_o the_o body_n but_o christ_n be_v so_o real_o make_v meat_n unto_o oââ¦r_a body_n that_o thereby_o nyssââ¦s_n prove_v he_o have_v a_o true_a and_o real_a body_n so_o that_o all_o the_o principal_a matter_n in_o that_o place_n be_v of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o of_o christ_n natural_a dwelling_n in_o our_o body_n therein_o manna_n be_v fulfil_v which_o manna_n rain_v from_o heaven_n 1._o into_o the_o earth_n as_o christ_n come_v from_o his_o father_n bosom_n into_o 2._o the_o virgin_n womb_n the_o same_o manna_n be_v afterward_o eat_v by_o the_o jew_n corporal_o as_o christ_n after_o his_o incarnation_n be_v corporal_o eat_v at_o his_o supper_n of_o the_o apostle_n before_o yâ_z jew_o 3._o do_v eat_v manna_n they_o be_v prepare_v with_o pass_v over_o the_o red_a sea_n with_o labour_n and_o with_o water_n of_o the_o rock_n and_o before_o we_o come_v to_o christ_n supper_n we_o be_v prepare_v by_o baptism_n and_o good_a life_n and_o preach_v s._n gregory_n nyssene_n do_v make_v eat_v by_o faith_n a_o preparation_n 4._o to_o eat_v the_o last_o supper_n worthy_o oportet_fw-la fide_fw-la baptismate_fw-la &_o caet_fw-la we_o must_v cleanse_v our_o soul_n by_o faith_n and_o baptism_n &_o demum_fw-la and_o faith_n so_o at_o the_o length_n with_o a_o purify_a mind_n receive_v the_o heavenly_a meat_n it_o be_v not_o eat_v by_o faith_n m._n jewel_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o faith_n go_v before_o it_o and_o the_o receive_n of_o this_o heavenly_a meat_n be_v a_o far_a kind_n of_o eat_v this_o meat_n be_v yâ_z bread_n bring_v forth_o 5._o of_o the_o virgin_n without_o tyll_n be_v make_v meat_n unto_o the_o body_n do_v fit_n you_o hear_v m._n jewel_n it_o be_v make_v meat_n unto_o the_o body_n not_o only_o to_o the_o understanding_n but_o to_o the_o body_n it_o be_v so_o real_o make_v meat_n unto_o the_o body_n that_o of_o necessity_n thence_o it_o be_v deduce_v that_o itself_o be_v 6._o a_o bodily_a and_o corporal_a thing_n which_o argument_n be_v none_o if_o it_o discourse_n be_v not_o corporal_o receive_v into_o our_o body_n for_o by_o faith_n god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o 14._o make_v their_o mansion_n in_o our_o heart_n as_o it_o be_v in_o house_n and_o our_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o such_o dwell_n as_o 6._o it_o prove_v not_o god_n the_o father_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o have_v body_n so_o do_v it_o
natural_o do_v signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o not_o fained_o how_o say_v you_o then_o when_o we_o be_v knit_v to_o god_n by_o right_a faith_n and_o sincere_a charity_n be_v it_o a_o feign_a coninnction_n or_o no_o if_o it_o be_v a_o true_a &_o not_o a_o fantastical_a conjunction_n than_o the_o word_n which_o affirm_v christ_n to_o be_v join_v also_o unto_o we_o corporal_o and_o natural_o be_v add_v over_o and_o above_o the_o ioyve_n by_o right_a faith_n and_o sincere_a love_n must_v not_o only_o ââ¦ane_v a_o true_a join_n which_o be_v already_o make_v but_o also_o a_o other_o manner_n of_o joinig_v which_o be_v both_o true_a in_o effect_n as_o yâ_z join_v by_o faith_n be_v &_o also_o true_a in_o the_o corporal_a mingle_n of_o christ_n flesh_n to_o our_o flesh_n otherwise_o what_o mean_v the_o adverbe_n quoque_fw-la also_o we_o be_v join_v quoque_fw-la by_o faith_n and_o also_o corporal_o be_v that_o also_o nothing_o furthermore_o if_o corporal_o be_v nothing_o else_o to_o say_v but_o true_o and_o without_o imagination_n how_o construe_v you_o these_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n 2._o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v corporal_o in_o christ_n be_v it_o only_o to_o say_v it_o dwell_v true_o in_o christ_n well_o but_o it_o may_v dwell_v true_o in_o christ_n though_o christ_n be_v not_o man_n therefore_o by_o your_o exposition_n a_o phrase_n be_v find_v whereby_o yâ_z truth_n of_o christ_n body_n may_v be_v wipe_v away_o whensoever_o it_o please_v the_o protestant_n consider_v m._n juell_n that_o you_o be_v not_o capitaine_n general_a of_o the_o whole_a army_n satan_n himself_o have_v take_v that_o cure_n upon_o he_o before_o you_o be_v bear_v it_o be_v he_o that_o direct_v all_o yâ_z soldier_n of_o his_o camp_n what_o place_n in_o his_o army_n do_v you_o occupy_v i_o do_v not_o know_v this_o i_o be_o sure_a of_o your_o capitaine_n intend_v full_o to_o displace_v christ_n as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o he_o not_o only_o from_o dwell_v corporal_o in_o our_o body_n by_o the_o bless_a communion_n but_o also_o from_o take_v real_a flesh_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n satan_n himself_o will_v have_v a_o other_o messiah_n to_o be_v prepare_v for_o judge_v you_o whether_o you_o help_v towards_o his_o come_n or_o ââ¦o_o he_o covet_v to_o persuade_v that_o corporal_o do_v mean_v true_o and_o nothiââ¦g_o else_o wherââ¦ore_o it_o follow_v that_o corpus_fw-la be_v latin_n for_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o nothing_o else_o and_o see_v christ_n take_v of_o our_o lady_n corpus_fw-la a_o body_n by_o you_o it_o be_v mean_v he_o take_v tââ¦_n truth_n of_o jewel_n our_o lady_n &_o nothing_o else_o or_o can_v you_o avoid_v the_o yoke_n the_o ââ¦dance_n truth_n the_o mutual_a respect_n that_o be_v between_o body_n &_o bodily_a corpus_fw-la and_o corporal_o whatsoever_o one_o of_o those_o name_n which_o be_v in_o one_o yoke_n do_v signify_v the_o other_o do_v signify_v after_o the_o same_o rate_n if_o bonitas_fw-la be_v goodness_n bone_fw-la be_v good_a &_o be_v be_v well_o âª_o corporal_o be_v of_o the_o same_o yoke_n with_o corpus_fw-la body_n if_o bodily_a do_v mean_v true_o corpus_fw-la do_v mean_a truth_n so_o christ_n take_v truth_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o what_o be_v that_o forsooth_o it_o be_v whatsoever_o it_o please_v m._n jewel_n so_o that_o it_o be_v no_o fantasy_n it_o may_v be_v then_o faith_n or_o charity_n or_o else_o bone_n without_o flesh_n or_o skin_n without_o flesh_n and_o bone_n to_o this_o point_n m._n juel_n divinity_n leadethus_o o_o miserable_a time_n o_o cor_o rupted_a manner_n the_o noun_n corpus_fw-la body_n and_o the_o adverb_n corporaliter_fw-la corporal_o do_v not_o only_o signify_v a_o truth_n but_o a_o truth_n of_o body_n and_o in_o christ_n it_o signify_v a_o truth_n of_o flesh_n and_o of_o blood_n jewel_n otherwise_o there_o must_v needs_o follow_v this_o great_a inconvenience_n that_o our_o body_n must_v be_v in_o like_a manner_n corporal_o natural_o untruth_n and_o sââ¦eshly_o in_o christ_n body_n for_o hilarius_n say_v we_o also_o be_v natural_o in_o he_o and_o cyrillus_n we_o be_v corporal_o in_o christ._n san._n it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o both_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n corporal_o and_o he_o in_o we_o during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o conjunction_n for_o when_o a_o join_n of_o twain_o be_v make_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o yâ_z one_o be_v join_v to_o yâ_z other_o which_o be_v no_o absurdity_n at_o all_o because_o that_o twain_o to_o wit_n 5._o christ_n and_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v in_o one_o flesh_n it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o as_o flesh_n be_v make_v one_o with_o he_o who_o real_o eat_v and_o dige_v it_o so_o be_v christ_n join_v most_o real_o to_o he_o that_o worthy_o receave_v his_o body_n jewel_n that_o we_o be_v thus_o in_o christ_n require_v not_o any_o corporal_a untruth_n be_v san._n that_o be_v a_o fine_a kind_n of_o be_v m._n ãâã_d that_o christ_n body_n shall_v be_v in_o we_o corporal_o and_o yet_o the_o be_v shall_v not_o be_v corporal_a in_o deed_n the_o manner_n be_v not_o corporal_a but_o if_o you_o exclude_v the_o truth_n also_o of_o corporal_a be_v you_o speak_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n itself_o for_o the_o word_n corporal_o can_v signify_v no_o less_o than_o a_o corporal_a truth_n jewel_n it_o require_v not_o any_o local_a be_v ââ¦ntruthe_n san._n it_o be_v a_o local_a be_v in_o respect_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n occupi_v the_o same_o place_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n which_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v occupy_v before_o and_o when_o we_o have_v that_o kind_n of_o bread_n in_o we_o even_o so_o christ_n being_n be_v local_a in_o us._n jewel_n christ_n sit_v in_o heaven_n be_v here_o in_o we_o not_o by_o a_o natural_a but_o untruth_n by_o a_o spiritual_a means_n of_o be_v san._n the_o be_v of_o christ_n in_o we_o by_o spirit_n be_v also_o natural_a concern_v the_o nature_n of_o his_o godhead_n which_o be_v every_o where_o but_o concââ¦rning_v the_o grace_n which_o be_v create_v in_o we_o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a be_v after_o the_o rate_n as_o every_o cause_n be_v in_o his_o effect_n jewel_n s._n augustine_n say_v after_o that_o christ_n be_v ascend_v he_o be_v in_o impertiââ¦nt_fw-la we_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o s._n basil_n and_o again_o s._n augustine_n say_v the_o like_a in_o diverse_a place_n and_o christ_n speak_v in_o s._n paul_n &_o caet_fw-la san._n you_o be_v now_o in_o a_o common_a place_n m._n jewel_n who_o deni_v but_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n be_v here_o in_o spirit_n will_v that_o take_v away_o his_o be_v here_o in_o body_n when_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o his_o body_n shall_v one_o truth_n always_o displace_v a_o other_o with_o you_o these_o be_v sowter_n argument_n to_o say_v christ_n be_v god_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o man_n he_o be_v in_o heaven_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v not_o in_o earth_n etc._n etc._n jewel_n this_o conjunction_n be_v spiritual_a and_o therefore_o need_v not_o ââ¦truthe_n neither_o the_o circumstance_n of_o place_n nor_o corporal_a presence_n san._n the_o conjunction_n be_v spiritual_a but_o the_o ãâã_d of_o work_v it_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o corporal_a substance_n of_o christ._n m._n jewel_n have_v forget_v that_o we_o now_o ãâã_d whether_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n corporal_o for_o thââ¦nd_v to_o make_v a_o spiritual_a coniââ¦ction_n by_o this_o mean_a of_o his_o own_o flesh_n or_o no_o as_o if_o a_o man_n to_o conââ¦t_v a_o heretic_n do_v not_o only_o write_v unto_o he_o but_o also_o do_v come_v himself_o and_o by_o disputation_n of_o mouth_n do_v persuade_v he_o the_o conversion_n be_v spiritual_a but_o the_o mean_a of_o work_v it_o be_v by_o corporal_a prââ¦sence_n jewel_n the_o conjunction_n that_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o we_o neither_o unââ¦_n doââ¦h_n mingle_v person_n nor_o unite_v substance_n but_o it_o do_v knit_v our_o âª_o affect_n together_o and_o join_v our_o will_n say_v s._n cyprian_n san._n s._n cyprian_n in_o the_o same_o place_n expound_v himself_o to_o meanââ¦e_v that_o we_o be_v not_o make_v by_o this_o union_n the_o second_o person_n in_o ãâã_d for_o say_v he_o the_o only_a sââ¦e_n be_v consubstanciall_a or_o of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o hiââ¦_n father_n but_o we_o by_o eat_v his_o real_a flesh_n in_o this_o sacrament_n be_v make_v ãâã_d unto_o the_o son_n of_o god_n attain_v throââ¦_n the_o flââ¦sh_n usque_fw-la ad_fw-la participationem_fw-la spiritus_fw-la âª_o even_o to_o the_o ãâã_d of_o the_o ââ¦pirit_n of_o christ._n again_o whereas_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n be_v ãâã_d in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o yâ_z union_n wââ¦ich_a be_v in_o ãâã_d as_o in_o matrimony_n the_o wife_n &_o husband_n tarry_v ââ¦oth_v ãâã_d person_n and_o each_o of_o they_o keep_v their_o several_a substance_n notwithstanding_o
do_v you_o ãâã_d his_o word_n jewel_n so_o this_o article_n be_v conclude_v with_o a_o ignoramus_n untruthe_n san._n not_o so_o because_o the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n but_o of_o his_o real_a presence_n though_o the_o manner_n be_v unknowen_a but_o do_v you_o call_v that_o a_o ââ¦gnoramus_fw-la if_o we_o know_v not_o how_o christ_n ignoramus_n be_v under_o the_o foorm_n of_o bread_n i_o be_o sure_a you_o know_v not_o how_o the_o union_n be_v make_v in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n be_v you_o therefore_o reprove_v as_o ignorant_a in_o deed_n if_o you_o belââ¦ue_v not_o christ_n presence_n you_o diââ¦us_fw-la have_v conclude_v this_o article_n with_o a_o non_fw-la credimus_fw-la which_o be_v a_o worse_a fault_n than_o ignoramus_n for_o he_o that_o beleve_v not_o shall_v be_v con_v 19_o dem_v jewel_n the_o old_a learned_a father_n never_o leave_v we_o in_o such_o doubt_n untruthe_n san._n s._n cyrillus_n in_o this_o very_a matter_n will_v we_o to_o geve_v strong_a faith_n to_o the_o mystery_n but_o to_o leave_v the_o way_n and_o knowledge_n of_o his_o 13._o work_n unto_o god_n the_o first_o part_n you_o have_v break_v the_o first_o and_o last_o d._n harding_n have_v observe_v and_o you_o shall_v be_v conclude_v with_o a_o dam_n naberis_fw-la if_o you_o repent_v not_o s._n chrisostom_n say_v it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o scholar_n not_o to_o search_v out_o curiouf_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o master_n affirm_v 45._o but_o to_o here_o and_o to_o believe_v and_o to_o look_v for_o a_o convenient_a time_n of_o soil_v the_o question_n jewel_n emissenus_fw-la say_v christ_n be_v present_a by_o his_o grace_n untruthe_n san._n you_o have_v put_v a_o false_a nominative_a case_n ãâã_d do_v say_v that_o christ_n consecrate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blââ¦od_a to_o send_v perennis_n illa_fw-la victima_fw-la viveret_fw-la in_o memoria_fw-la et_fw-la semper_fw-la praesens_fw-la esset_fw-la in_o gratia_fw-la that_o everlastig_fw-mi sacrifice_n shall_v live_v in_o remembrance_n and_o be_v always_o present_a in_o his_o grace_n it_o be_v victima_fw-la the_o oblatioââ¦_n or_o sacrifice_a host_n which_o be_v present_a in_o grace_n for_o in_o deed_n the_o act_n of_o crucify_a be_v utterlie_o pass_v but_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v present_a in_o his_o grace_n for_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v present_a in_o that_o flesh_n which_o suffer_v death_n again_o he_o say_v not_o yâ_z it_o be_v present_a by_o his_o grace_n as_o you_o have_v turn_v it_o but_o in_o his_o grace_n you_o will_v have_v grace_n to_o be_v the_o mean_a of_o presence_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o grace_n be_v the_o effect_n of_o presence_n but_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o grace_n in_o this_o sacrament_n be_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n own_o body_n jewel_n s._n augustine_n say_v christ_n in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n impertinent_a san._n that_o be_v true_a also_o when_o he_o be_v in_o we_o by_o his_o flesh_n for_o in_o that_o flesh_n his_o spirit_n dwell_v and_o he_o that_o deni_v christ_n to_o be_v in_o we_o by_o his_o own_o flesh_n take_v away_o the_o chief_a way_n by_o which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n may_v be_v in_o us._n untruthe_n jewel_n you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n that_o you_o see_v it_o be_v a_o certain_a sacrament_n that_o i_o deliver_v you_o san._n the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n be_v i_o have_v commend_v or_o 98._o set_v forth_o a_o certain_a sacrament_n to_o you_o and_o not_o i_o deliver_v you_o a_o cââ¦rtain_a sacrament_n for_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o s._n augustine_n in_o christ_n person_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o talk_n have_v aââ¦_n capharnaun_n where_o the_o sacrament_n be_v commend_v before_o it_o be_v deliver_v but_o 6._o that_o which_o be_v commend_v at_o capââ¦naum_n be_v only_o the_o same_o flesh_n which_o ãâã_d for_o we_o therefore_o that_o flesh_n must_v be_v deliver_v not_o in_o a_o visible_a and_o sensible_a manner_n but_o yet_o in_o truth_n of_o geve_v by_o body_n and_o of_o take_v by_o body_n for_o of_o such_o geve_v and_o take_v christ_n speak_v as_o by_o the_o last_o supper_n it_o may_v appear_v where_o he_o perââ¦oormed_v 26_o his_o promise_n but_o m._n jewel_n be_v loath_a that_o relation_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o the_o talk_n have_v at_o capharnanm_n for_o than_o he_o see_v that_o the_o very_a real_a flesh_n must_v be_v the_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v again_o he_o will_v not_o have_v either_o the_o commendation_n past_a or_o the_o gift_n to_o come_v and_o thereforââ¦_n he_o turn_v commendavi_fw-la into_o trado_fw-la i_o have_v commend_v into_o i_o deliver_v indede_o m._n jueââ¦_n christ_n deliver_v his_o flesh_n as_o well_o at_o capharnaum_n as_o at_o his_o supper_n by_o falsiââ¦ying_v your_o doctrine_n but_o not_o so_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n where_o the_o promise_n be_v show_v to_o be_v make_v at_o capharnaum_n and_o the_o perfoormance_n at_o the_o last_o ââ¦upper_n in_o which_o supper_n neither_o the_o body_n which_o the_o jew_n s_o saw_n be_v deliver_v and_o much_o less_o bread_n or_o wine_n which_o be_v not_o promise_v but_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n that_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v deliver_v which_o at_o ãâã_d be_v promise_v untruthe_n jewel_n thus_o the_o holy_a father_n say_v christ_n be_v present_a not_o corporal_o san._n both_o s._n ââ¦yril_n and_o s._n hilary_n have_v the_o word_n corporal_o as_o i_o have_v show_v concern_v the_o sacrament_n untruthe_n jewel_n not_o carnal_o san._n s._n hilary_n have_v the_o word_n carnal_o in_o the_o 23._o chapit_fw-la the_o number_n 37._o of_o this_o book_n untruthe_n jewel_n not_o natural_o 26_o san._n s._n hilary_n have_v the_o term_n natural_o diverse_a time_n &_o s._n lyrill_n call_v it_o natural_a partake_n and_o natural_a union_n jewel_n but_o as_o in_o a_o sacrament_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o by_o his_o grace_n impertinent_a saââ¦_n here_o appear_v what_o stuff_n you_o have_v feed_v the_o reader_n with_o all_o in_o your_o whole_a book_n for_o partly_o you_o deny_v a_o truth_n which_o be_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o corporal_o present_a and_o that_o you_o do_v against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o father_n as_o i_o have_v show_v partly_o you_o prove_v that_o your_o heresy_n by_o a_o other_o truth_n which_o rather_o stablish_v than_o hinder_v the_o real_a presence_n for_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v better_o present_v in_o spirit_n and_o grace_n they_o if_o he_o be_v present_a in_o his_o flesh_n therein_o to_o converte_v to_o we_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o take_a flesh_n be_v to_o make_v his_o flesh_n a_o instrument_n to_o deliver_v his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n to_o our_o flesh_n to_o send_v no_o mean_a of_o provide_v for_o our_o salvation_n may_v be_v omit_v by_o so_o love_v a_o father_n in_o consideration_n whereof_o s._n ambrose_n say_v 1._o thou_o that_o take_v his_o flesh_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o divine_a substance_n in_o that_o food_n note_v that_o the_o spirit_n &_o substance_n of_o god_n come_v to_o we_o by_o take_v christ_n flesh_n ¶_o the_o conclusion_n consider_v first_o good_a reader_n that_o of_o more_o than_o twenty_o article_n there_o be_v but_o one_o answer_v &_o yâ_z not_o the_o long_a wherein_o if_o above_o two_o ãâã_d fault_n and_o untrutââ¦es_n without_o curiouse_a search_a be_v ãâã_d what_o may_v a_o man_n think_v of_o the_o wholââ¦_n book_n of_o m._n juell_n how_o many_o hundred_o yea_o ãâã_d soââ¦_n thousand_o untruth_n may_v you_o think_v to_o be_v contain_v therein_o who_o when_o he_o prove_v his_o matter_n bââ¦t_o and_o least_o of_o all_o abuse_v himself_o his_o proufe_v be_v none_o other_o then_o to_o say_v one_o thing_n be_v not_o true_a because_o 319._o another_o be_v true_a thus_o he_o teacââ¦th_v christ_n to_o be_v eat_v by_o faith_n and_o 337._o 324_o spirit_n and_o think_v that_o thereof_o he_o may_v conclude_v christ_n be_v not_o eat_v in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o moââ¦th_n christ_n be_v corporal_o in_o heaven_n 323._o therefore_o his_o body_n be_v not_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o figure_n &_o therefore_o by_o his_o judgement_n it_o be_v not_o the_o truth_n as_o well_o he_o may_v say_v a_o man_n have_v a_o soul_n and_o therefore_o no_o body_n or_o christ_n be_v man_n and_o therefore_o not_o god_n scripture_n in_o disputinge_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o never_o answer_v to_o these_o word_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o be_v the_o most_o principal_a point_n of_o d._n hardings_n answer_n he_o never_o consider_v the_o promise_n 316._o make_v by_o christ_n in_o yâ_z time_n to_o come_v dabo_fw-la i_o will_v geve_v but_o talk_v of_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v past_a and_o present_a he_o have_v english_v non_fw-la habebitis_fw-la vitam_fw-la you_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n he_o expound_v that_o we_o be_v
he_o appli_v the_o answer_n make_v by_o s._n hilary_n concern_v the_o union_n between_o 346._o ourselves_o by_o faith_n as_o though_o he_o have_v say_v it_o of_o christ_n union_n with_o us._n a_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n be_v so_o shameful_o belie_v he_o write_v thing_n express_o contrary_a as_o that_o by_o faith_n christ_n 14._o body_n dwell_v in_o our_o body_n real_o and_o corporal_o and_o that_o contradiction_n christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o not_o real_o or_o bodily_a but_o because_o his_o faith_n 341._o be_v in_o us._n again_o what_o contradiction_n be_v it_o to_o say_v all_o accidental_a 344._o 345._o conjunction_n be_v remove_v and_o yet_o not_o to_o graââ¦nt_v a_o real_a and_o substantial_a 323._o conjunction_n to_o say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v take_v with_o our_o 343._o mouth_n and_o that_o we_o undonted_o receive_v christ_n body_n in_o the_o 319._o 345._o sacrament_n and_o yet_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o receive_v into_o our_o mouth_n real_o but_o by_o faith_n only_o that_o our_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n be_v call_v corporal_a because_o it_o be_v spiritual_a 15._o he_o use_v a_o point_n of_o so_o great_a and_o shameful_a dishonesty_n as_o one_o shift_n boy_n in_o school_n will_v not_o use_v in_o reason_v against_o a_o other_o making_n d._n harding_n to_o reason_n so_o as_o he_o never_o think_v os_fw-la as_o to_o say_v 321._o 1._o the_o capharnaite_n mistoke_v christ_n word_n 2._o christ_n speak_v 324._o of_o his_o ascension_n 3._o we_o eat_v not_o the_o flesh_n that_o be_v crucify_v 333._o upon_o every_o of_o which_o proposition_n and_o many_o such_o like_a he_o make_v d._n harding_n conclude_v ergo_fw-la christ_n body_n be_v real_o in_o the_o sacramââ¦nt_n either_o falsify_v the_o whole_a argument_n or_o leave_v out_o a_o principal_a part_n or_o put_v that_o in_o one_o part_n which_o shall_v have_v stand_v in_o a_o other_o and_o when_o he_o have_v do_v his_o feat_n then_o to_o amend_v the_o matter_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o come_v in_o with_o a_o but_o m._n harding_n will_v say_v &_o cet_fw-fr a_o man_n of_o good_a conscience_n and_o of_o learning_n will_v rather_o make_v his_o adversary_n reason_n strong_a and_o then_o answer_v they_o when_o they_o be_v at_o the_o worst_a then_o to_o dissemble_v the_o strength_n of_o they_o and_o only_o to_o blere_v man_n eye_n with_o deface_v his_o adversary_n strong_a argument_n by_o falsify_v his_o proof_n d._n caet_fw-la harding_n require_v only_o that_o man_n of_o understanding_n will_v vouthsafe_v to_o read_v his_o word_n again_o after_o m._n jewel_n have_v make_v his_o argument_n and_o then_o to_o consider_v his_o unhonest_a report_n a_o witness_n of_o his_o evil_a conscience_n he_o falsifi_v the_o doctor_n by_o make_v they_o to_o say_v more_o than_o 16._o word_n they_o do_v say_v he_o put_v into_o s._n hierom_n these_o three_o word_n into_o heaven_n that_o which_o do_v utter_o change_v the_o sense_n he_o report_v that_o s._n augustine_n teach_v the_o the_o old_a father_n to_o have_v eat_v the_o self_n same_o body_n that_o be_v receive_v now_o of_o the_o faithful_a all_o the_o which_o word_n be_v forge_v in_o the_o word_n of_o cyrillus_n he_o do_v put_v in_o these_o 324._o 321._o three_o word_n non_fw-la aliud_fw-la quà m_fw-la he_o make_v s._n hilary_n to_o say_v that_o 344._o we_o be_v one_o with_o christ_n by_o faith_n natural_o 346._o he_o leave_v out_o certain_a word_n of_o the_o doctor_n which_o be_v of_o 17._o importance_n touch_v the_o principal_a question_n the_o nominative_a word_n case_n in_o the_o b._n of_o rochester_n word_n convey_v in_o also_o a_o false_a nominative_a case_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o true_a in_o s._n augustine_n word_n in_o one_o place_n he_o leave_v out_o the_o genitive_n case_n unitatis_fw-la and_o huius_fw-la rei_fw-la and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n the_o verb_n praeparatur_fw-la in_o mensa_fw-la domini_fw-la in_o the_o 317._o three_o place_n the_o noun_n adiââ¦ctive_a spiritualem_fw-la wherein_o the_o whole_a 323._o weight_n of_o the_o cause_n rest_v in_o the_o four_o the_o ablative_a case_n in_o ipso_fw-la 321._o 320._o eius_fw-la corpore_fw-la constituti_fw-la in_o anacletus_fw-la he_o leave_v out_o chrismati_n put_v 342._o in_o oleo_fw-la for_o it_o in_o alexander_n he_o omit_v missarun_n solennia_fw-la in_z 342._o 341._o english_n yâ_z word_n of_o bonaventure_n he_o leave_v out_o the_o adveââ¦_n essential_o 324._o in_o s._n hieron_n he_o leave_v out_o repellamus_fw-la judaicas_fw-la fabulas_fw-la which_o 336._o will_v have_v show_v whereof_o he_o speak_v in_o allege_v ââ¦usebins_n emissenus_fw-la he_o leave_v out_o three_o linesin_n yâ_z miââ¦dest_a join_v yâ_z foorme_a part_n with_o the_o late_a he_o affirm_v gregory_n nyssen_n not_o to_o speak_v one_o word_n of_o the_o 18._o 343._o sacrament_n and_o therein_o form_v d._n hardings_n argument_n christ_n lie_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n ergo_fw-la his_o body_n be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrment_n whereas_o gregory_n nyssen_n say_v clean_o contrary_a christ_n be_v make_v meat_n to_o to_o the_o body_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o thereof_o d._n harding_n conclude_v ergo_fw-la he_o be_v as_o real_o make_v meat_n to_o our_o body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o ever_o he_o be_v real_o bear_v sith_o his_o be_v real_a meat_n prove_v his_o birth_n he_o say_v one_o john_n scote_n and_o bertram_n write_v open_o against_o the_o real_a presence_n with_o good_a contentation_n of_o the_o world_n a_o more_o impudent_a lie_n be_v never_o utter_v 329._o by_o man_n he_o disgrace_v s._n hilary_n and_o privy_o father_v upon_o he_o a_o 19_o great_a blasphemy_n as_o though_o he_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v one_o with_o god_n ââ¦ilary_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n in_o nature_n of_o the_o godhead_n whereas_o his_o mind_n be_v nothing_o so_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v before_o 344._o he_o call_v the_o father_n word_n speak_v in_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v 20._o in_o question_n between_o d._n harding_n &_o he_o hot_a violent_a rigorouse_a guilty_a excessive_a therein_o plain_o yield_v himself_o guilty_a that_o he_o ought_v to_o 344._o guilty_a subsribe_v as_o who_o will_v not_o find_v fault_n with_o those_o three_o most_o learned_a and_o ancient_a father_n word_n hilary_n chrysostome_n cyrill_n unless_o he_o clere_o see_v they_o to_o speak_v utter_o against_o his_o doctrine_n i_o beseech_v god_n to_o geve_v he_o grace_n to_o amend_v these_o enormouse_n fault_n it_o be_v better_a m._n jewel_n once_o to_o subscribe_v hearty_o then_o to_o be_v damn_v for_o ever_o now_o to_o leave_v m._n jewel_n and_o to_o speak_v these_o few_o word_n to_o thou_o good_a christian_a reader_n i_o choose_v to_o speak_v so_o copious_o of_o this_o 1._o argument_n partly_o because_o it_o be_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o offend_v in_o that_o side_n partly_o because_o this_o one_o question_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o a_o great_a number_n ââ¦oe_v which_o depend_v of_o it_o for_o if_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o thing_n now_o be_v most_o full_o proââ¦d_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n of_o transubstantiation_n as_o the_o which_o be_v the_o most_o conveââ¦ient_a way_n to_o make_v the_o body_n 2._o present_a again_o wheresoever_o that_o body_n be_v it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n since_o it_o be_v the_o substance_n once_o bloody_o sacrifice_v wherein_o the_o merit_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n still_o remain_v three_o 3._o see_v that_o body_n be_v rise_v from_o death_n die_v no_o more_o the_o whole_a must_v needs_o be_v under_o each_o soorme_n and_o therefore_o albeit_o the_o consecration_n must_v be_v necessary_o make_v in_o two_o kind_n to_o represent_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n where_o his_o blood_n be_v apart_o from_o his_o flesh_n yet_o no_o less_o merit_n virtue_n &_o grace_n come_v to_o he_o who_o receave_v worthy_o one_o kind_n alone_o then_o if_o he_o receive_v both_o together_o four_o 4._o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n both_o aught_o to_o be_v adore_v &_o be_v present_a for_o we_o may_v be_v preserve_v for_o our_o necessity_n so_o that_o all_o these_o truth_n and_o many_o more_o depend_v of_o this_o one_o wherein_o the_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o see_v it_o be_v prove_v present_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o it_o have_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o three_o four_o and_o five_o book_n see_v it_o have_v be_v teach_v to_o be_v adore_v as_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o my_o six_o book_n see_v it_o be_v ãâã_d to_o be_v take_v into_o our_o ãâã_d mouth_n and_o body_n and_o to_o nourish_v our_o very_a flesh_n to_o resurrection_n &_o to_o be_v make_v meat_n to_o our_o body_n which_o have_v neither_o faith_n nor_o spirit_n but_o only_a flesh_n and_o bone_n to_o receive_v
it_o withal_o see_v the_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o m._n juell_n and_o his_o fellow_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n find_v to_o be_v vain_a false_a wicked_a and_o be_v direct_o confute_v in_o the_o first_o second_o and_o seven_o book_n last_o of_o aââ¦l_n see_v as_o in_o this_o one_o article_n m._n juel_n ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v in_o part_n discover_v so_o ãâã_d many_o other_o they_o shall_v be_v short_o god_n will_v lay_v ãâã_d the_o ãâã_d of_o all_o ãâã_d it_o remain_v that_o the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n so_o ãâã_d defend_v and_o justify_v be_v most_o eruest_o bââ¦leved_v and_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n most_o strong_o confess_v to_o the_o end_n he_o that_o confess_v now_o this_o truth_n of_o christ_n before_o man_n may_v be_v acknowlege_v of_o christ_n before_o his_o father_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n where_o god_n send_v we_o a_o comfortable_a sentence_n that_o we_o may_v live_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n for_o ever_o amen_n approbatio_fw-la septimi_fw-la libri_fw-la qvoniam_fw-la librum_fw-la istum_fw-la legerunt_fw-la &_o approbant_fw-la ãâã_d theologiae_n &_o idiomatis_fw-la anglici_fw-la eruditissimi_fw-la quibus_fw-la ego_fw-la summam_fw-la hac_fw-la in_o re_fw-la fidem_fw-la deberi_fw-la iudico_fw-la tutò_fw-la &_o utiliter_fw-la emitti_fw-la potest_fw-la cunerus_n petri_n pastor_n sancti_fw-la petri_n lovanij_fw-la 20._o decemb._n anno._n 1565._o a_o brief_a table_n of_o the_o whole_a work_n 1._o first_o because_o the_o whole_a book_n do_v concern_v special_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n if_o the_o reader_n will_v see_v any_o thing_n pertain_v thereunto_o he_o shall_v find_v it_o in_o the_o chapiter_n which_o be_v prefix_v before_o every_o book_n 2._o second_o of_o adoration_n it_o be_v entreat_v in_o yâ_z six_o first_o chapiter_n of_o the_o six_o book_n and_o that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n can_v be_v no_o idol_n 292._o 3._o of_o transubstantiation_n as_o occasion_n serve_v he_o shall_v find_v fol._n 234._o etc._n etc._n item_n 314._o b._n &_o 315._o 4._o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o yâ_z mass_n fol._n 32._o 33._o 34._o 197._o 217._o 216._o 217._o 223._o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la 233._o 5._o of_o reservation_n 35._o b._n 36._o 37._o 6_z how_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v a_o figure_n 59_o 60._o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la 72._o &_o 137._o b._n usque_fw-la ad_fw-la 146._o &_o 280._o 7._o that_o evil_a man_n eat_v christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n 43._o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la 50._o &_o 276._o 8._o of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o church_n fol._n 260._o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la 269._o 9_o of_o the_o figure_n and_o prophecy_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n 214._o b._n usque_fw-la ad_fw-la 223._o 10._o the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n 316._o b._n usque_fw-la ad_fw-la 324._o fault_n fo._n pa._n li._n correction_n ãâã_d 5_o 1._o 7._o live_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 7_o 2_o 17_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d meanââ¦_n 11_o 1_o 4_o name_n be_v more_o like_a 17_o 2_o 29_o be_v it_o more_o like_a above_o 19_o 1_o 24_o alone_a doctrinethis_n 20_o 2_o 11_o doctrine_n of_o this_o a_o truth_n less_o 21_o 1_o 21_o a_o truth_n no_o less_o ââ¦che_fw-it 28_o 1_o 24_o such_o ready_a by_o deed_n 29_o 2_o 12_o ready_a either_o by_o deed_n divine_a ibidem_fw-la  _fw-fr 31_o living_n say_v 50_o 2_o 13_o save_v that_o fill_v 73_o 2_o 20_o that_o he_o fill_v deni_v parââ¦_n 82_o 1_o 8_o deni_v any_o parcel_n make_v meat_n 86_o 2_o 9_o make_v meet_v now_o come_v 87_o 1_o 9_o now_o come_v we_o neââ¦_n 89_o 2_o 15_o we_o a_o new_a manner_n price_n eodem_fw-la that_o the_o son_n  _fw-fr  _fw-fr 18_o other_o price_n  _fw-fr 107_o 1_o 28_o yâ_z which_o the_o son_n of_o his_o bread_n 108_o 1_o 20_o of_o this_o bread_n be_v say_v 112_o 1_o 5_o be_v save_v the_o ââ¦ycal_a ââ¦15_n 1_o 2_o mystical_a w_v howhe_n 118_o 2_o 2_o show_v that_o he_o geve_v the_o flesh_n 120_o 1_o 16_o geve_v that_o flesh_n of_o grace_n 123_o 2_o 18_o of_o glory_n signa_fw-la quo_fw-la 124_o 1_o 31_o signa_fw-la quae_fw-la mystery_n 126_o 1_o 6_o mystery_n cyrillus_n beside_o that_o beside_o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr will_v geve_v it_o 127_o 2_o 29_o i_o will_v geve_v but_o one_o 128_o 2_o 11_o speak_v but_o once_o but_o teach_v 136_o 2_o 31_o but_o they_o teach_v out_o all_o quest_n 137_o 2_o 31_o out_o of_o all_o question_n old_a fashion_n 143_o 2_o 5_o old_a falsehood_n word_n of_o life_n 147_o 2_o 17_o wood_n of_o life_n ââ¦tem_fw-la lin_v 18._o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr not_o to_o be_v 148_o 2_o 3_o christ_n to_o be_v where_o yet_o 167_o 2_o ââ¦_n well_o yet_o &_o of_o god_n ibidem_fw-la  _fw-fr 15_z and_z if_o it_o be_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n hoc_fw-la that_o 172_o 2_o 24_o hoc_fw-la this_o seem_v to_o stand_v 177_o 1_o 15_o seem_v to_o sound_n this_o hieru_n ibid._n 2_o 15_o this_o be_v jerusalem_n they_o shall_v 179_o 2_o 7_o as_o they_o sound_v and_o real_o 180_o 2_o 11_o and_o real_a chrystom_n 182_o 1_o ââ¦_n chrysostom_n mean_v we_o 184_o 1_o 5_o move_v us._n ãâã_d ibidem_fw-la  _fw-fr ââ¦2_n to_o change_v fault_n fo._n pa._n li._n correction_n and_o gather_v ibidem_fw-la  _fw-fr 25_o and_o to_o gather_v god_n man_n ibidem_fw-la 2_o 7_o both_o god_n &_o man_n miraculoush_v 186_o 2_o 19_o miraculous_o under_o your_o 191_o 2_o 7_o unto_o your_o miserable_a 194_o 1_o 4_o miserable_a rack_a take_v  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr corpus_fw-la 185_o 1_o 3_o corporis_fw-la the_o cause_n 198_o 2_o 4_o the_o sense_n faithful_a when_o 202_o 1_o 31_o faithful_a when_o cup_n be_v the_o 203_o 1_o 6_o this_o cup_n the_o same_o member_n 209_o 2_o 6_o same_o number_n it_o be_v not_o 211_o 1_o 7_o be_v it_o not_o by_o natural_a 212_o 2_o 3_o supernatural_a cord_n vos_fw-la 227_o 1_o 24_o certè_fw-la vos_fw-la of_o i_o and_o ibidem_fw-la  _fw-fr 30_o of_o i_o to_o the_o end_n in_o yâ_z deed_n you_o may_v be_v mindful_a of_o i_o and_o i_o say_v under_o 233_o 2_o 16_o i_o say_v the_o body_n that_o die_v under_o dââ¦edes_v that_o ââ¦34_n 2_o 13_o dede_n in_o that_o be_o a_o vine_n 252_o 2_o 28_o be_o the_o true_a vine_n any_o mystical_a 266_o 1_o 12_o only_a mystical_a corpore_fw-la uni_fw-la ibid._n  _fw-fr 25_o capite_fw-la uniretut_o âª_o but_o in_o the_o 268_o 1_o 23_o but_o by_o the._n carnis_fw-la chri_n sti_fw-la ibid._n  _fw-fr 31_o carnis_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n his_o church_n 269_o 1_o 24_o all_o the_o follow_v from_o these_o word_n and_o his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o v._o chap._n shall_v come_v in_o at_o the_o end_n of_o thââ¦_n vi_fw-mi chap._n  _fw-fr do_v it_o 272_o 1_o 8_o so_o do_v it_o be_v dead_a ibidem_fw-la  _fw-fr 9_z be_v dead_a else_o past_a in_o 273_o 1_o 19_o else_o in_o ãâã_d 274_o 1_o 4_o christ._n certain_o by_o act_n 180_o 1_o 31_o by_o art_n not_o once_o to_o 299_o 1_o 3_o not_o omit_v to_o corinthian_n be_v not_o 300_o 1_o 4_o corinthian_n be_v âª_o not_o corpus_fw-la 302_o 1_o 10_o corpus_fw-la est_fw-la chri_n sti_fw-la christi_fw-la  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr do_v all_o the_o ibid._n 2_o 1_o do_v not_o all_o the._n in_o deed_n 306_o 1_o 18_o in_o deed_n the_o thing_n thing_n  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr that_o member_n 317_o 1_o 12_o that_o number_n or_o believe_v 320_o 1_o ââ¦9_n or_o ãâã_d no._n no_o âª_o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr ââ¦aults_n fo._n pa._n li._n correction_n of_o a_o shape_n ibid._n 2_o 8_o of_o a_o round_a shape_n special_o 322_o 2_o 31_o special_o twice_o awise_o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr very_a faut_fw-fr 325_o 2_o 15_o very_a fact_n no_o lead_n 333_o 2_o 1_o no_o word_n lead_v be_v a_o figure_n 332_o 2_o 15_o be_v the_o sign_n thou_o they_o 331_o 2_o 2_o thou_o that_o they_o also_o also_o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr sixteen_o cha_z 334_o 2_o 9_o ten_o chap._n yas_n ibidem_fw-la  _fw-fr 10_z say_v yet_o we_o 335_o 1_o 12_o yet_o now_o we_o the_o word_n ibid._n 2_o 13_o the_o wood_n but_o it_o be_v 346_o 2_o 2_o but_o be_v it_o or_o flesh_n 356_o âª_o 1_o 26_o or_o fleshly_a to_o what_o 359_o 1_o 31_o to_o be_v what_o fault_n fo._n pa._n li._n correction_n the_o consecra_fw-la 364_o 2_o 21_o the_o consideratioââ¦_n tion_n  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr the_o vine_n 365_o 2_o 14_o the_o true_a vine_n speak_v unto_o 381_o 2_o 2_o speak_v unto_o yâ_z jew_o the._n the_o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr and_o drink_v 382_o 1_o 30_o and_o to_o drink_v be_v common_a 385_o 2_o 26_o be_v the_o common_a ãâã_d be_v be_v 388_o 2_o 15_o iââ¦_n it_o be_v thereof_o it_o not_o âª_o ibid._n  _fw-fr 17_o thereof_o be_v
gal._n 5._o ephe_n 5._o the_o apo_n logiââ¦_n brin_o gââ¦th_v uââ¦_n from_o yâ_z holy_a scripture_n to_o the_o father_n the_o eigth_n chapter_n aug._n dââ¦_n bono_fw-mi con_fw-mi iugal_a ca._n 24._o marriage_n among_o christian_n be_v a_o sacrament_n priesthââ¦_n be_v a_o sacrament_n the_o substance_n of_o yâ_z sacrament_n tarry_v in_o a_o eââ¦ill_a priest_n remove_v from_o his_o office_n augu._n eon_z tra_z don._n li._n 5._o c._n 20_o ambros._n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la paenit_fw-la cap._n 7._o seven_o sa_o cramââ¦ts_n be_v proââ¦_n ãâã_d yâ_z greek_n &_o latin_n in_o yâ_z council_n of_o fââ¦oremce_n heretic_n eââ¦eme_v nei_n the_fw-mi scripture_n nor_o fatheââ¦s_n the_o apo_n logie_fw-la pretend_v scripture_n till_o it_o may_v set_v up_o a_o idol_n of_o his_o own_o the_o nynthe_n chapter_n the_o apo_n logie_fw-la the_o answer_n the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v a_o sacrament_n dion_n de_fw-fr ec._n hier._n cap._n 3._o maxim_n in_o schol_a graecis_fw-la ââ¦sius_fw-la acknowledge_v more_o sacrament_n than_o twain_o ca._n 4._o 5._o 6._o de_fw-la ecclesiast_fw-la hierarââ¦hia_n the_o apo_n logie_fw-la be_v con_v strain_v to_o believe_v many_o very_fw-la tie_v unwriten_a joan._n 6._o matt._n 26._o mark_n 14_o luk._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 10._o &_o 11._o the_o apology_n skip_v the_o write_v veââ¦_n the_o apo_n logie_fw-la be_v full_a oââ¦_n gloss_n but_o not_o of_o scripture_n math._n 26_o heretic_n love_v not_o the_o gospel_n matt._n 26._o actor_n 5._o every_o way_n the_o sacramen_n ãâã_d be_v ãâã_d the_o figââ¦re_n and_o yâ_z truth_n ãâã_d ãâã_d the._n x._o chapter_n joan._n 1._o christ_n have_v two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n galat._n 3._o 1._o tim._n 2._o 1._o joan_n 5._o &_o 10._o man_n consist_v of_o two_o part_n the_o sacrament_n consist_v of_o ãâã_d part_n joan._n 3._o mat._n 28._o tit._n 3._o in_o ep_v 23._o ad_fw-la bonifacium_fw-la the_o sign_n and_o thing_n signify_v stand_v toge_n ther._n mat._n 28._o mat._n 26_o âª_o marc_n 14._o luc._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11_o homil._n de_fw-fr judae_fw-la proditio_fw-la ne_fw-la christ_n cââ¦_n not_o instiââ¦_n a_o false_a sign_n the._n xi_o chapter_n diverse_a signââ¦s_n be_v in_o yâ_z euââ¦_n euââ¦_n 1._o 1._o 2._o 2._o 3._o 3._o 4._o 4._o 1._o the_o word_n of_o ââ¦tion_n arââ¦_n yâ_z first_o sign_n sign_n 2._o christ_n take_v have_v in_o it_o the_o truth_n ãâã_d joan._n 11._o 1._o joan_n 5._o what_o a_o saââ¦rament_n be_v de_fw-fr consecratione_fw-la ãâã_d 2._o cap_n âª_o saââ¦_n luc._n 22._o if_o the_o bo_z die_z be_v not_o make_v the_o word_n make_v a_o fall_n se_fw-la token_n psal._n 58._o facere_fw-la be_v to_o do_v and_o make_v when_o the_o order_n of_o priesthoââ¦_n be_v geuè_fw-fr to_o the_o apostle_n lucae_n 22._o matt._n 16._o a_o figurative_a speech_n do_v not_o signify_v till_o it_o be_v understand_v august_n de_fw-fr doctr_n christ._n li._n 2._o ca._n 1._o this_o be_v my_o body_n either_o do_v signi_fw-la fie_o nothing_o for_o it_o signify_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n simple_n man_n can_v not_o under_o stand_v how_o the_o sigââ¦e_n may_v ââ¦e_v call_v ââ¦y_n yâ_z name_n oââ¦_n the_o thinââ¦_n the_o apo_n stle_n be_v simple_a man_n actor_n 4._o if_o christ_n word_n have_v not_o their_o first_o meaning_n they_o must_v sound_v to_o diverââ¦e_v man_n diverse_o the_o apo_n logie_fw-la be_v con_v fute_v by_o his_o own_o sayingââ¦_n joan._n 20._o word_n must_v be_v take_v as_o they_o common_o sound_v the_o apo_n logie_fw-la falsifi_v the_o word_n of_o christ._n the_o chief_a word_n of_o a_o sacrament_n must_v not_o be_v unproper_a a_o obscure_a say_n be_v no_o sensible_a sign_n it_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o holy_a sign_n or_o sacrament_n not_o to_o signific_a plain_a ââ¦y_n antichrist_n can_v not_o take_v away_o the_o whole_a faith_n if_o some_o part_n ãâã_d not_o call_v in_o ââ¦oubt_n beââ¦ore_o the._n xij_o chapter_n the_o ââ¦rgu_n mean_v of_o he_o ââ¦es_v the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v his_o body_n âª_o because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n thereof_o institute_v by_o himself_o joan._n 1._o august_n psal._n 73._o 1._o tim._n 3._o 1._o pet._n 2._o the_o true_a conception_n ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v ãâã_d with_o the_o sign_n thereof_o lucae_n 1._o matth._n 8._o cleanse_v ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o deed_n ãâã_d the_o word_n be_v ãâã_d matth._n 9_o ãâã_d be_v forgeven_a ãâã_d ãâã_d when_o so_o ãâã_d ãâã_d sââ¦d_a ãâã_d christ._n math._n 11._o those_o mi_a racy_n be_v do_v in_o deed_n which_o be_v beââ¦_n marci_n 7._o the_o ear_n be_v open_v ãâã_d deed_n when_o it_o be_v say_v be_v yâ_z open_v math._n 13._o parable_n wââ¦_n use_v in_o teachig_n but_o not_o in_o do_v joan._n 20._o christ_n rather_o do_v they_o teach_v in_o his_o supper_n 1._o pet._n 1._o the._n xiii_o chapter_n the_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o figurative_a the_o father_n calling_n yâ_z supper_n of_o christ_n a_o figure_n mean_v not_o a_o figure_n of_o rhetoââ¦_n epiphanius_n li._n 1._o to._n 2._o her_o 30._o esaiae_n 7._o the_o sign_n of_o christ_n be_v miraculouse_a the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n be_v secret_a token_n the_o ãâã_d of_o christ_n chur_n i_o be_v geââ¦_n to_o the_o ãâã_d &_o therââ¦ore_o be_v ââ¦ble_a luc._n 22._o psal._n 110._o cyprian_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la august_n in_o manuali_fw-la cap._n 11._o chrysos_fw-la de_fw-fr sacerdot_n lib._n 3._o damasc._n de_fw-fr orthod_n fit_a li._n 4._o c._n 14._o euseb._n li._n 5._o daemon_n cap._n 3._o beda_n in_o hom_n vidit_fw-la jesus_n etc._n etc._n basilius_n in_o litur_fw-la gregor_n nyssen_n in_o orat_fw-la de_fw-mi paschate_o hieron_n in_o levi._n nicepho_n rus_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 28._o the._n fourteen_o chapter_n the_o ââ¦rence_n between_o ââ¦res_n of_o ãâã_d &_o ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o figure_n of_o christ_n be_v mystical_a matt._n 28._o matt._n 26._o ââ¦oyes_n judge_v the_o figure_n of_o god_n to_o be_v figure_n of_o grammar_n heretic_n name_n what_o figure_n of_o grammar_n it_o be_v ãâã_d thing_n mystical_a word_n ephes._n 5._o math._n 28._o joan._n 15._o in_o joan._n tract_n 80._o elementum_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d august_n in_o ââ¦oan_n tract_n 80._o ââ¦n_n thing_n in_o a_o sacrament_n august_n count_v donat_n li._n 5._o cap._n 19_o &_o 20._o august_n count_v ep._n parmen_fw-la li._n 2._o c._n 12._o chrysost_n in_o epist._n ad_fw-la roma_fw-la hom._n 16_o august_n in_o joan._n tracta_fw-la 5._o ambros._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la li._n 4._o c._n 4._o &_o 5._o chryso_n hom_n de_fw-fr prodiââ¦i_fw-fr judae_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr dââ¦ct_n christi_fw-la li._n 2_o ca._n 3._o august_n de_fw-fr magistro_fw-la the_o word_n of_o christ_n supper_n do_v not_o sig_n nifie_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n if_o christ_n word_n be_v sigurative_a they_o make_v nothing_o at_o all_o word_n do_v all_o ãâã_d they_o do_v by_o signify_v lucae_n 22._o math._n 28_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v give_v hoââ¦ur_n to_o word_n body_n do_v sigââ¦i_fw-la sie_n yâ_z substance_n but_o not_o the_o sigure_n of_o a_o body_n how_o christ_n body_n be_v a_o figure_n the._n xv_o chapter_n the_o apo_n logie_fw-la the_o answer_n it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o set_v his_o death_n before_o we_o &_o not_o bread_n and_o wine_n lucae_n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11_o joan._n 6._o 1._o cor._n 11_o hom._n 83._o in_o maââ¦h_n damascenus_n de_fw-fr orthod_n side_n li._n 4._o cap._n 14._o cyrillus_n in_o joan._n lib._n 12._o cap._n 28._o joan._n 20._o 1._o cor._n 11_o the._n xuj_o chapter_n the_o apo_n logie_fw-la the_o answer_n lucae_n 22._o chrysost_n in_o hom._n 26_o in_o math._n chrysostom_n hom._n 51._o in_o math._n lucae_n 22._o the._n xvii_o chapter_n the_o apo_n logie_fw-la the_o answer_n psal._n 22._o prou._n 9_o 1._o cor._n 10_o psal._n 22._o prou._n 9_o 1._o cor._n 10_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v not_o yâ_z table_n that_o christ_n pray_v pare_v lucae_n 22._o hom._n 82_o in_o math._n the_o hand_n &_o ton_fw-fr ge_fw-mi receive_v ââ¦he_fw-mi same_o body_n yâ_z the_o hart_n do_v why_o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n malach._n 1_o de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la li._n 10_o cap._n 6._o lucae_n 22._o psal._n 22._o prou._n 9_o 1._o cor._n 10_o august_n li._n 9_o confess_v ca._n 13._o math._n 26_o joan._n 6._o cyrillus_n li._n 10._o c._n 13_o in_o joan._n tertul._n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr resurrec_fw-la carnis_fw-la ireneus_fw-la adversus_fw-la haereses_fw-la li._n 4._o c._n 34._o the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o apo_n logie_fw-la the_o answer_n by_o what_o mean_v yâ_z lord_n sup_v per_fw-mi be_v aba_fw-la sed_fw-la now_o in_o englanââ¦_n the_o apo_n logie_fw-la name_v yâ_z ho_o nour_v of_o christ_n body_n the_o worship_v of_o bread_n no_o substantial_a thing_n be_v wrought_v in_o christ_n supper_n by_o the_o sacramentary_n doctrine_n what_o the_o catholic_n believe_v to_o be_v wrought_v the._n nineteeen_o chapter_n the_o apo_n logie_fw-la the_o ãâã_d the_o apo_n logie_fw-la ââ¦peaketh_v ãâã_d &_o meanerââ¦_n evil_a
per_fw-la &_o unproper_a meaning_n the_o rela_fw-la tive_a mus_fw-la repete_fw-la hiââ¦_n whole_o ãâã_d by_o the_o sacramentarie_a doctrine_n bread_n be_v sacrifice_v for_o us._n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d there_o be_v but_o one_o verb_n in_o the_o greek_a text_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o ãâã_d the_o ãâã_d the_o answer_n to_o signify_v and_o to_o be_v a_o sign_n ââ¦o_v all_o one_o significat_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d 3._o reg._n 18_o levit._fw-la 15_o exod._n 12_o gen._n 14._o cypria_n lib_n 2._o epist._n 3._o the_o ãâã_d be_v come_v ãâã_d to_o ãâã_d sacrifice_n psal._n 39_o heb._n 10._o the_o body_n oââ¦red_v be_v at_o christ_n ââ¦ble_n thisth_v be_v more_o than_o such_o a_o other_o thing_n haimo_fw-la in_o 1_o cor._n 11._o justin._n iââ¦_n apol._n 2._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d matt._n 27._o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la 1._o cor._n 11_o a_o thing_n be_v the_o remembrance_n of_o itself_o exo._n 16._o matt._n 26._o luc._n 22._o marc._n 14_o de_fw-fr eccl_n hierar_fw-it cap._n 3._o in_o joan._n li._n 4._o c._n 14_o why_o althe_n apostles_n drink_v of_o one_o cup._n theaââ¦use_n ãâã_d the_o english_a minister_n ignat._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la phi._n matt._n 10._o judas_n drink_v the_o grammatical_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n est_fw-fr ãâã_d not_o stand_v for_o significat_fw-la heretic_n build_v with_o out_o a_o foun_n dation_n hieron_n in_o amos_n proh_o c._n 4_o three_o ãâã_d ãâã_d of_o hoââ¦_n scriptuââ¦e_n the_o literal_a sense_n ââ¦s_v the_o fon_n dââ¦tion_n cypr._n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la do_v haec_fw-la est_fw-la caro_fw-la mea_fw-la a_o testament_n hebr._n 9_o gene._n 31_o galat._n 4._o jerem._n 31_o hebr._n 9_o exo._n 24._o three_o thing_n in_o a_o solemn_a testament_n jerem._n 31_o hebr._n 8._o math._n 26_o jerem._n 31_o chryso_n in_o math._n hom._n 83._o li._n 4._o count_n marci_n sedulius_n in_o 1._o co._n 11._o the_o chalice_n bear_v witness_v 1._o ãâã_d math._n hom._n 83._o 2._o l._n 4._o con_v marci_n 3._o in_o lucae_n 22._o the_o same_o blood_n which_o con_v firm_v do_v also_o witness_n yâ_z ãâã_d chryso_n in_o joan._n hom._n 13._o the_o blood_n be_v not_o mean_v the_o figure_n of_o blood_n gene._n 31._o exod._n 24_o hebr._n 9_o lucae_n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11_o why_o the_o cup_n be_v name_v exod._n 24_o chryso_n hom._n 27_o in_o 1._o co._n oecum_fw-la in_o 1._o co._n cap._n 11._o christ_n blood_n real_a lie_n in_o the_o chalice_n the_o verb_n substantive_a leave_v out_o the_o verb_n significat_fw-la can_v not_o be_v understan_n dead_a the_o verb_n est_fw-fr must_v needs_o be_v supply_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o verb_n est_fw-fr in_o christ_n word_n math._n 5._o qui_fw-la calix_fw-la the_o which_o cup_n in_o amos_n cap._n 4._o a_o demonstration_n out_o of_o god_n word_n hebr._n 9_o euthy_n in_o c._n luc._n 22._o matt._n 26._o a_o hymn_n say_v only_o at_o christ_n supper_n joan._n 12._o the_o x._o chapter_n joan._n 6._o math._n 26_o 1._o cor._n 10_o the_o place_n which_o be_v to_o be_v conferââ¦ed_v joan._n 6._o math._n 26_o 1._o cor._n 10_o this._n thebreââ¦d_n promise_v be_v not_o mââ¦_n teriall_a bread_n this_o be_v ãâã_d by_o yâ_z other_o place_n the_o verb_n ãâã_d what_o ãâã_d ãâã_d mean_a by_o ãâã_d the_o communicatig_fw-ge chrys._n in_o 1._o cor._n hom_n 24._o body_n matt._n 6._o joan._n 6._o matt._n 26._o mar._n 14._o luc._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11_o 1._o cor._n 10_o 1._o cor._n 11_o joan._n 6._o matt._n 26_o luc._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 10_o 1_o cor._n 11_o matt._n 26._o luc._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11_o luc._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11_o joan._n 6._o lucae_n 1._o joan._n 1._o exod._n 17_o num._n 20_o acto_fw-la 17._o collos._n 1_o marc._n 14_o &_o 16._o lucae_n 24._o rom._n 8._o actor_n 1._o &_o 2._o lââ¦_n 22._o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n bââ¦dy_n be_v not_o impossible_a the_o sit_v of_o ãâã_d in_o heaven_n ãâã_d a_o hââ¦p_n to_o his_o ãâã_d presence_n in_o the_o sacra_fw-la ãâã_d chryso_n de_fw-fr sacer_fw-la lib._n 3._o christ_n supper_n pass_v faith_fw-mi all_o wonder_a the_o place_n belong_v to_o christ_n supper_n the_o ãâã_d chapter_n all_o food_n ãâã_d in_o hebrew_n call_v bread_n vide_fw-la pagninum_fw-la in_o verbo_fw-la laham_n deut._n 8._o &_o cath._n 4._o math._n 6._o luc._n 11._o exod._n 7._o gen._n 1._o 3._o marc._n 16._o that_o ãâã_d be_v ãâã_d bââ¦ad_a wââ¦ch_n ãâã_d bread_n ãâã_d ââ¦et_o semââ¦th_v brââ¦ad_a joan._n 6._o 1._o cor._n 10_o ignatius_n in_o 2._o epi._n ad_fw-la rom._n justinus_n in_o apol._n 2._o first_o bread_n ãâã_d ãâã_d water_n 2._o consecration_n 3._o food_n 4._o flesh_n and_o blood_n libro_fw-la 2._o epist._n 3._o ââ¦d_v cecil_n 2._o ireneus_fw-la ââ¦_n 4._o ca._n 34_o ambrose_n de_fw-fr sacram._n li._n 5._o ca._n 4._o hieron_n in_o math._n cap._n 6._o nyssen_n in_o vita_fw-la moysis_n tract_n 26_o in_o joan._n in_o levit._n c._n 22._o l._n 6._o in_o operââ¦_n paschal_n thebrââ¦_n give_v to_o judas_n be_v betrââ¦ââ¦ed_v for_o us._n math._n 6._o joan._n 6._o 1._o cor._n ãâã_d the_o twelve_o chapter_n euseb._n emissen_n hom._n 2._o de_fw-fr pasch._n num._n 21._o joan._n 3._o jonae_fw-la 2._o math._n 12._o 1._o co._n 10._o luc._n 24._o gen._n 4._o de_fw-fr mira_fw-la bill_n sacrae_fw-la scripture_n cap._n 3._o hier._n in_o quaest_n he_o br_v in_z ge_z didym_n in_o epist_n joan._n 1._o ezech._n cap._n 24._o math._n 26_o joan._n 18._o aug._n ad_fw-la quaest_n orosij_n 4._o 9_z prosper_n de_fw-fr promissis_fw-la &_o prae_fw-la dict_z deââ¦_n he._n 11._o 12_o if_o any_o good_a man_n be_v able_a to_o offer_v ãâã_d to_o god_n his_o own_o body_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n he_o will_v do_v abel_n by_o sley_v his_o lââ¦bs_n show_v himself_o to_o have_v desire_v a_o other_o sacrifice_n marc._n 14_o gen._n 4._o aug_n de_fw-fr trm._n l._n 3._o aug._n in_o psal._n 39_o the_o sacramenta_fw-la rise_z make_v the_o supper_n of_o christ_n like_v to_o the_o do_n of_o ââ¦ain_n cain_n do_v bear_v a_o sigure_n of_o yâ_z english_a communion_n gen._n 14._o math._n 26_o gen._n 14._o maro_n 14_o gen._n 14._o math._n 26_o gen._n 14._o math._n 26_o galat._n 3_o gen._n 14._o luc._n 22._o gen._n 14._o clemens_n alexand_n stron_fw-la l._n 4._o christ_n ââ¦as_o faith_fw-mi melchisedech_n by_o turn_v the_o bread_n which_o he_o bring_v forth_o into_o his_o own_o body_n cypria_n ad_fw-la caecil_n li._n 2._o ep_n 3._o euthy_n in_o panoplia_fw-la christ_n have_v set_v his_o own_o true_a substence_n under_o those_o form_n of_o brend_a and_o wine_n which_o melchise_v dech_v use_v exod._n 12_o gregor_n nazian_n in_o pasch._n orat_fw-la 4._o leo_fw-la de_fw-la pass_n domin_v se._n 7_o theod._n in_o 1._o co._n 11._o joan._n 1._o joan._n 12._o luc._n 22._o gregor_n paschal_n hom._n 22_o ââ¦_n mystery_n contain_v the_o truth_n but_o it_o contain_v it_o after_o a_o secret_a manner_n exo._n 16._o joan._n 6._o exo._n 16._o joan._n 6._o exo._n 16._o joan._n 6._o matt._n 26._o luc._n 22._o see_v how_o yâ_z word_n of_o moses_n and_o of_o christ_n agree_v exo._n 16._o joan._n 6._o psal._n 77_o mala._n 2._o luc._n 22._o exo._n 16._o matt._n 26._o the_o bread_n which_o christ_n ge_o veth_n be_v both_o a_o sign_n and_o a_o truth_n exo._n 16._o luc._n 22_o exo._n 16._o hieron_n adversus_fw-la jovin_n l._n 2_o the_o whole_a sub_fw-la stance_n of_o christ_n be_v under_o ãâã_d ry_o piece_n of_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n the_o figure_n of_o mamna_n be_v not_o fulfil_v except_o the_o real_a flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v under_o yâ_z form_n of_o bread_n 1._o cor._n 12_o ephe._n 4._o all_o that_o come_v to_o yâ_z sacrament_n ãâã_d yâ_z body_n of_o christ_n equal_o sap._n 16._o the_o figure_n of_o ãâã_d old_a testa_n mean_v exo._n 24._o the_o ãâã_d of_o covenant_n heb._n 9_o matt_n 26._o the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n ãâã_d give_fw-ge in_fw-ge the_o chalice_n as_o the_o ãâã_d be_v give_fw-ge in_fw-ge ãâã_d gen._n 49._o philip._n 2._o the_o prophecy_n of_o job_n apply_v to_o christ._n job_n 31._o hieron_n in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la greg._n in_o job_n li._n 22_o cap._n 11._o matt._n 26._o chrys._n hom_n 45._o in_o joan._n luc._n 22._o matt._n 26._o love_n desire_v as_o great_a a_o join_n &_o union_n as_o may_v be_v have_v joan._n 6._o chrys._n hom_n 83._o in_o matth._n &_o 45._o in_o joamnem_fw-la psal._n 22._o prophecy_n take_v out_o of_o the_o psalm_n and_o proverb_n of_o solomon_n prou._n 9_o what_o supper_n wisdom_n prepare_v cyp._n lib._n 2._o epist_n 3._o the_o supper_n of_o christ_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o table_n christ_n have_v but_o one_o table_n aug._n in_o joan_n tractatu_fw-la 50._o the_o sacramentary_n assign_v two_o table_n to_o christ._n 1._o cor._n 10_o psal._n 21._o an_o other_o prophecy_n take_v ãâã_d david_n only_o christiââ¦_n adore_v that_o they_o eat_v because_o they_o only_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o god_n bread_n not_o ãâã_d our_o lord_n table_n augu._n in_o
170._o untruth_n confuse_v &_o contrary_a doctrââ¦_n not_o the_o word_n verè_fw-la the_o 171._o untruth_n the_o 172._o untruth_n 344._o the_o 173._o untruth_n 30._o under_o sub._n before_o pag._n 323._o the_o 174_o untruth_n 31._o ãâã_d 323._o lin_v 30._o 33._o the_o 175._o untruthe_n de_fw-fr verb._n apo._n ser._n 2._o the_o 176._o untruthe_n ââ¦2_n proprietas_fw-la the_o word_n sacrament_n be_v twice_o name_v 33._o joan._n 6._o verè_fw-la the_o thing_n take_v into_o our_o mouth_n be_v flesh_n in_o deed_n 34._o by_o flesh_n 35._o by_o the_o mysteric_n 36._o naturally_n 37._o the_o nature_n of_o his_o sleshe_n 38._o 39_o carnaliter_fw-la 40._o ãâã_d the_o 177._o untruth_n de_fw-fr verb._n apostol_n serm_n 2._o the_o 178._o untruth_n note_v all_o the_o word_n of_o s._n hilary_n our_o join_n be_v by_o the_o son_n the_o 179._o untruthe_n m_o juel_n true_a mind_n of_o the_o father_n hyperbole_n m._n jewel_n have_v yield_v himself_o guilty_a about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 8._o book_n de_fw-fr doct_n christ._n l._n 3._o cap._n 10._o the_o ãâã_d chapter_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la moysis_n the_o 180._o untruthe_n the_o 181._o untruthe_n the_o 182._o untruthe_n in_o vita_fw-la moysis_n manna_n the_o heavenly_a meat_n the_o occââ¦_n sion_fw-la of_o nyssenââ¦_n talk_n note_v the_o point_n 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o he_o speak_v not_o of_o eat_v by_o faith_n 5._o corpori_fw-la cibus_fw-la fit_n 6._o note_v this_o discourse_n joaââ¦_n 14._o 2._o cor._n 6._o 7._o sap._n 16._o 8._o nescit_fw-la la_fw-fr befieri_fw-la 9_o qui_fw-la hanc_fw-la nobis_fw-la man_n same_o praeparavit_fw-la 10._o m._n jewel_n be_v mad_a ãâã_d be_v ãâã_d extreme_a malice_n a_o rule_n for_o yâ_z simple_a ep._n 118._o insolentissimae_fw-la insaniae_fw-la math._n 5._o 1._o tim._n ãâã_d ephes._n 5._o the_o 183._o untruth_n exod._n 16_o the_o 18_o âª_o untruthe_n in_o esa._n cap._n 62._o the_o 18ââ¦_n ãâã_d m._n juââ¦_n ãâã_d oââ¦_n ãâã_d the_o 186._o untruthe_n ââ¦ying_v the_o 187._o untruth_n joan._n 14._o the_o 188_o untruth_n ãâã_d the_o 189_o untruth_n the_o 190._o untruth_n the_o ãâã_d chapter_n the_o 191._o untruth_n ãâã_d ãâã_d natural_a corporalââ¦_n ephes._n 2._o the_o 192._o ââ¦truth_n ephes._n 2._o spiritual_o by_o faith_n corporal_o alsââ¦_n according_a to_o flesh_n the_o 193._o ââ¦ntruth_n quoque_fw-la colos._n 2._o with_o m._n jewel_n corpus_fw-la be_v ãâã_d for_o truth_n the_o 19ââ¦_n untruth_n ephes_n âª_o 5._o the_o 195_o âª_o untruth_n the_o 196._o ââ¦ntruthe_n the_o 197._o untruth_n impertiââ¦nt_fw-la the_o 198._o ââ¦truthe_n evil_a unââ¦_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domin_n âª_o ephes._n 5_o âª_o ãâã_d sactamento_n sine_fw-la saââ¦amento_fw-la the_o 199._o untruth_n contrary_a to_o himself_o the_o 200._o untruthe_n the_o 201._o untruth_n the_o 202._o untruthe_n the_o 203._o untruth_n in_o epi._n ad_fw-la ephes._n hom_n 20._o de_fw-fr eccl_n hierar_fw-it ca._n 2._o &_o 3_o de_fw-fr sacr._n li._n 4._o ca._n 3._o ad_fw-la quir._n li._n 3._o ca._n 25_o hom_n 5._o epi._n 106._o the_o 204_o untruth_n 1._o in_o joan._n li_z 4._o c._n 14._o ad_fw-la euo_fw-la anath_n 11._o 2._o lib._n 4_o cap._n 17_o 3._o cyril_n li._n 10._o ca._n 13._o li._n 11._o c._n 26_o âª_o &_o 27._o benedictio_fw-la in_o joan._n li._n 4._o c._n 17._o 1._o lib._n 4._o cap._n 16._o 2._o lib._n 4._o cap._n 17._o ad_fw-la euo_fw-la anath_n 11._o in_o joan._n l._n 12._o c._n 50_o ãâã_d ãâã_d of_o the_o faith_n ââ¦i_fw-la 2._o de_fw-la peccat_fw-la i_o &_o re_z mis._n c._n 26_o the_o 11._o ãâã_d the_o ââ¦50_n untruth_n damasc._n de_fw-fr orth._n ââ¦d_n li_z 4._o cap._n 14._o in_o ãâã_d âª_o ãâã_d 26._o in_o matt._n &_o in_o 6._o joan._n in_o 1._o cor._n 10._o in_o cano._n missae_fw-la in_o lib._n de_fw-fr corp_n d._n in_o sacra_fw-la most_o of_o they_o write_v aââ¦st_o be_v ãâã_d bernar._n in_o sââ¦rm_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-it martino_n not_o carââ¦lly_v concer_fw-fr ning_n the_o ãâã_d of_o ãâã_d carnis_fw-la ipsius_fw-la vera_fw-la substan_fw-mi tia_fw-la in_o sacramento_n the_o ãâã_d âª_o untruth_n luc._n 8._o matt._n 28._o ephes._n 5._o the_o 207._o untruth_n ãâã_d tranââ¦ation_n terere_fw-la the_o 208._o untruthe_n cyril_n in_o joan._n lib._n 10._o cââ¦_n 1._o m._n ââ¦uell_n agree_v ãâã_d yâ_z arrian_n the_o 20ââ¦_n untruth_n the_o 210._o untruthe_n the_o 211._o unruthe_n the_o 212._o untruthe_n ignoramus_n non_fw-fr credit_n diââ¦us_fw-la marc._n 19_o the_o 213._o untruthe_n lib._n 4_o in_o ãâã_d c._n 13._o in_o ââ¦oan_n hom_n 45._o the_o 214._o untruthe_n impertinent_a the_o 215._o untruthe_n commââ¦_n davi_fw-la psââ¦l_o 98._o joan._n 6._o math._n 26_o falsiââ¦ying_v the_o 216_o âª_o untruthe_n the_o 217._o untruthe_n the_o 218._o untruthe_n in_o joan._n li._n 10._o c._n 13_o &_o 11._o c._n 26_o impertinent_a ambros._n lib._n 6._o de_fw-fr sacram._n cap._n 1._o m._n juel_n kââ¦d_v of_o rea_fw-la soââ¦_n foe_fw-mi 319._o 337._o 324_o 323._o abusinââ¦_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 316._o 320._o 320._o 341._o 341._o 343._o 4._o m_o juel_n doctor_n 317._o 319._o 324._o 156._o 5._o phrase_n of_o speech_n 341._o 342._o 343._o 344._o joan._n 10._o joan._n 17._o joan._n 1._o 342._o 425._o 6._o false_a come_v parison_n 341._o 342._o 7._o false_a commââ¦ts_n 332._o 342._o 320._o 341._o 8._o false_a translation_n into_o english_a 328._o 347._o 319._o 341._o 326._o 344._o slaunââ¦ers_n 9_o 326._o 328._o 331._o 10._o ââ¦sting_v 327._o 341._o 342._o 11._o childish_a error_n 326._o 341._o 12._o craââ¦y_n conveââ¦ce_n 324._o 344._o &_o caet_fw-la 13._o false_a application_n 319._o in_o joan._n tract_n 26._o &_o 50._o 318._o 346._o 14._o contradiction_n 341._o 344._o 345._o 323._o 343._o 319._o 345._o 15._o a_o most_o shameless_a shift_n 321._o 324._o 333._o 324._o &_o caet_fw-la 16._o false_a addition_n to_o the_o father_n word_n 324._o 321._o 344._o 346._o 17._o word_n of_o importance_n false_o leave_v out_o in_o the_o doctors_n word_n 317._o 323._o 321._o 320._o 342._o 342._o 341._o 324._o 336._o 18._o 343._o most_o imââ¦udent_a lie_n 329._o 19_o false_a accuse_v of_o s._n ââ¦ilary_n 344._o 20._o guilty_a 344._o by_o this_o point_n he_o ââ¦eldeth_v himself_o guilty_a 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o
the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n death_n as_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o true_a birth_n but_o most_o miraculous_a withal_o so_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n a_o true_a sign_n and_o therefore_o his_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n by_o the_o great_a miracle_n of_o turn_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n in_o to_o they_o this_o be_v yâ_z sign_n that_o christ_n make_v in_o his_o last_o supper_n this_o be_v such_o a_o sign_n as_o be_v withal_o a_o secret_a miracle_n for_o it_o be_v a_o miracle_n not_o show_v to_o ãâã_d but_o only_o to_o the_o faithful_a for_o as_o ââ¦ble_a the_o birth_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o ãâã_d to_o the_o faithful_a only_o who_o believe_v christ_n be_v god_n and_o man_n true_o to_o have_v be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n withouââ¦_n sede_fw-la of_o man_n by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o the_o holy_a ââ¦host_n right_o so_o the_o suppââ¦_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o sigââ¦e_n of_o his_o body_n ãâã_d blood_n to_o the_o faithful_a only_o who_o believe_v the_o ãâã_d of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v ââ¦urned_v into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n without_o ãâã_d or_o corruption_n by_o yâ_z only_o ãâã_d of_o the_o ãâã_d oââ¦_n chrisââ¦_n who_o say_v after_o bread_n take_v and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n 22._o do_v and_o make_v this_o thing_n for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o i_o behold_v the_o make_v of_o christ_n body_n ââ¦nd_a blood_n ââ¦or_fw-mi yâ_z remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n that_o be_v the_o sign_n we_o speak_v of_o this_o be_v the_o memory_n or_o the_o remembrance_n whereof_o david_n say_v memoriam_fw-la 110._o fecit_fw-la mirabilium_fw-la svorum_fw-la misericors_fw-la &_o miserator_fw-la dominus_fw-la eseanââ¦_n dedit_fw-la timentibus_fw-la se._n our_o merciful_a &_o graciouse_a lord_n have_v make_v a_o remembrance_n of_o his_o marvellous_a work_n he_o have_v give_v meat_n to_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o and_o think_v we_o that_o a_o remembrance_n of_o marvellous_a thing_n be_v make_v of_o god_n without_o a_o miracle_n 14._o s._n cyprian_n say_v the_o bread_n to_o be_v make_v flesh_n omnipotentia_fw-la verbi_fw-la by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o the_o word_n s._n augustine_n call_v it_o mirabile_n sacrificium_fw-la a_o marvellous_a sacrifice_n s._n chrysostom_n cry_v out_o o_o miracle_n o_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n he_o that_o sit_v above_o with_o the_o father_n in_o the_o self_n same_o moment_n of_o time_n be_v touch_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o man_n if_o thou_o ask_v how_o it_o be_v make_v say_v damascene_fw-la it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o to_o hear_v that_o it_o be_v make_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o as_o our_o lord_n make_v for_o himself_o and_o in_o himself_o a_o body_n out_o of_o the_o virgin_n mother_n of_o god_n and_o we_o know_v no_o more_o but_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v true_a strenghtfull_a almighty_a 28._o eusebius_n call_v it_o admirabilem_fw-la exitum_fw-la oraculi_fw-la a_o marvellous_a event_n of_o the_o oracle_n s._n bede_n name_v it_o a_o sanctification_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o can_v not_o be_v utter_v by_o speech_n the_o like_a word_n have_v s._n baââ¦ile_n s._n gregorin_n nyssenus_n s._n ââ¦ieront_fw-fr nicephorus_n this_o much_o i_o think_v good_a brief_o to_o say_v concern_v yâ_z manner_n how_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v a_o sign_n token_n figure_n mystery_n remembrance_n every_o word_n whereof_o expound_v according_o to_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v prove_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n under_o yâ_z foorme_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n which_o outward_o signiââ¦_n that_o which_o be_v inward_o wrought_v it_o be_v a_o figure_n contain_v the_o truth_n figure_v it_o be_v a_o sign_n mete_v for_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n who_o sign_n be_v miraculous_a it_o be_v a_o secret_a token_n know_v only_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v it_o be_v a_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n death_n by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n which_o die_v what_o shall_v i_o say_v more_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n cover_v from_o our_o eye_n revel_v to_o our_o faith_n feed_v present_o our_o body_n and_o soul_n to_o life_n everlasting_a ¶_o that_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v no_o sacrament_n at_o chapter_n all_o if_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n be_v figurative_a ãâã_d there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o a_o figure_n of_o rhetoric_n and_o a_o sacramental_a figure_n make_v by_o christ._n the_o rhetorical_a figure_n consist_v in_o word_n or_o sentence_n the_o mystical_a figure_n of_o christ_n consist_v in_o deed_n &_o secret_a working_n those_o sometime_o sound_v one_o way_n and_o mean_v a_o other_o way_n these_o mean_a and_o sound_v always_o one_o thing_n but_o they_o show_v it_o one_o way_n and_o do_v it_o a_o other_o way_n those_o chief_o serve_v the_o ear_n of_o mortal_a man_n these_o chief_o serve_v the_o heart_n of_o faithful_a man_n those_o be_v find_v by_o man_n these_o be_v institute_v of_o god_n christ_n sometime_o use_v figure_n of_o rhetoric_n because_o in_o take_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n he_o addict_v himself_o to_o use_v the_o kind_n of_o speak_v which_o man_n observe_v but_o now_o christian_n use_v yâ_z mystical_a signââ¦es_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o that_o take_v their_o nature_n leave_v unto_o they_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o almighty_a godhead_n let_v noman_n therââ¦ore_o think_v when_o yâ_z supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v call_v sometime_o a_o figure_n that_o a_o rhetori_fw-mi mystical_a call_v figure_n be_v mean_v it_o be_v not_o so_o a_o mystical_a figure_n a_o secret_a knowledge_n a_o priââ¦ie_a watch_n word_n be_v understand_v by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o figure_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v say_v to_o his_o apostle_n &_o follower_n let_v this_o be_v a_o token_n between_o you_o and_o i_o &_o between_o one_o of_o you_o towards_o yâ_z other_o that_o when_o a_o faithful_a man_n be_v wash_v with_o water_n and_o in_o the_o 28._o mean_a time_n it_o be_v say_v over_o he_o i_o baptise_v the_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n straight_o all_o sin_n be_v forgeven_v he_o and_o he_o be_v of_o my_o flock_n and_o receive_v into_o my_o fold_n let_v it_o be_v again_o a_o other_o covenant_n or_o sign_n between_o us._n when_o my_o apostle_n or_o those_o which_o be_v make_v priest_n by_o they_o say_v over_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o over_o wine_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n have_v 26._o the_o intent_n to_o bless_v and_o geve_v thanks_n and_o to_o make_v a_o remembrance_n of_o my_o death_n that_o my_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n according_o as_o my_o word_n do_v sound_a these_o be_v mystical_a sign_n privy_a token_n and_o secret_a figure_n to_o be_v keep_v only_o among_o the_o faithful_a and_o not_o to_o be_v publish_v to_o infidel_n for_o as_o man_n by_o use_n of_o speak_v have_v agree_v to_o transferr_v certain_a word_n from_o their_o most_o proper_a signification_n to_o a_o other_o figurative_a custom_n even_o so_o christ_n have_v transfer_v certain_a natural_a thing_n to_o a_o other_o mystical_a use_n which_o be_v now_o call_v in_o some_o father_n by_o that_o name_n of_o holy_a sign_n or_o figure_n or_o token_n or_o which_o be_v most_o common_a of_o all_o by_o the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n or_o mystery_n see_v good_a reader_n to_o what_o misery_n we_o be_v grow_v he_o that_o come_v late_o from_o his_o grammar_n where_o he_o learn_v certain_a figure_n of_o construction_n or_o he_o yâ_z begin_v his_o rhetorik_n where_o he_o more_o grammar_n deep_o enter_v into_o the_o treatise_n of_o trope_n and_o sheme_n when_o he_o read_v in_o a_o two_o penny_n book_n the_o place_n allege_v where_o it_o be_v say_v in_o tertullian_n this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n he_o judge_v out_o of_o hand_n that_o tertullian_n mean_v a_o figure_n of_o rhetorik_n and_o decolampadius_n caluin_n or_o peter_n martyr_n be_v a_o meet_a be_v schoolmaster_n for_o he_o to_o expound_v what_o kind_n of_o rhetorical_a figure_n it_o be_v very_o saithei_o metonymia_fw-la or_o synecdoche_n again_o wheââ¦_n they_o hear_v s._n augustine_n affirm_v that_o christ_n give_v a'signe_v of_o his_o body_n they_o think_v he_o mean_v such_o a_o sign_n as_o be_v set_v up_o at_o a_o ale_n house_n or_o wine_n tavern_n that_o doctor_n mean_v a_o peculiar_a sign_n and_o token_n miraculous_o institute_v by_o christ_n which_o contain_v &_o geve_v to_o the_o faithful_a the_o truth_n which_o it_o betoken_v this_o kind_n of_o sign_n and_o figure_n concern_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n
they_o consist_v of_o two_o part_n as_o i_o say_v before_o of_o thing_n and_o of_o word_n the_o thing_n be_v diverse_a as_o for_o example_n water_n bread_n wine_n word_n oil_n and_o such_o other_o the_o mystical_a word_n come_v to_o such_o thing_n as_o christ_n have_v appoint_v make_v up_o the_o whole_a sacrament_n so_o that_o the_o thing_n be_v like_o stone_n timber_n iron_n wherââ¦_n withal_o a_o man_n will_v build_v or_o make_v somewhat_o the_o word_n be_v like_o the_o order_n and_o foorm_v which_o the_o carpenter_n will_v set_v the_o stuff_n in_o the_o thing_n be_v confuse_v until_o the_o word_n determine_v they_o particular_o to_o this_o or_o that_o use_n therefore_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o christ_n sanctifi_v his_o church_n muââ¦dans_fw-la eam_fw-la lavacro_fw-la aquae_fw-la in_o verbo_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la cleanse_v it_o with_o the_o 5._o wasââ¦ng_n of_o water_n in_o the_o word_n of_o life_n what_o be_v that_o word_n of_o ãâã_d ââ¦erily_o whereof_o christ_n say_v go_v teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v 28._o they_o in_o the_o nanse_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o be_v the_o word_n which_o geve_v life_n to_o he_o that_o be_v due_o wassh_v of_o this_o word_n christ_n say_v jam_fw-la vos_fw-la mundi_fw-la estis_fw-la propter_fw-la 15._o sermonem_fw-la quem_fw-la locutus_fw-la sum_fw-la vobis_fw-la now_o you_o be_v clean_a for_o the_o word_n sake_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o s._n augustine_n demand_v why_o christ_n say_v not_o you_o be_v clean_o 80._o for_o the_o baptim_o wherewith_o you_o be_v wassh_v but_o rather_o you_o be_v clean_o for_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o save_v that_o even_o in_o wa_z ter_z it_o be_v the_o word_n that_o cleanse_v detrahe_fw-la verbum_fw-la &_o quid_fw-la est_fw-la aqua_fw-la nisi_fw-la aqua_fw-la accedit_fw-la verbum_fw-la ad_fw-la elementum_fw-la &_o fit_a sacramentum_fw-la take_v away_o the_o word_n and_o what_o be_v water_n but_o water_n the_o word_n come_v to_o the_o matter_n and_o the_o sacrament_n be_v make_v s._n angustine_n call_v the_o thing_n or_o stuff_n whereof_o the_o sacramââ¦t_n elementum_fw-la be_v make_v elementum_fw-la which_o be_v to_o say_v a_o material_a thing_n that_o serve_v for_o a_o beginning_n whereof_o a_o far_a mystery_n may_v be_v make_v when_o the_o word_n appoint_v by_o christ_n come_v to_o it_o the_o grecian_n use_v to_o call_v those_o thing_n especial_o in_o the_o supper_n of_o christ._n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o thing_n put_v or_o set_v before_o ãâã_d the_o priest_n who_o must_v consecrate_v they_o with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o element_n therefore_o whether_o it_o be_v water_n oil_n bread_n wine_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n that_o christ_n appoint_v be_v the_o weak_a and_o infer_v riour_a part_n the_o word_n be_v the_o more_o chief_a and_o principal_a vnde_fw-la ista_fw-la tanta_fw-la virtus_fw-la aquae_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n ut_fw-la corpus_fw-la tangat_fw-la &_o cor_fw-la 80._o abluat_fw-la nisi_fw-la faciente_fw-la verbo_fw-la non_fw-la quia_fw-la dicitur_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la creditur_fw-la nam_fw-la &_o in_fw-la ipso_fw-la verbo_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la sonus_fw-la transiens_fw-la aliud_fw-la virtus_fw-la manens_fw-la whence_o have_v water_n this_o great_a virtue_n that_o it_o shall_v touch_v the_o body_n and_o wasshe_v the_o hart_n but_o that_o the_o word_n cause_v it_o not_o only_o because_o it_o be_v speak_v but_o because_o it_o be_v beleve_v for_o in_o the_o ââ¦er_n e_o word_n the_o souââ¦d_n which_o pass_v away_o be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o virtue_n which_o remain_v be_v a_o other_o thing_n now_o have_v we_o three_o thing_n considere_v by_o s._n augustine_n in_o a_o sacrament_n sacrament_n the_o low_a be_v the_o element_n which_o in_o baptun_n be_v water_n the_o high_a be_v the_o word_n which_o again_o be_v considere_v in_o two_o respect_n in_o one_o as_o it_o be_v speak_v and_o so_o be_v join_v with_o the_o element_n it_o make_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o pass_v away_o in_o the_o other_o as_o it_o be_v beleve_v of_o he_o that_o receave_v the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o it_o work_v in_o he_o a_o grace_n virtue_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n if_o now_o the_o word_n be_v it_o that_o both_o chief_o make_v and_o effectual_o establish_v the_o sacrament_n it_o can_v not_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o christ_n give_v the_o great_a diligence_n of_o all_o in_o assign_v the_o solemn_a word_n of_o his_o bless_a sacrament_n for_o the_o word_n appoint_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o make_n of_o his_o sacrament_n be_v so_o strong_a that_o although_o the_o minister_n be_v never_o so_o 20._o éuil_a a_o man_n yet_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v god_n sanctifi_v his_o sacrament_n ad_fw-la verba_fw-la quae_fw-la procedunt_fw-la ex_fw-la ore_fw-la homicidae_fw-la at_o the_o word_n which_o come_v forth_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o mankiller_n and_o again_o he_o say_v deus_fw-la adest_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la &_o verbis_fw-la suis_fw-la per_fw-la qualeslibet_fw-la administrentur_fw-la god_n be_v present_a to_o his_o sacrament_n and_o word_n by_o whatsoever_o manner_n of_o man_n they_o be_v minister_v in_o so_o much_o that_o if_o 12._o at_o the_o time_n of_o celebrate_v both_o the_o gever_n and_o receiver_n have_v do_v vulaââ¦fully_o say_v s._n augustine_n non_fw-la tamen_fw-la pro_fw-la non_fw-la dato_fw-la habebitur_fw-la yet_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v not_o be_v account_v as_o not_o give_v for_o see_v the_o word_n be_v once_o speak_v and_o join_v with_o the_o element_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v make_v though_o it_o lack_v his_o effect_n whereof_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o sacramental_a word_n bring_v forth_o a_o secret_a strength_n for_o their_o own_o part_n albeit_o neither_o the_o minister_n 16_o nor_o the_o receiver_n be_v of_o such_o worthiness_n as_o they_o owght_fw-mi to_o be_v of_o in_o ipso_fw-la aquarum_fw-la lavacro_fw-la say_v s._n chrysostom_n verba_fw-la dei_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la nos_fw-la generant_fw-la in_o the_o very_a wash_n of_o the_o water_n they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o beget_v us._n which_o thing_n since_o it_o be_v so_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n sacrament_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o understanding_n either_o of_o the_o minister_n or_o of_o he_o that_o receave_v the_o sacrament_n but_o they_o have_v a_o sufficient_a virtue_n in_o themselves_o whereby_o they_o may_v work_v it_o be_v enough_o that_o the_o minister_n do_v as_o the_o church_n use_v to_o do_v in_o such_o case_n this_o intention_n be_v keep_v the_o word_n will_v bring_v the_o rest_n to_o pass_v or_o if_o a_o malicious_a priest_n baptize_v a_o child_n with_o the_o mind_n to_o make_v he_o a_o lutheran_n or_o a_o anabaptist_n shall_v that_o child_z by_z that_o intention_n be_v make_v a_o heretââ¦ke_n no_o very_o for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n wherewith_o he_o be_v baptize_v make_v he_o a_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n not_o incorporate_n he_o to_o any_o other_o fellowship_n qui_fw-la fuerit_fw-la superbus_fw-la minister_n cum_fw-la diabolo_fw-la computatur_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la contaminatur_fw-la 5._o donum_fw-la christi_fw-la the_o proud_a minister_n say_v s._n augustin_n be_v account_v with_o the_o devil_n but_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o defile_v to_o come_v somewhat_o never_o our_o purpose_n s._n ambrose_n do_v by_o name_n witness_n what_o strength_n christ_n word_n have_v in_o make_v his_o 5._o supper_n sermo_n christi_fw-la hoc_fw-la conficit_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la the_o word_n of_o christ_n make_v this_o sacrament_n antequà m_fw-la consecretur_fw-la panis_fw-la est_fw-la ubi_fw-la verba_fw-la christi_fw-la accesserint_fw-la corpus_fw-la est_fw-la christi_fw-la before_o it_o be_v consecrate_v it_o be_v bread_n when_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v come_v to_o it_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n hoc_fw-la ait_fw-la sacerdos_n est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la hoc_fw-la verbo_fw-la proposita_fw-la consecratnr_fw-la judae_fw-la s._n chrysostom_n write_v that_o when_o the_o priest_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o thing_n set_v forth_o be_v consecrate_v with_o this_o word_n or_o say_n if_o now_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o among_o many_o cause_n which_o concur_v to_o make_v a_o sacrament_n one_o of_o the_o chief_a be_v the_o word_n pronounce_v at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n see_v they_o be_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v speak_v over_o breââ¦d_n and_o wine_n i_o say_v these_o word_n may_v be_v in_o no_o wise_a figurative_a for_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o shall_v not_o only_o not_o consecrate_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o which_o be_v more_o they_o shall_v not_o ãâã_d so_o much_o as_o a_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n for_o if_o word_n make_v any_o thing_n they_o make_v it_o by_o signifi_v as_o the_o which_o be_v not_o only_a sign_n of_o thing_n but_o by_o s._n augustine_n magistro_fw-la